Lady Chatterlys Lover
by D.H. Lawrence Chapter 1
Ours is essentially a tragic age, so we refuse to take it tragically.
The cataclysm has happened, we are among the ruins, we start to build up
new little habitats, to have new little hopes. It is rather hard work: there
is now no smooth road into the future: but we go round, or scramble over
the obstacles. We've got to live, no matter how many skies have fallen.
This was more or less Constance Chatterley's position. The war had brought
the roof down over her head. And she had realized that one must live and
learn.
She married Clifford Chatterley in 1917, when he was home for a month
on leave. They had a month's honeymoon. Then he went back to Flanders: to
be shipped over to England again six months later, more or less in bits.
Constance, his wife, was then twenty-three years old, and he was twenty-nine.
His hold on life was marvellous. He didn't die, and the bits seemed
to grow together again. For two years he remained in the doctor's hands.
Then he was pronounced a cure, and could return to life again, with the
lower half of his body, from the hips down, paralysed for ever.
This was in 1920. They returned, Clifford and Constance, to his home,
Wragby Hall, the family `seat'. His father had died, Clifford was now a
baronet, Sir Clifford, and Constance was Lady Chatterley. They came to start
housekeeping and married life in the rather forlorn home of the Chatterleys
on a rather inadequate income. Clifford had a sister, but she had departed.
Otherwise there were no near relatives. The elder brother was dead in the
war. Crippled for ever, knowing he could never have any children, Clifford
came home to the smoky Midlands to keep the Chatterley name alive while
he could.
He was not really downcast. He could wheel himself about in a wheeled
chair, and he had a bath-chair with a small motor attachment, so he could
drive himself slowly round the garden and into the line melancholy park,
of which he was really so proud, though he pretended to be flippant about
it.
Having suffered so much, the capacity for suffering had to some extent
left him. He remained strange and bright and cheerful, almost, one might
say, chirpy, with his ruddy, healthy-looking face, arid his pale- blue,
challenging bright eyes. His shoulders were broad and strong, his hands
were very strong. He was expensively dressed, and wore handsome neckties
from Bond Street. Yet still in his face one saw the watchful look, the slight
vacancy of a cripple.
He had so very nearly lost his life, that what remained was wonderfully
precious to him. It was obvious in the anxious brightness of his eyes, how
proud he was, after the great shock, of being alive. But he had been so
much hurt that something inside him had perished, some of his feelings had
gone. There was a blank of insentience.
Constance, his wife, was a ruddy, country-looking girl with soft brown
hair and sturdy body, and slow movements, full of unusual energy. She had
big, wondering eyes, and a soft mild voice, and seemed just to have come
from her native village. It was not so at all. Her father was the once well-known
R. A., old Sir Malcolm Reid. Her mother had been one of the cultivated Fabians
in the palmy, rather pre-Raphaelite days. Between artists and cultured socialists,
Constance and her sister Hilda had had what might be called an aesthetically
unconventional upbringing. They had been taken to Paris and Florence and
Rome to breathe in art, and they had been taken also in the other direction,
to the Hague and Berlin, to great Socialist conventions, where the speakers
spoke in every civilized tongue, and no one was abashed.
The two girls, therefore, were from an early age not the least daunted
by either art or ideal politics. It was their natural atmosphere. They were
at once cosmopolitan and provincial, with the cosmopolitan provincialism
of art that goes with pure social ideals.
They had been sent to Dresden at the age of fifteen, for music among
other things. And they had had a good time there. They lived freely among
the students, they argued with the men over philosophical, sociological
and artistic matters, they were just as good as the men themselves: only
better, since they were women. And they tramped off to the forests with
sturdy youths bearing guitars, twang-twang! They sang the Wandervogel songs,
and they were free. Free! That was the great word. Out in the open world,
out in the forests of the morning, with lusty and splendid-throated young
fellows, free to do as they liked, and---above all---to say what they liked.
It was the talk that mattered supremely: the impassioned interchange of
talk. Love was only a minor accompaniment.
Both Hilda and Constance had had their tentative love-affairs by the
time they were eighteen. The young men with whom they talked so passionately
and sang so lustily and camped under the trees in such freedom wanted, of
course, the love connexion. The girls were doubtful, but then the thing
was so much talked about, it was supposed to be so important. And the men
were so humble and craving. Why couldn't a girl be queenly, and give the
gift of herself?
So they had given the gift of themselves, each to the youth with whom
she had the most subtle and intimate arguments. The arguments, the discussions
were the great thing: the love-making and connexion were only a sort of
primitive reversion and a bit of an anti-climax. One was less in love with
the boy afterwards, and a little inclined to hate him, as if he had trespassed
on one's privacy and inner freedom. For, of course, being a girl, one's
whole dignity and meaning in life consisted in the achievement of an absolute,
a perfect, a pure and noble freedom. What else did a girl's life mean? To
shake off the old and sordid connexions and subjections.
And however one might sentimentalize it, this sex business was one of
the most ancient, sordid connexions and subjections. Poets who glorified
it were mostly men. Women had always known there was something better, something
higher. And now they knew it more definitely than ever. The beautiful pure
freedom of a woman was infinitely more wonderful than any sexual love. The
only unfortunate thing was that men lagged so far behind women in the matter.
They insisted on the sex thing like dogs.
And a woman had to yield. A man was like a child with his appetites.
A woman had to yield him what he wanted, or like a child he would probably
turn nasty and flounce away and spoil what was a very pleasant connexion.
But a woman could yield to a man without yielding her inner, free self.
That the poets and talkers about sex did not seem to have taken sufficiently
into account. A woman could take a man without really giving herself away.
Certainly she could take him without giving herself into his power. Rather
she could use this sex thing to have power over him. For she only had to
hold herself back in sexual intercourse, and let him finish and expend himself
without herself coming to the crisis: and then she could prolong the connexion
and achieve her orgasm and her crisis while he was merely her tool.
Both sisters had had their love experience by the time the war came,
and they were hurried home. Neither was ever in love with a young man unless
he and she were verbally very near: that is unless they were profoundly
interested, TALKING to one another. The amazing, the profound, the unbelievable
thrill there was in passionately talking to some really clever young man
by the hour, resuming day after day for months...this they had never realized
till it happened! The paradisal promise: Thou shalt have men to talk to!---had
never been uttered. It was fulfilled before they knew what a promise it
was.
And if after the roused intimacy of these vivid and soul-enlightened
discussions the sex thing became more or less inevitable, then let it. It
marked the end of a chapter. It had a thrill of its own too: a queer vibrating
thrill inside the body, a final spasm of self-assertion, like the last word,
exciting, and very like the row of asterisks that can be put to show the
end of a paragraph, and a break in the theme.
When the girls came home for the summer holidays of 1913, when Hilda
was twenty and Connie eighteen, their father could see plainly that they
had had the love experience.
L'amour avait possé par là, as somebody puts
it. But he was a man of experience himself, and let life take its course.
As for the mot a nervous invalid in the last few months of her life, she
wanted her girls to be `free', and to `fulfil themselves'. She herself had
never been able to be altogether herself: it had been denied her. Heaven
knows why, for she was a woman who had her own income and her own way. She
blamed her husband. But as a matter of fact, it was some old impression
of authority on her own mind or soul that she could not get rid of. It had
nothing to do with Sir Malcolm, who left his nervously hostile, high-spirited
wife to rule her own roost, while he went his own way.
So the girls were `free', and went back to Dresden, and their music,
and the university and the young men. They loved their respective young
men, and their respective young men loved them with all the passion of mental
attraction. All the wonderful things the young men thought and expressed
and wrote, they thought and expressed and wrote for the young women. Connie's
young man was musical, Hilda's was technical. But they simply lived for
their young women. In their minds and their mental excitements, that is.
Somewhere else they were a little rebuffed, though they did not know it.
It was obvious in them too that love had gone through them: that is,
the physical experience. It is curious what a subtle but unmistakable transmutation
it makes, both in the body of men and women: the woman more blooming, more
subtly rounded, her young angularities softened, and her expression either
anxious or triumphant: the man much quieter, more inward, the very shapes
of his shoulders and his buttocks less assertive, more hesitant.
In the actual sex-thrill within the body, the sisters nearly succumbed
to the strange male power. But quickly they recovered themselves, took the
sex-thrill as a sensation, and remained free. Whereas the men, in gratitude
to the woman for the sex experience, let their souls go out to her. And
afterwards looked rather as if they had lost a shilling and found sixpence.
Connie's man could be a bit sulky, and Hilda's a bit jeering. But that is
how men are! Ungrateful and never satisfied. When you don't have them they
hate you because you won't; and when you do have them they hate you again,
for some other reason. Or for no reason at all, except that they are discontented
children, and can't be satisfied whatever they get, let a woman do what
she may.
However, came the war, Hilda and Connie were rushed home again after
having been home already in May, to their mother's funeral. Before Christmas
of 1914 both their German young men were dead: whereupon the sisters wept,
and loved the young men passionately, but underneath forgot them. They didn't
exist any more.
Both sisters lived in their father's, really their mother's, Kensington
housemixed with the young Cambridge group, the group that stood for `freedom'
and flannel trousers, and flannel shirts open at the neck, and a well-bred
sort of emotional anarchy, and a whispering, murmuring sort of voice, and
an ultra- sensitive sort of manner. Hilda, however, suddenly married a man
ten years older than herself, an elder member of the same Cambridge group,
a man with a fair amount of money, and a comfortable family job in the government:
he also wrote philosophical essays. She lived with him in a smallish house
in Westminster, and moved in that good sort of society of people in the
government who are not tip-toppers, but who are, or would be, the real intelligent
power in the nation: people who know what they're talking about, or talk
as if they did.
Connie did a mild form of war-work, and consorted with the flannel-trousers
Cambridge intransigents, who gently mocked at everything, so far. Her `friend'
was a Clifford Chatterley, a young man of twenty-two, who had hurried home
from Bonn, where he was studying the technicalities of coal-mining. He had
previously spent two years at Cambridge. Now he had become a first lieutenant
in a smart regiment, so he could mock at everything more becomingly in uniform.
Clifford Chatterley was more upper-class than Connie. Connie was well-to-do
intelligentsia, but he was aristocracy. Not the big sort, but still it.
His father was a baronet, and his mother had been a viscount's daughter.
But Clifford, while he was better bred than Connie, and more `society',
was in his own way more provincial and more timid. He was at his ease in
the narrow `great world', that is, landed aristocracy society, but he was
shy and nervous of all that other big world which consists of the vast hordes
of the middle and lower classes, and foreigners. If the truth must be told,
he was just a little bit frightened of middle-and lower-class humanity,
and of foreigners not of his own class. He was, in some paralysing way,
conscious of his own defencelessness, though he had all the defence of privilege.
Which is curious, but a phenomenon of our day.
Therefore the peculiar soft assurance of a girl like Constance Reid
fascinated him. She was so much more mistress of herself in that outer world
of chaos than he was master of himself.
Nevertheless he too was a rebel: rebelling even against his class. Or
perhaps rebel is too strong a word; far too strong. He was only caught in
the general, popular recoil of the young against convention and against
any sort of real authority. Fathers were ridiculous: his own obstinate one
supremely so. And governments were ridiculous: our own wait-and-see sort
especially so. And armies were ridiculous, and old buffers of generals altogether,
the red-faced Kitchener supremely. Even the war was ridiculous, though it
did kill rather a lot of people.
In fact everything was a little ridiculous, or very ridiculous: certainly
everything connected with authority, whether it were in the army or the
government or the universities, was ridiculous to a degree. And as far as
the governing class made any pretensions to govern, they were ridiculous
too. Sir Geoffrey, Clifford's father, was intensely ridiculous, chopping
down his trees, and weeding men out of his colliery to shove them into the
war; and himself being so safe and patriotic; but, also, spending more money
on his country than he'd got.
When Miss Chatterley---Emma---came down to London from the Midlands
to do some nursing work, she was very witty in a quiet way about Sir Geoffrey
and his determined patriotism. Herbert, the elder brother and heir, laughed
outright, though it was his trees that were falling for trench props. But
Clifford only smiled a little uneasily. Everything was ridiculous, quite
true. But when it came too close and oneself became ridiculous too...? At
least people of a different class, like Connie, were earnest about something.
They believed in something.
They were rather earnest about the Tommies, and the threat of conscription,
and the shortage of sugar and toffee for the children. In all these things,
of course, the authorities were ridiculously at fault. But Clifford could
not take it to heart. To him the authorities were ridiculous ab ovo,
not because of toffee or Tommies.
And the authorities felt ridiculous, and behaved in a rather ridiculous
fashion, and it was all a mad hatter's tea-party for a while. Till things
developed over there, and Lloyd George came to save the situation over here.
And this surpassed even ridicule, the flippant young laughed no more.
In 1916 Herbert Chatterley was killed, so Clifford became heir. He was
terrified even of this. His importance as son of Sir Geoffrey, and child
of Wragby, was so ingrained in him, he could never escape it. And yet he
knew that this too, in the eyes of the vast seething world, was ridiculous.
Now he was heir and responsible for Wragby. Was that not terrible? and also
splendid and at the same time, perhaps, purely absurd?
Sir Geoffrey would have none of the absurdity. He was pale and tense,
withdrawn into himself, and obstinately determined to save his country and
his own position, let it be Lloyd George or who it might. So cut off he
was, so divorced from the England that was really England, so utterly incapable,
that he even thought well of Horatio Bottomley. Sir Geoffrey stood for England
and Lloyd George as his forebears had stood for England and St George: and
he never knew there was a difference. So Sir Geoffrey felled timber and
stood for Lloyd George and England, England and Lloyd George.
And he wanted Clifford to marry and produce an heir. Clifford felt his
father was a hopeless anachronism. But wherein was he himself any further
ahead, except in a wincing sense of the ridiculousness of everything, and
the paramount ridiculousness of his own position? For willy-nilly he took
his baronetcy and Wragby with the last seriousness.
The gay excitement had gone out of the war...dead. Too much death and
horror. A man needed support arid comfort. A man needed to have an anchor
in the safe world. A man needed a wife.
The Chatterleys, two brothers and a sister, had lived curiously isolated,
shut in with one another at Wragby, in spite of all their connexions. A
sense of isolation intensified the family tie, a sense of the weakness of
their position, a sense of defencelessness, in spite of, or because of,
the title and the land. They were cut off from those industrial Midlands
in which they passed their lives. And they were cut off from their own class
by the brooding, obstinate, shut-up nature of Sir Geoffrey, their father,
whom they ridiculed, but whom they were so sensitive about.
The three had said they would all live together always. But now Herbert
was dead, and Sir Geoffrey wanted Clifford to marry. Sir Geoffrey barely
mentioned it: he spoke very little. But his silent, brooding insistence
that it should be so was hard for Clifford to bear up against.
But Emma said No! She was ten years older than Clifford, and she felt
his marrying would be a desertion and a betrayal of what the young ones
of the family had stood for.
Clifford married Connie, nevertheless, and had his month's honeymoon
with her. It was the terrible year 1917, and they were intimate as two people
who stand together on a sinking ship. He had been virgin when he married:
and the sex part did not mean much to him. They were so close, he and she,
apart from that. And Connie exulted a little in this intimacy which was
beyond sex, and beyond a man's `satisfaction`. Clifford anyhow was not just
keen on his `satisfaction', as so many men seemed to be. No, the intimacy
was deeper, more personal than that. And sex was merely an accident, or
an adjunct, one of the curious obsolete, organic processes which persisted
in its own clumsiness, but was not really necessary. Though Connie did want
children: if only to fortify her against her sister-in-law Emma.
But early in 1918 Clifford was shipped home smashed, and there was no
child. And Sir Geoffrey died of chagrin. Chapter 2
Connie and Clifford came home to Wragby in the autumn of 1920. Miss
Chatterley, still disgusted at her brother's defection, had departed and
was living in a little flat in London.
Wragby was a long low old house in brown stone, begun about the middle
of the eighteenth century, and added on to, till it was a warren of a place
without much distinction. It stood on an eminence in a rather line old park
of oak trees, but alas, one could see in the near distance the chimney of
Tevershall pit, with its clouds of steam and smoke, and on the damp, hazy
distance of the hill the raw straggle of Tevershall village, a village which
began almost at the park gates, and trailed in utter hopeless ugliness for
a long and gruesome mile: houses, rows of wretched, small, begrimed, brick
houses, with black slate roofs for lids, sharp angles and wilful, blank
dreariness.
Connie was accustomed to Kensington or the Scotch hills or the Sussex
downs: that was her England. With the stoicism of the young she took in
the utter, soulless ugliness of the coal-and-iron Midlands at a glance,
and left it at what it was: unbelievable and not to be thought about. From
the rather dismal rooms at Wragby she heard the rattle-rattle of the screens
at the pit, the puff of the winding-engine, the clink-clink of shunting
trucks, and the hoarse little whistle of the colliery locomotives. Tevershall
pit-bank was burning, had been burning for years, and it would cost thousands
to put it out. So it had to burn. And when the wind was that way, which
was often, the house was full of the stench of this sulphurous combustion
of the earth's excrement. But even on windless days the air always smelt
of something under-earth: sulphur, iron, coal, or acid. And even on the
Christmas roses the smuts settled persistently, incredible, like black manna
from the skies of doom.
Well, there it was: fated like the rest of things! It was rather awful,
but why kick? You couldn't kick it away. It just went on. Life, like all
the rest! On the low dark ceiling of cloud at night red blotches burned
and quavered, dappling and swelling and contracting, like burns that give
pain. It was the furnaces. At first they fascinated Connie with a sort of
horror; she felt she was living underground. Then she got used to them.
And in the morning it rained.
Clifford professed to like Wragby better than London. This country had
a grim will of its own, and the people had guts. Connie wondered what else
they had: certainly neither eyes nor minds. The people were as haggard,
shapeless, and dreary as the countryside, and as unfriendly. Only there
was something in their deep-mouthed slurring of the dialect, and the thresh-thresh
of their hob-nailed pit-boots as they trailed home in gangs on the asphalt
from work, that was terrible and a bit mysterious.
There had been no welcome home for the young squire, no festivities,
no deputation, not even a single flower. Only a dank ride in a motor-car
up a dark, damp drive, burrowing through gloomy trees, out to the slope
of the park where grey damp sheep were feeding, to the knoll where the house
spread its dark brown facade, and the housekeeper and her husband were hovering,
like unsure tenants on the face of the earth, ready to stammer a welcome.
There was no communication between Wragby Hall and Tevershall village,
none. No caps were touched, no curtseys bobbed. The colliers merely stared;
the tradesmen lifted their caps to Connie as to an acquaintance, and nodded
awkwardly to Clifford; that was all. Gulf impassable, and a quiet sort of
resentment on either side. At first Connie suffered from the steady drizzle
of resentment that came from the village. Then she hardened herself to it,
and it became a sort of tonic, something to live up to. It was not that
she and Clifford were unpopular, they merely belonged to another species
altogether from the colliers. Gulf impassable, breach indescribable, such
as is perhaps nonexistent south of the Trent. But in the Midlands and the
industrial North gulf impassable, across which no communication could take
place. You stick to your side, I'll stick to mine! A strange denial of the
common pulse of humanity.
Yet the village sympathized with Clifford and Connie in the abstract.
In the flesh it was---You leave me alone!---on either side.
The rector was a nice man of about sixty, full of his duty, and reduced,
personally, almost to a nonentity by the silent---You leave me alone!---of
the village. The miners' wives were nearly all Methodists. The miners were
nothing. But even so much official uniform as the clergyman wore was enough
to obscure entirely the fact that he was a man like any other man. No, he
was Mester Ashby, a sort of automatic preaching and praying concern.
This stubborn, instinctive---We think ourselves as good as you, if you
are Lady Chatterley!- --puzzled and baffled Connie at first extremely.
The curious, suspicious, false amiability with which the miners' wives met
her overtures; the curiously offensive tinge of---Oh dear me! I am
somebody now, with Lady Chatterley talking to me! But she needn't think
I'm not as good as her for all that!---which she always heard twanging in
the women's half-fawning voices, was impossible. There was no getting past
it. It was hopelessly and offensively nonconformist.
Clifford left them alone, and she learnt to do the same: she just went
by without looking at them, and they stared as if she were a walking wax
figure. When he had to deal with them, Clifford was rather haughty and contemptuous;
one could no longer afford to be friendly. In fact he was altogether rather
supercilious and contemptuous of anyone not in his own class. He stood his
ground, without any attempt at conciliation. And he was neither liked nor
disliked by the people: he was just part of things, like the pit-bank and
Wragby itself.
But Clifford was really extremely shy and self-conscious now he was
lamed. He hated seeing anyone except just the personal servants. For he
had to sit in a wheeled chair or a sort of bath-chair. Nevertheless he was
just as carefully dressed as ever, by his expensive tailors, and he wore
the careful Bond Street neckties just as before, and from the top he looked
just as smart and impressive as ever. He had never been one of the modern
ladylike young men: rather bucolic even, with his ruddy face and broad shoulders.
But his very quiet, hesitating voice, and his eyes, at the same time bold
and frightened, assured and uncertain, revealed his nature. His manner was
often offensively supercilious, and then again modest and self-effacing,
almost tremulous.
Connie and he were attached to one another, in the aloof modern way.
He was much too hurt in himself, the great shock of his maiming, to be easy
and flippant. He was a hurt thing. And as such Connie stuck to him passionately.
But she could not help feeling how little connexion he really had with
people. The miners were, in a sense, his own men; but he saw them as objects
rather than men, parts of the pit rather than parts of life, crude raw phenomena
rather than human beings along with him. He was in some way afraid of them,
he could not bear to have them look at him now he was lame. And their queer,
crude life seemed as unnatural as that of hedgehogs.
He was remotely interested; but like a man looking down a microscope,
or up a telescope. He was not in touch. He was not in actual touch with
anybody, save, traditionally, with Wragby, and, through the close bond of
family defence, with Emma. Beyond this nothing really touched him. Connie
felt that she herself didn't really, not really touch him; perhaps there
was nothing to get at ultimately; just a negation of human contact.
Yet he was absolutely dependent on her, he needed her every moment.
Big and strong as he was, he was helpless. He could wheel himself about
in a wheeled chair, and he had a sort of bath-chair with a motor attachment,
in which he could puff slowly round the park. But alone he was like a lost
thing. He needed Connie to be there, to assure him he existed at all.
Still he was ambitious. He had taken to writing stories; curious, very
personal stories about people he had known. Clever, rather spiteful, and
yet, in some mysterious way, meaningless. The observation was extraordinary
and peculiar. But there was no touch, no actual contact. It was as if the
whole thing took place in a vacuum. And since the field of life is largely
an artificially-lighted stage today, the stories were curiously true to
modern life, to the modern psychology, that is.
Clifford was almost morbidly sensitive about these stories. He wanted
everyone to think them good, of the best, ne plus ultra. They appeared
in the most modern magazines, and were praised and blamed as usual. But
to Clifford the blame was torture, like knives goading him. It was as if
the whole of his being were in his stories.
Connie helped him as much as she could. At first she was thrilled. He
talked everything over with her monotonously, insistently, persistently,
and she had to respond with all her might. It was as if her whole soul and
body and sex had to rouse up and pass into theme stories of his. This thrilled
her and absorbed her.
Of physical life they lived very little. She had to superintend the
house. But the housekeeper had served Sir Geoffrey for many years, arid
the dried-up, elderly, superlatively correct female you could hardly call
her a parlour-maid, or even a woman...who waited at table, had been in the
house for forty years. Even the very housemaids were no longer young. It
was awful! What could you do with such a place, but leave it alone! All
these endless rooms that nobody used, all the Midlands routine, the mechanical
cleanliness and the mechanical order! Clifford had insisted on a new cook,
an experienced woman who had served him in his rooms in London. For the
rest the place seemed run by mechanical anarchy. Everything went on in pretty
good order, strict cleanliness, and strict punctuality; even pretty strict
honesty. And yet, to Connie, it was a methodical anarchy. No warmth of feeling
united it organically. The house seemed as dreary as a disused street.
What could she do but leave it alone? So she left it alone. Miss Chatterley
came sometimes, with her aristocratic thin face, and triumphed, finding
nothing altered. She would never forgive Connie for ousting her from her
union in consciousness with her brother. It was she, Emma, who should be
bringing forth the stories, these books, with him; the Chatterley stories,
something new in the world, that they, the Chatterleys, had put
there. There was no other standard. There was no organic connexion with
the thought and expression that had gone before. Only something new in the
world: the Chatterley books, entirely personal.
Connie's father, where he paid a flying visit to Wragby, and in private
to his daughter: As for Clifford's writing, it's smart, but there's nothing
in it. It won't last! Connie looked at the burly Scottish knight who
had done himself well all his life, and her eyes, her big, still-wondering
blue eyes became vague. Nothing in it! What did he mean by nothing in it?
If the critics praised it, and Clifford's name was almost famous, and it
even brought in money...what did her father mean by saying there was nothing
in Clifford's writing? What else could there be?
For Connie had adopted the standard of the young: what there was in
the moment was everything. And moments followed one another without necessarily
belonging to one another.
It was in her second winter at Wragby her father said to her: `I hope,
Connie, you won't let circumstances force you into being a demi-vierge.'
`A demi-vierge!' replied Connie vaguely. `Why? Why not?'
`Unless you like it, of course!' said her father hastily. To Clifford
he said the same, when the two men were alone: `I'm afraid it doesn't quite
suit Connie to be a demi-vierge.'
`A half-virgin!' replied Clifford, translating the phrase to be sure
of it.
He thought for a moment, then flushed very red. He was angry and offended.
`In what way doesn't it suit her?' he asked stiffly.
`She's getting thin...angular. It's not her style. She's not the pilchard
sort of little slip of a girl, she's a bonny Scotch trout.'
`Without the spots, of course!' said Clifford.
He wanted to say something later to Connie about the demi-vierge business...the
half-virgin state of her affairs. But he could not bring himself to do it.
He was at once too intimate with her and not intimate enough. He was so
very much at one with her, in his mind and hers, but bodily they were non-existent
to one another, and neither could bear to drag in the corpus delicti. They
were so intimate, and utterly out of touch.
Connie guessed, however, that her father had said something, and that
something was in Clifford's mind. She knew that he didn't mind whether she
were demi-vierge or demi-monde, so long as he didn't absolutely know, and
wasn't made to see. What the eye doesn't see and the mind doesn't know,
doesn't exist.
Connie and Clifford had now been nearly two years at Wragby, living
their vague life of absorption in Clifford and his work. Their interests
had never ceased to flow together over his work. They talked and wrestled
in the throes of composition, and felt as if something were happening, really
happening, really in the void.
And thus far it was a life: in the void. For the rest it was non-existence.
Wragby was there, the servants...but spectral, not really existing. Connie
went for walks in the park, and in the woods that joined the park, and enjoyed
the solitude and the mystery, kicking the brown leaves of autumn, and picking
the primroses of spring. But it was all a dream; or rather it was like the
simulacrum of reality. The oak-leaves were to her like oak-leaves seen ruffling
in a mirror, she herself was a figure somebody had read about, picking primroses
that were only shadows or memories, or words. No substance to her or anything...no
touch, no contact! Only this life with Clifford, this endless spinning of
webs of yarn, of the minutiae of consciousness, these stories Sir Malcolm
said there was nothing in, and they wouldn't last. Why should there be anything
in them, why should they last? Sufficient unto the day is the evil thereof.
Sufficient unto the moment is the appearance of reality.
Clifford had quite a number of friends, acquaintances really, and he
invited them to Wragby. He invited all sorts of people, critics and writers,
people who would help to praise his books. And they were flattered at being
asked to Wragby, and they praised. Connie understood it all perfectly. But
why not? This was one of the fleeting patterns in the mirror. What was wrong
with it?
She was hostess to these people...mostly men. She was hostess also to
Clifford's occasional aristocratic relations. Being a soft, ruddy, country-looking
girl, inclined to freckles, with big blue eyes, and curling, brown hair,
and a soft voice, and rather strong, female loins she was considered a little
old-fashioned and `womanly'. She was not a `little pilchard sort of fish',
like a boy, with a boy's flat breast and little buttocks. She was too feminine
to be quite smart.
So the men, especially those no longer young, were very nice to her
indeed. But, knowing what torture poor Clifford would feel at the slightest
sign of flirting on her part, she gave them no encouragement at all. She
was quiet and vague, she had no contact with them and intended to have none.
Clifford was extraordinarily proud of himself.
His relatives treated her quite kindly. She knew that the kindliness
indicated a lack of fear, and that these people had no respect for you unless
you could frighten them a little. But again she had no contact. She let
them be kindly and disdainful, she let them feel they had no need to draw
their steel in readiness. She had no real connexion with them.
Time went on. Whatever happened, nothing happened, because she was so
beautifully out of contact. She and Clifford lived in their ideas and his
books. She entertained...there were always people in the house. Time went
on as the clock does, half past eight instead of half past seven. Chapter
3
Connie was aware, however, of a growing restlessness. Out of her disconnexion,
a restlessness was taking possession of her like madness. It twitched her
limbs when she didn't want to twitch them, it jerked her spine when she
didn't want to jerk upright but preferred to rest comfortably. It thrilled
inside her body, in her womb, somewhere, till she felt she must jump into
water and swim to get away from it; a mad restlessness. It made her heart
beat violently for no reason. And she was getting thinner.
It was just restlessness. She would rush off across the park, abandon
Clifford, and lie prone in the bracken. To get away from the house...she
must get away from the house and everybody. The work was her one refuge,
her sanctuary.
But it was not really a refuge, a sanctuary, because she had no connexion
with it. It was only a place where she could get away from the rest. She
never really touched the spirit of the wood itself...if it had any such
nonsensical thing.
Vaguely she knew herself that she was going to pieces in some way. Vaguely
she knew she was out of connexion: she had lost touch with the substantial
and vital world. Only Clifford and his books, which did not exist...which
had nothing in them! Void to void. Vaguely she knew. But it was like beating
her head against a stone.
Her father warned her again: `Why don't you get yourself a beau, Connie?
Do you all the good in the world.'
That winter Michaelis came for a few days. He was a young Irishman who
had already made a large fortune by his plays in America. He had been taken
up quite enthusiastically for a time by smart society in London, for he
wrote smart society plays. Then gradually smart society realized that it
had been made ridiculous at the hands of a down-at-heel Dublin street-rat,
and revulsion came. Michaelis was the last word in what was caddish and
bounderish. He was discovered to be anti-English, and to the class that
made this discovery this was worse than the dirtiest crime. He was cut dead,
and his corpse thrown into the refuse can.
Nevertheless Michaelis had his apartment in Mayfair, and walked down
Bond Street the image of a gentleman, for you cannot get even the best tailors
to cut their low-down customers, when the customers pay.
Clifford was inviting the young man of thirty at an inauspicious moment
in thyoung man's career. Yet Clifford did not hesitate. Michaelis had the
ear of a few million people, probably; and, being a hopeless outsider, he
would no doubt be grateful to be asked down to Wragby at this juncture,
when the rest of the smart world was cutting him. Being grateful, he would
no doubt do Clifford `good' over there in America. Kudos! A man gets a lot
of kudos, whatever that may be, by being talked about in the right way,
especially `over there'. Clifford was a coming man; and it was remarkable
what a sound publicity instinct he had. In the end Michaelis did him most
nobly in a play, and Clifford was a sort of popular hero. Till the reaction,
when he found he had been made ridiculous.
Connie wondered a little over Clifford's blind, imperious instinct to
become known: known, that is, to the vast amorphous world he did not himself
know, and of which he was uneasily afraid; known as a writer, as a first-class
modern writer. Connie was aware from successful, old, hearty, bluffing Sir
Malcolm, that artists did advertise themselves, and exert themselves to
put their goods over. But her father used channels ready-made, used by all
the other R. A.s who sold their pictures. Whereas Clifford discovered new
channels of publicity, all kinds. He had all kinds of people at Wragby,
without exactly lowering himself. But, determined to build himself a monument
of a reputation quickly, he used any handy rubble in the making.
Michaelis arrived duly, in a very neat car, with a chauffeur and a manservant.
He was absolutely Bond Street! But at right of him something in Clifford's
county soul recoiled. He wasn't exactly... not exactly...in fact, he wasn't
at all, well, what his appearance intended to imply. To Clifford this was
final and enough. Yet he was very polite to the man; to the amazing success
in him. The bitch-goddess, as she is called, of Success, roamed, snarling
and protective, round the half-humble, half-defiant Michaelis' heels, and
intimidated Clifford completely: for he wanted to prostitute himself to
the bitch-goddess, Success also, if only she would have him.
Michaelis obviously wasn't an Englishman, in spite of all the tailors,
hatters, barbers, booters of the very best quarter of London. No, no, he
obviously wasn't an Englishman: the wrong sort of flattish, pale face and
bearing; and the wrong sort of grievance. He had a grudge and a grievance:
that was obvious to any true- born English gentleman, who would scorn to
let such a thing appear blatant in his own demeanour. Poor Michaelis had
been much kicked, so that he had a slightly tail-between-the-legs look even
now. He had pushed his way by sheer instinct and sheerer effrontery on to
the stage and to the front of it, with his plays. He had caught the public.
And he had thought the kicking days were over. Alas, they weren't... They
never would be. For he, in a sense, asked to be kicked. He pined to be where
he didn't belong...among the English upper classes. And how they enjoyed
the various kicks they got at him! And how he hated them!
Nevertheless he travelled with his manservant and his very neat car,
this Dublin mongrel.
There was something about him that Connie liked. He didn't put on airs
to himself, he had no illusions about himself. He talked to Clifford sensibly,
briefly, practically, about all the things Clifford wanted to know. He didn't
expand or let himself go. He knew he had been asked down to Wragby to be
made use of, and like an old, shrewd, almost indifferent business man, or
big-business man, he let himself be asked questions, and he answered with
as little waste of feeling as possible.
`Money!' he said. `Money is a sort of instinct. It's a sort of property
of nature in a man to make money. It's nothing you do. It's no trick you
play. It's a sort of permanent accident of your own nature; once you start,
you make money, and you go on; up to a point, I suppose.'
`But you've got to begin,' said Clifford.
`Oh, quite! You've got to get in. You can do nothing if you
are kept outside. You've got to beat your way in. Once you've done that,
you can't help it.'
`But could you have made money except by plays?' asked Clifford.
`Oh, probably not! I may be a good writer or I may be a bad one, but
a writer and a writer of plays is what I am, and I've got to be. There's
no question of that.'
`And you think it's a writer of popular plays that you've got to be?'
asked Connie.
`There, exactly!' he said, turning to her in a sudden flash. `There's
nothing in it! There's nothing in popularity. There's nothing in the public,
if it comes to that. There's nothing really in my plays to make them popular.
It's not that. They just are like the weather...the sort that will have
to be...for the time being.'
He turned his slow, rather full eyes, that had been drowned in such
fathomless disillusion, on Connie, and she trembled a little. He seemed
so old...endlessly old, built up of layers of disillusion, going down in
him generation after generation, like geological strata; and at the same
time he was forlorn like a child. An outcast, in a certain sense; but with
the desperate bravery of his rat-like existence.
`At least it's wonderful what you've done at your time of life,' said
Clifford contemplatively.
`I'm thirty...yes, I'm thirty!' said Michaelis, sharply and suddenly,
with a curious laugh; hollow, triumphant, and bitter.
`And are you alone?' asked Connie.
`How do you mean? Do I live alone? I've got my servant. He's a Greek,
so he says, and quite incompetent. But I keep him. And I'm going to marry.
Oh, yes, I must marry.'
`It sounds like going to have your tonsils cut,' laughed Connie. `Will
it be an effort?'
He looked at her admiringly. `Well, Lady Chatterley, somehow it will!
I find... excuse me... I find I can't marry an Englishwoman, not even an
Irishwoman...'
`Try an American,' said Clifford.
`Oh, American!' He laughed a hollow laugh. `No, I've asked my man if
he will find me a Turk or something...something nearer to the Oriental.'
Connie really wondered at this queer, melancholy specimen of extraordinary
success; it was said he had an income of fifty thousand dollars from America
alone. Sometimes he was handsome: sometimes as he looked sideways, downwards,
and the light fell on him, he had the silent, enduring beauty of a carved
ivory Negro mask, with his rather full eyes, and the strong queerly-arched
brows, the immobile, compressed mouth; that momentary but revealed immobility,
an immobility, a timelessness which the Buddha aims at, and which Negroes
express sometimes without ever aiming at it; something old, old, and acquiescent
in the race! Aeons of acquiescence in race destiny, instead of our individual
resistance. And then a swimming through, like rats in a dark river. Connie
felt a sudden, strange leap of sympathy for him, a leap mingled with compassion,
and tinged with repulsion, amounting almost to love. The outsider! The outsider!
And they called him a bounder! How much more bounderish and assertive Clifford
looked! How much stupider!
Michaelis knew at once he had made an impression on her. He turned his
full, hazel, slightly prominent eyes on her in a look of pure detachment.
He was estimating her, and the extent of the impression he had made. With
the English nothing could save him from being the eternal outsider, not
even love. Yet women sometimes fell for him...Englishwomen too.
He knew just where he was with Clifford. They were two alien dogs which
would have liked to snarl at one another, but which smiled instead, perforce.
But with the woman he was not quite so sure.
Breakfast was served in the bedrooms; Clifford never appeared before
lunch, and the dining-room was a little dreary. After coffee Michaelis,
restless and ill-sitting soul, wondered what he should do. It was a fine
November...day fine for Wragby. He looked over the melancholy park. My God!
What a place!
He sent a servant to ask, could he be of any service to Lady Chatterley:
he thought of driving into Sheffield. The answer came, would he care to
go up to Lady Chatterley's sitting-room.
Connie had a sitting-room on the third floor, the top floor of the central
portion of the house. Clifford's rooms were on the ground floor, of course.
Michaelis was flattered by being asked up to Lady Chatterley's own parlour.
He followed blindly after the servant...he never noticed things, or had
contact with Isis surroundings. In her room he did glance vaguely round
at the fine German reproductions of Renoir and Cézanne.
`It's very pleasant up here,' he said, with his queer smile, as if it
hurt him to smile, showing his teeth. `You are wise to get up to the top.'
`Yes, I think so,' she said.
Her room was the only gay, modern one in the house, the only spot in
Wragby where her personality was at all revealed. Clifford had never seen
it, and she asked very few people up.
Now she and Michaelis sit on opposite sides of the fire and talked.
She asked him about himself, his mother and father, his brothers...other
people were always something of a wonder to her, and when her sympathy was
awakened she was quite devoid of class feeling. Michaelis talked frankly
about himself, quite frankly, without affectation, simply revealing his
bitter, indifferent, stray-dog's soul, then showing a gleam of revengeful
pride in his success.
`But why are you such a lonely bird?' Connie asked him; and again he
looked at her, with his full, searching, hazel look.
`Some birds are that way,' he replied. Then, with a touch of
familiar irony: `but, look here, what about yourself? Aren't you by way
of being a lonely bird yourself?' Connie, a little startled, thought about
it for a few moments, and then she said: `Only in a way! Not altogether,
like you!'
`Am I altogether a lonely bird?' he asked, with his queer grin of a
smile, as if he had toothache; it was so wry, and his eyes were so perfectly
unchangingly melancholy, or stoical, or disillusioned or afraid.
`Why?' she said, a little breathless, as she looked at him. `You are,
aren't you?'
She felt a terrible appeal coming to her from him, that made her almost
lose her balance.
`Oh, you're quite right!' he said, turning his head away, and looking
sideways, downwards, with that strange immobility of an old race that is
hardly here in our present day. It was that that really made Connie lose
her power to see him detached from herself.
He looked up at her with the full glance that saw everything, registered
everything. At the same time, the infant crying in the night was crying
out of his breast to her, in a way that affected her very womb.
`It's awfully nice of you to think of me,' he said laconically.
`Why shouldn't I think of you?' she exclaimed, with hardly breath to
utter it.
He gave the wry, quick hiss of a laugh.
`Oh, in that way!...May I hold your hand for a minute?' he asked suddenly,
fixing his eyes on her with almost hypnotic power, and sending out an appeal
that affected her direct in the womb.
She stared at him, dazed and transfixed, and he went over and kneeled
beside her, and took her two feet close in his two hands, and buried his
face in her lap, remaining motionless. She was perfectly dim and dazed,
looking down in a sort of amazement at the rather tender nape of his neck,
feeling his face pressing her thighs. In all her burning dismay, she could
not help putting her hand, with tenderness and compassion, on the defenceless
nape of his neck, and he trembled, with a deep shudder.
Then he looked up at her with that awful appeal in his full, glowing
eyes. She was utterly incapable of resisting it. From her breast flowed
the answering, immense yearning over him; she must give him anything, anything.
He was a curious and very gentle lover, very gentle with the woman,
trembling uncontrollably, and yet at the same time detached, aware, aware
of every sound outside.
To her it meant nothing except that she gave herself to him. And at
length he ceased to quiver any more, and lay quite still, quite still. Then,
with dim, compassionate fingers, she stroked his head, that lay on her breast.
When he rose, he kissed both her hands, then both her feet, in their
suède slippers, and in silence went away to the end of the room,
where he stood with his back to her. There was silence for some minutes.
Then he turned and came to her again as she sat in her old place by the
fire.
`And now, I suppose you'll hate me!' he said in a quiet, inevitable
way. She looked up at him quickly.
`Why should I?' she asked.
`They mostly do,' he said; then he caught himself up. `I mean...a woman
is supposed to.'
`This is the last moment when I ought to hate you,' she said resentfully.
`I know! I know! It should be so! You're frightfully good to
me...' he cried miserably.
She wondered why he should be miserable. `Won't you sit down again?'
she said. He glanced at the door.
`Sir Clifford!' he said, `won't he...won't he be...?' She paused a moment
to consider. `Perhaps!' she said. And she looked up at him. `I don't want
Clifford to know not even to suspect. It would hurt him so much.
But I don't think it's wrong, do you?'
`Wrong! Good God, no! You're only too infinitely good to me...I can
hardly bear it.'
He turned aside, and she saw that in another moment he would be sobbing.
`But we needn't let Clifford know, need we?' she pleaded. `It would
hurt him so. And if he never knows, never suspects, it hurts nobody.'
`Me!' he said, almost fiercely; `he'll know nothing from me! You see
if he does. Me give myself away! Ha! Ha!' he laughed hollowly, cynically,
at such an idea. She watched him in wonder. He said to her: `May I kiss
your hand arid go? I'll run into Sheffield I think, and lunch there, if
I may, and be back to tea. May I do anything for you? May I be sure you
don't hate me?---and that you won't?'---he ended with a desperate note of
cynicism.
`No, I don't hate you,' she said. `I think you're nice.'
`Ah!' he said to her fiercely, `I'd rather you said that to me than
said you love me! It means such a lot more...Till afternoon then. I've plenty
to think about till then.' He kissed her hands humbly and was gone.
`I don't think I can stand that young man,' said Clifford at lunch.
`Why?' asked Connie.
`He's such a bounder underneath his veneer...just waiting to bounce
us.'
`I think people have been so unkind to him,' said Connie.
`Do you wonder? And do you think he employs his shining hours doing
deeds of kindness?'
`I think he has a certain sort of generosity.'
`Towards whom?'
`I don't quite know.'
`Naturally you don't. I'm afraid you mistake unscrupulousness for generosity.'
Connie paused. Did she? It was just possible. Yet the unscrupulousness
of Michaelis had a certain fascination for her. He went whole lengths where
Clifford only crept a few timid paces. In his way he had conquered the world,
which was what Clifford wanted to do. Ways and means...? Were those of Michaelis
more despicable than those of Clifford? Was the way the poor outsider had
shoved and bounced himself forward in person, and by the back doors, any
worse than Clifford's way of advertising himself into prominence? The bitch-goddess,
Success, was trailed by thousands of gasping, dogs with lolling tongues.
The one that got her first was the real dog among dogs, if you go by success!
So Michaelis could keep his tail up.
The queer thing was, he didn't. He came back towards tea-time with a
large handful of violets and lilies, and the same hang-dog expression. Connie
wondered sometimes if it were a sort of mask to disarm opposition, because
it was almost too fixed. Was he really such a sad dog?
His sad-dog sort of extinguished self persisted all the evening, though
through it Clifford felt the inner effrontery. Connie didn't feel it, perhaps
because it was not directed against women; only against men, and their presumptions
and assumptions. That indestructible, inward effrontery in the meagre fellow
was what made men so down on Michaelis. His very presence was an affront
to a man of society, cloak it as he might in an assumed good manner.
Connie was in love with him, but she managed to sit with her embroidery
and let the men talk, and not give herself away. As for Michaelis, he was
perfect; exactly the same melancholic, attentive, aloof young fellow of
the previous evening, millions of degrees remote from his hosts, but laconically
playing up to them to the required amount, and never coming forth to them
for a moment. Connie felt he must have forgotten the morning. He had not
forgotten. But he knew where he was...in the same old place outside, where
the born outsiders are. He didn't take the love-making altogether personally.
He knew it would not change him from an ownerless dog, whom everybody begrudges
its golden collar, into a comfortable society dog.
The final fact being that at the very bottom of his soul he was
an outsider, and anti-social, and he accepted the fact inwardly, no matter
how Bond-Streety he was on the outside. His isolation was a necessity to
him; just as the appearance of conformity and mixing-in with the smart people
was also a necessity.
But occasional love, as a comfort arid soothing, was also a good thing,
and he was not ungrateful. On the contrary, he was burningly, poignantly
grateful for a piece of natural, spontaneous kindness: almost to tears.
Beneath his pale, immobile, disillusioned face, his child's soul was sobbing
with gratitude to the woman, and burning to come to her again; just as his
outcast soul was knowing he would keep really clear of her.
He found an opportunity to say to her, as they were lighting the candles
in the hall:
`May I come?'
`I'll come to you,' she said.
`Oh, good!'
He waited for her a long time...but she came.
He was the trembling excited sort of lover, whose crisis soon came,
and was finished. There was something curiously childlike and defenceless
about his naked body: as children are naked. His defences were all in his
wits and cunning, his very instincts of cunning, and when these were in
abeyance he seemed doubly naked and like a child, of unfinished, tender
flesh, and somehow struggling helplessly.
He roused in the woman a wild sort of compassion and yearning, and a
wild, craving physical desire. The physical desire he did not satisfy in
her; he was always come and finished so quickly, then shrinking down on
her breast, and recovering somewhat his effrontery while she lay dazed,
disappointed, lost.
But then she soon learnt to hold him, to keep him there inside her when
his crisis was over. And there he was generous and curiously potent; he
stayed firm inside her, giving to her, while she was active...wildly, passionately
active, coming to her own crisis. And as he felt the frenzy of her achieving
her own orgasmic satisfaction from his hard, erect passivity, he had a curious
sense of pride and satisfaction.
`Ah, how good!' she whispered tremulously, and she became quite still,
clinging to him. And he lay there in his own isolation, but somehow proud.
He stayed that time only the three days, and to Clifford was exactly
the same as on the first evening; to Connie also. There was no breaking
down his external man.
He wrote to Connie with the same plaintive melancholy note as ever,
sometimes witty, and touched with a queer, sexless affection. A kind of
hopeless affection he seemed to feel for her, and the essential remoteness
remained the same. He was hopeless at the very core of him, and he wanted
to be hopeless. He rather hated hope. `Une immense espérance
a traversé la terre', he read somewhere, and his comment was:`---and
it's darned-well drowned everything worth having.'
Connie never really understood him, but, in her way, she loved him.
And all the time she felt the reflection of his hopelessness in her. She
couldn't quite, quite love in hopelessness. And he, being hopeless, couldn't
ever quite love at all.
So they went on for quite a time, writing, and meeting occasionally
in London. She still wanted the physical, sexual thrill she could get with
him by her own activity, his little orgasm being over. And he still wanted
to give it her. Which was enough to keep them connected.
And enough to give her a subtle sort of self-assurance, something blind
and a little arrogant. It was an almost mechanical confidence in her own
powers, and went with a great cheerfulness.
She was terrifically cheerful at Wragby. And she used all her aroused
cheerfulness and satisfaction to stimulate Clifford, so that he wrote his
best at this time, and was almost happy in his strange blind way. He really
reaped the fruits of the sensual satisfaction she got out of Michaelis'
male passivity erect inside her. But of course he never knew it, and if
he had, he wouldn't have said thank you!
Yet when those days of her grand joyful cheerfulness and stimulus were
gone, quite gone, and she was depressed and irritable, how Clifford longed
for them again! Perhaps if he'd known he might even have wished to get her
and Michaelis together again. Chapter 4
Connie always had a foreboding of the hopelessness of her affair with
Mick, as people called him. Yet other men seemed to mean nothing to her.
She was attached to Clifford. He wanted a good deal of her life and she
gave it to him. But she wanted a good deal from the life of a man, and this
Clifford did not give her; could not. There were occasional spasms of Michaelis.
But, as she knew by foreboding, that would come to an end. Mick couldn't
keep anything up. It was part of his very being that he must break
off any connexion, and be loose, isolated, absolutely lone dog again. It
was his major necessity, even though he always said: She turned me down!
The world is supposed to be full of possibilities, but they narrow down
to pretty few in most personal experience. There's lots of good fish in
the sea...maybe...but the vast masses seem to be mackerel or herring, and
if you're not mackerel or herring yourself you are likely to find very few
good fish in the sea.
Clifford was making strides into fame, and even money. People came to
see him. Connie nearly always had somebody at Wragby. But if they weren't
mackerel they were herring, with an occasional cat-fish, or conger-eel.
There were a few regular men, constants; men who had been at Cambridge
with Clifford. There was Tommy Dukes, who had remained in the army, and
was a Brigadier-General. `The army leaves me time to think, and saves me
from having to face the battle of life,' he said.
There was Charles May, an Irishman, who wrote scientifically about stars.
There was Hammond, another writer. All were about the same age as Clifford;
the young intellectuals of the day. They all believed in the life of the
mind. What you did apart from that was your private affair, and didn't much
matter. No one thinks of inquiring of another person at what hour he retires
to the privy. It isn't interesting to anyone but the person concerned.
And so with most of the matters of ordinary life...how you make your
money, or whether you love your wife, or if you have `affairs'. All these
matters concern only the person concerned, and, like going to the privy,
have no interest for anyone else.
`The whole point about the sexual problem,' said Hammond, who was a
tall thin fellow with a wife and two children, but much more closely connected
with a typewriter, `is that there is no point to it. Strictly there is no
problem. We don't want to follow a man into the w.c., so why should we want
to follow him into bed with a woman? And therein liehe problem. If we took
no more notice of the one thing than the other, there'd be no problem. It's
all utterly senseless and pointless; a matter of misplaced curiosity.'
`Quite, Hammond, quite! But if someone starts making love to Julia,
you begin to simmer; and if he goes on, you are soon at boiling point.'...Julia
was Hammond's wife.
`Why, exactly! So I should be if he began to urinate in a corner of
my drawing-room. There's a place for all these things.'
`You mean you wouldn't mind if he made love to Julia in some discreet
alcove?'
Charlie May was slightly satirical, for he had flirted a very little
with Julia, and Hammond had cut up very roughly.
`Of course I should mind. Sex is a private thing between me and Julia;
and of course I should mind anyone else trying to mix in.'
`As a matter of fact,' said the lean and freckled Tommy Dukes, who looked
much more Irish than May, who was pale and rather fat: `As a matter of fact,
Hammond, you have a strong property instinct, and a strong will to self-assertion,
and you want success. Since I've been in the army definitely, I've got out
of the way of the world, and now I see how inordinately strong the craving
for self-assertion and success is in men. It is enormously overdeveloped.
All our individuality has run that way. And of course men like you think
you'll get through better with a woman's backing. That's why you're so jealous.
That's what sex is to you...a vital little dynamo between you and Julia,
to bring success. If you began to be unsuccessful you'd begin to flirt,
like Charlie, who isn't successful. Married people like you and Julia have
labels on you, like travellers' trunks. Julia is labelled Mrs Arnold
B. Hammond---just like a trunk on the railway that belongs to somebody.
And you are labelled Arnold B. Hammond, c/o Mrs Arnold B. Hammond. Oh,
you're quite right, you're quite right! The life of the mind needs a comfortable
house and decent cooking. You're quite right. It even needs posterity. But
it all hinges on the instinct for success. That is the pivot on which all
things turn.'
Hammond looked rather piqued. He was rather proud of the integrity of
his mind, and of his not being a time-server. None the less, he
did want success.
`It's quite true, you can't live without cash,' said May. `You've got
to have a certain amount of it to be able to live and get along...even to
be free to think you must have a certain amount of money, or your
stomach stops you. But it seems to me you might leave the labels off sex.
We're free to talk to anybody; so why shouldn't we be free to make love
to any woman who inclines us that way?'
`There speaks the lascivious Celt,' said Clifford.
`Lascivious! well, why not---? I can't see I do a woman any more harm
by sleeping with her than by dancing with her...or even talking to her about
the weather. It's just an interchange of sensations instead of ideas, so
why not?'
`Be as promiscuous as the rabbits!' said Hammond.
`Why not? What's wrong with rabbits? Are they any worse than a neurotic,
revolutionary humanity, full of nervous hate?'
`But we're not rabbits, even so,' said Hammond.
`Precisely! I have my mind: I have certain calculations to make in certain
astronomical matters that concern me almost more than life or death. Sometimes
indigestion interferes with me. Hunger would interfere with me disastrously.
In the same way starved sex interferes with me. What then?'
`I should have thought sexual indigestion from surfeit would have interfered
with you more seriously,' said Hammond satirically.
`Not it! I don't over-eat myself and I don't over-fuck myself. One has
a choice about eating too much. But you would absolutely starve me.'
`Not at all! You can marry.'
`How do you know I can? It may not suit the process of my mind. Marriage
might...and would...stultify my mental processes. I'm not properly pivoted
that way...and so must I be chained in a kennel like a monk? All rot and
funk, my boy. I must live and do my calculations. I need women sometimes.
I refuse to make a mountain of it, and I refuse anybody's moral condemnation
or prohibition. I'd be ashamed to see a woman walking around with my name-label
on her, address and railway station, like a wardrobe trunk.'
These two men had not forgiven each other about the Julia flirtation.
`It's an amusing idea, Charlie,' said Dukes, `that sex is just another
form of talk, where you act the words instead of saying them. I suppose
it's quite true. I suppose we might exchange as many sensations and emotions
with women as we do ideas about the weather, and so on. Sex might be a sort
of normal physical conversation between a man and a woman. You don't talk
to a woman unless you have ideas in common: that is you don't talk with
any interest. And in the same way, unless you had some emotion or sympathy
in common with a woman you wouldn't sleep with her. But if you had...'
`If you have the proper sort of emotion or sympathy with a
woman, you ought to sleep with her,' said May. `It's the only decent
thing, to go to bed with her. Just as, when you are interested talking to
someone, the Only decent thing is to have the talk out. You don't prudishly
put your tongue between your teeth and bite it. You just say out your say.
And the same the other way.'
`No,' said Hammond. `It's wrong. You, for example, May, you squander
half your force with women. You'll never really do what you should do, with
a fine mind such as yours. Too much of it goes the other way.'
`Maybe it does...and too little of you goes that way, Hammond, my boy,
married or not. You can keep the purity and integrity of your mind, but
it's going damned dry. Your pure mind is going as dry as fiddlesticks, from
what I see of it. You're simply talking it down.'
Tommy Dukes burst into a laugh.
`Go it, you two minds!' he said. `Look at me...I don't do any high and
pure mental work, nothing but jot down a few ideas. And yet I neither marry
nor run after women. I think Charlie's quite right; if he wants to run after
the women, he's quite free not to run too often. But I wouldn't prohibit
him from running. As for Hammond, he's got a property instinct, so naturally
the straight road and the narrow gate are right for him. You'll see he'll
be an English Man of Letters before he's done. A.B.C. from top to toe. Then
there's me. I'm nothing. Just a squib. And what about you, Clifford? Do
you think sex is a dynamo to help a man on to success in the world?'
Clifford rarely talked much at these times. He never held forth; his
ideas were really not vital enough for it, he was too confused and emotional.
Now he blushed and looked uncomfortable.
`Well!' he said, `being myself hors de combat, I don't see
I've anything to say on the matter.'
`Not at all,' said Dukes; `the top of you's by no means hors de
combat. You've got the life of the mind sound and intact. So let us
hear your ideas.'
`Well,' stammered Clifford, `even then I don't suppose I have much idea...I
suppose marry-and-have- done-with-it would pretty well stand for what I
think. Though of course between a man and woman who care for one another,
it is a great thing.'
`What sort of great thing?' said Tommy.
`Oh...it perfects the intimacy,' said Clifford, uneasy as a woman in
such talk.
`Well, Charlie and I believe that sex is a sort of communication like
speech. Let any woman start a sex conversation with me, and it's natural
for me to go to bed with her to finish it, all in due season. Unfortunately
no woman makes any particular start with me, so I go to bed by myself; and
am none the worse for it...I hope so, anyway, for how should I know? Anyhow
I've no starry calculations to be interfered with, and no immortal works
to write. I'm merely a fellow skulking in the army...'
Silence fell. The four men smoked. And Connie sat there and put another
stitch in her sewing...Yes, she sat there! She had to sit mum. She had to
be quiet as a mouse, not to interfere with the immensely important speculations
of these highly-mental gentlemen. But she had to be there. They didn't get
on so well without her; their ideas didn't flow so freely. Clifford was
much more hedgy and nervous, he got cold feet much quicker in Connie's absence,
and the talk didn't run. Tommy Dukes came off best; he was a little inspired
by her presence. Hammond she didn't really like; he seemed so selfish in
a mental way. And Charles May, though she liked something about him, seemed
a little distasteful and messy, in spite of his stars.
How many evenings had Connie sat and listened to the manifestations
of these four men! these, and one or two others. That they never seemed
to get anywhere didn't trouble her deeply. She liked to hear what they had
to say, especially when Tommy was there. It was fun. Instead of men kissing
you, and touching you with their bodies, they revealed their minds to you.
It was great fun! But what cold minds!
And also it was a little irritating. She had more respect for Michaelis,
on whose name they all poured such withering contempt, as a little mongrel
arriviste, and uneducated bounder of the worst sort. Mongrel and bounder
or not, he jumped to his own conclusions. He didn't merely walk round them
with millions of words, in the parade of the life of the mind.
Connie quite liked the life of the mind, and got a great thrill out
of it. But she did think it overdid itself a little. She loved being there,
amidst the tobacco smoke of those famous evenings of the cronies, as she
called them privately to herself. She was infinitely amused, and proud too,
that even their talking they could not do, without her silent presence.
She had an immense respect for thought...and these men, at least, tried
to think honestly. But somehow there was a cat, and it wouldn't jump. They
all alike talked at something, though what it was, for the life of her she
couldn't say. It was something that Mick didn't clear, either.
But then Mick wasn't trying to do anything, but just get through his
life, and put as much across other people as they tried to put across him.
He was really anti-social, which was what Clifford and his cronies had against
him. Clifford and his cronies were not anti-social; they were more or less
bent on saving mankind, or on instructing it, to say the least.
There was a gorgeous talk on Sunday evening, when the conversation drifted
again to love.
`Blest be the tie that binds
Our hearts in kindred something-or-other'---
said Tommy Dukes. `I'd like to know what the tie is...The tie that binds
us just now is mental friction on one another. And, apart from that, there's
damned little tie between us. We bust apart, and say spiteful things about
one another, like all the other damned intellectuals in the world. Damned
everybodies, as far as that goes, for they all do it. Else we bust apart,
and cover up the spiteful things we feel against one another by saying false
sugaries. It's a curious thing that the mental life seems to flourish with
its roots in spite, ineffable and fathomless spite. Always has been so!
Look at Socrates, in Plato, and his bunch round him! The sheer spite of
it all, just sheer joy in pulling somebody else to bits...Protagoras, or
whoever it was! And Alcibiades, and all the other little disciple dogs joining
in the fray! I must say it makes one prefer Buddha, quietly sitting under
a bo-tree, or Jesus, telling his disciples little Sunday stories, peacefully,
and without any mental fireworks. No, there's something wrong with the mental
life, radically. It's rooted in spite and envy, envy and spite. Ye shall
know the tree by its fruit.'
`I don't think we're altogether so spiteful,' protested Clifford.
`My dear Clifford, think of the way we talk each other over, all of
us. I'm rather worse than anybody else, myself. Because I infinitely prefer
the spontaneous spite to the concocted sugaries; now they are poison;
when I begin saying what a fine fellow Clifford is, etc., etc., then poor
Clifford is to be pitied. For God's sake, all of you, say spiteful things
about me, then I shall know I mean something to you. Don't say sugaries,
or I'm done.'
`Oh, but I do think we honestly like one another,' said Hammond.
`I tell you we must...we say such spiteful things to one another, about
one another, behind our backs! I'm the worst.'
`And I do think you confuse the mental life with the critical activity.
I agree with you, Socrates gave the critical activity a grand start, but
he did more than that,' said Charlie May, rather magisterially. The cronies
had such a curious pomposity under their assumed modesty. It was all so
ex cathedra, and it all pretended to be so humble.
Dukes refused to be drawn about Socrates.
`That's quite true, criticism and knowledge are not the same thing,'
said Hammond.
`They aren't, of course,' chimed in Berry, a brown, shy young man, who
had called to see Dukes, and was staying the night.
They all looked at him as if the ass had spoken.
`I wasn't talking about knowledge...I was talking about the mental life,'
laughed Dukes. `Real knowledge comes out of the whole corpus of the consciousness;
out of your belly and your penis as much as out of your brain and mind.
The mind can only analyse and rationalize. Set the mind and the reason to
cock it over the rest, and all they can do is to criticize, and make a deadness.
I say all they can do. It is vastly important. My God, the world
needs criticizing today...criticizing to death. Therefore let's live the
mental life, and glory in our spite, and strip the rotten old show. But,
mind you, it's like this: while you live your life, you are in
some way an Organic whole with all life. But once you start the mental life
you pluck the apple. You've severed the connexion between, the apple and
the tree: the organic connexion. And if you've got nothing in your life
but the mental life, then you yourself are a plucked apple...you've
fallen off the tree. And then it is a logical necessity to be spiteful,
just as it's a natural necessity for a plucked apple to go bad.'
Clifford made big eyes: it was all stuff to him. Connie secretly laughed
to herself.
`Well then we're all plucked apples,' said Hammond, rather acidly and
petulantly.
`So let's make cider of ourselves,' said Charlie.
`But what do you think of Bolshevism?' put in the brown Berry, as if
everything had led up to it.
`Bravo!' roared Charlie. `What do you think of Bolshevism?'
`Come on! Let's make hay of Bolshevism!' said Dukes.
`I'm afraid Bolshevism is a large question,' said Hammond, shaking his
head seriously.
`Bolshevism, it seems to me,' said Charlie, `is just a superlative hatred
of the thing they call the bourgeois; and what the bourgeois is, isn't quite
defined. It is Capitalism, among other things. Feelings and emotions are
also so decidedly bourgeois that you have to invent a man without them.
`Then the individual, especially the personal man, is bourgeois:
so he must be suppressed. You must submerge yourselves in the greater thing,
the Soviet-social thing. Even an organism is bourgeois: so the ideal must
be mechanical. The only thing that is a unit, non-organic, composed of many
different, yet equally essential parts, is the machine. Each man a machine-part,
and the driving power of the machine, hate...hate of the bourgeois. That,
to me, is Bolshevism.'
`Absolutely!' said Tommy. `But also, it seems to me a perfect description
of the whole of the industrial ideal. It's the factory-owner's ideal in
a nut-shell; except that he would deny that the driving power was hate.
Hate it is, all the same; hate of life itself. Just look at these Midlands,
if it isn't plainly written up...but it's all part of the life of the mind,
it's a logical development.'
`I deny that Bolshevism is logical, it rejects the major part of the
premisses,' said Hammond.
`My dear man, it allows the material premiss; so does the pure mind...exclusively.'
`At least Bolshevism has got down to rock bottom,' said Charlie.
`Rock bottom! The bottom that has no bottom! The Bolshevists will have
the finest army in the world in a very short time, with the finest mechanical
equipment.
`But this thing can't go on...this hate business. There must be a reaction...'
said Hammond.
`Well, we've been waiting for years...we wait longer. Hate's a growing
thing like anything else. It's the inevitable outcome of forcing ideas on
to life, of forcing one's deepest instincts; our deepest feelings we force
according to certain ideas. We drive ourselves with a formula, like a machine.
The logical mind pretends to rule the roost, and the roost turns into pure
hate. We're all Bolshevists, only we are hypocrites. The Russians are Bolshevists
without hypocrisy.'
`But there are many other ways,' said Hammond, `than the Soviet way.
The Bolshevists aren't really intelligent.'
`Of course not. But sometimes it's intelligent to be half-witted: if
you want to make your end. Personally, I consider Bolshevism half-witted;
but so do I consider our social life in the west half-witted. So I even
consider our far-famed mental life half-witted. We're all as cold as cretins,
we're all as passionless as idiots. We're all of us Bolshevists, only we
give it another name. We think we're gods...men like gods! It's just the
same as Bolshevism. One has to be human, and have a heart and a penis if
one is going to escape being either a god or a Bolshevist...for they are
the same thing: they're both too good to be true.'
Out of the disapproving silence came Berry's anxious question:
`You do believe in love then, Tommy, don't you?'
`You lovely lad!' said Tommy. `No, my cherub, nine times out of ten,
no! Love's another of those half- witted performances today. Fellows with
swaying waists fucking little jazz girls with small boy buttocks, like two
collar studs! Do you mean that sort of love? Or the joint-property, make-a-success-of-it,
My- husband-my-wife sort of love? No, my fine fellow, I don't believe in
it at all!'
`But you do believe in something?'
`Me? Oh, intellectually I believe in having a good heart, a chirpy penis,
a lively intelligence, and the courage to say "shit!" in front
of a lady.'
`Well, you've got them all,' said Berry.
Tommy Dukes roared with laughter. `You angel boy! If only I had! If
only I had! No; my heart's as numb as a potato, my penis droops and never
lifts its head up, I dare rather cut him clean off than say "shit!"
in front of my mother or my aunt...they are real ladies, mind you; and I'm
not really intelligent, I'm only a "mental-lifer". It would be
wonderful to be intelligent: then one would be alive in all the parts mentioned
and unmentionable. The penis rouses his head and says: How do you do?---
to any really intelligent person. Renoir said he painted his pictures with
his penis...he did too, lovely pictures! I wish I did something with mine.
God! when one can only talk! Another torture added to Hades! And Socrates
started it.'
`There are nice women in the world,' said Connie, lifting her head up
and speaking at last.
The men resented it...she should have pretended to hear nothing. They
hated her admitting she had attended so closely to such talk.
`My God! "If they be not nice to me What care I how nice they
be?"
`No, it's hopeless! I just simply can't vibrate in unison with a woman.
There's no woman I can really want when I'm faced with her, and I'm not
going to start forcing myself to it...My God, no! I'll remain as I am, and
lead the mental life. It's the only honest thing I can do. I can be quite
happy talking to women; but it's all pure, hopelessly pure. Hopelessly
pure! What do you say, Hildebrand, my chicken?'
`It's much less complicated if one stays pure,' said Berry.
`Yes, life is all too simple!' Chapters 5
On a frosty morning with a little February sun, Clifford and Connie
went for a walk across the park to the wood. That is, Clifford chuffed in
his motor-chair, and Connie walked beside him.
The hard air was still sulphurous, but they were both used to it. Round
the near horizon went the haze, opalescent with frost and smoke, and on
the top lay the small blue sky; so that it was like being inside an enclosure,
always inside. Life always a dream or a frenzy, inside an enclosure.
The sheep coughed in the rough, sere grass of the park, where frost
lay bluish in the sockets of the tufts. Across the park ran a path to the
wood-gate, a fine ribbon of pink. Clifford had had it newly gravelled with
sifted gravel from the pit-bank. When the rock and refuse of the underworld
had burned and given off its sulphur, it turned bright pink, shrimp-coloured
on dry days, darker, crab-coloured on wet. Now it was pale shrimp-colour,
with a bluish-white hoar of frost. It always pleased Connie, this underfoot
of sifted, bright pink. It's an ill wind that brings nobody good.
Clifford steered cautiously down the slope of the knoll from the hall,
and Connie kept her hand on the chair. In front lay the wood, the hazel
thicket nearest, the purplish density of oaks beyond. From the wood's edge
rabbits bobbed and nibbled. Rooks suddenly rose in a black train, and went
trailing off over the little sky.
Connie opened the wood-gate, and Clifford puffed slowly through into
the broad riding that ran up an incline between the clean-whipped thickets
of the hazel. The wood was a remnant of the great forest where Robin Hood
hunted, and this riding was an old, old thoroughfare coming across country.
But now, of course, it was only a riding through the private wood. The road
from Mansfield swerved round to the north.
In the wood everything was motionless, the old leaves on the ground
keeping the frost on their underside. A jay called harshly, many little
birds fluttered. But there was no game; no pheasants. They had been killed
off during the war, and the wood had been left unprotected, till now Clifford
had got his game- keeper again.
Clifford loved the wood; he loved the old oak-trees. He felt they were
his own through generations. He wanted to protect them. He wanted this place
inviolate, shut off from the world.
The chair chuffed slowly up the incline, rocking and jolting on the
frozen clods. And suddenly, on the left, came a clearing where there was
nothing but a ravel of dead bracken, a thin and spindly sapling leaning
here and there, big sawn stumps, showing their tops and their grasping roots,
lifeless. And patches of blackness where the woodmen had burned the brushwood
and rubbish.
This was one of the places that Sir Geoffrey had cut during the war
for trench timber. The whole knoll, which rose softly on the right of the
riding, was denuded and strangely forlorn. On the crown of the knoll where
the oaks had stood, now was bareness; and from there you could look out
over the trees to the colliery railway, and the new works at Stacks Gate.
Connie had stood and looked, it was a breach in the pure seclusion of the
wood. It let in the world. But she didn't tell Clifford.
This denuded place always made Clifford curiously angry. He had been
through the war, had seen what it meant. But he didn't get really angry
till he saw this bare hill. He was having it replanted. But it made him
hate Sir Geoffrey.
Clifford sat with a fixed face as the chair slowly mounted. When they
came to the top of the rise he stopped; he would not risk the long and very
jolty down-slope. He sat looking at the greenish sweep of the riding downwards,
a clear way through the bracken and oaks. It swerved at the bottom of the
hill and disappeared; but it had such a lovely easy curve, of knights riding
and ladies on palfreys.
`I consider this is really the heart of England,' said Clifford to Connie,
as he sat there in the dim February sunshine.
`Do you?' she said, seating herself in her blue knitted dress, on a
stump by the path.
`I do! this is the old England, the heart of it; and I intend to keep
it intact.'
`Oh yes!' said Connie. But, as she said it she heard the eleven-o'clock
hooters at Stacks Gate colliery. Clifford was too used to the sound to notice.
`I want this wood perfect...untouched. I want nobody to trespass in
it,' said Clifford.
There was a certain pathos. The wood still had some of the mystery of
wild, old England; but Sir Geoffrey's cuttings during the war had given
it a blow. How still the trees were, with their crinkly, innumerable twigs
against the sky, and their grey, obstinate trunks rising from the brown
bracken! How safely the birds flitted among them! And once there had been
deer, and archers, and monks padding along on asses. The place remembered,
still remembered.
Clifford sat in the pale sun, with the light on his smooth, rather blond
hair, his reddish full face inscrutable.
`I mind more, not having a son, when I come here, than any other time,'
he said.
`But the wood is older than your family,' said Connie gently.
`Quite!' said Clifford. `But we've preserved it. Except for us it would
go...it would be gone already, like the rest of the forest. One must preserve
some of the old England!'
`Must one?' said Connie. `If it has to be preserved, and preserved against
the new England? It's sad, I know.'
`If some of the old England isn't preserved, there'll be no England
at all,' said Clifford. `And we who have this kind of property, and the
feeling for it, must preserve it.'
There was a sad pause. `Yes, for a little while,' said Connie.
`For a little while! It's all we can do. We can only do our bit. I feel
every man of my family has done his bit here, since we've had the place.
One may go against convention, but one must keep up tradition.' Again there
was a pause.
`What tradition?' asked Connie.
`The tradition of England! of this!'
`Yes,' she said slowly.
`That's why having a son helps; one is only a link in a chain,' he said.
Connie was not keen on chains, but she said nothing. She was thinking
of the curious impersonality of his desire for a son.
`I'm sorry we can't have a son,' she said.
He looked at her steadily, with his full, pale-blue eyes.
`It would almost be a good thing if you had a child by another man,
he said. `If we brought it up at Wragby, it would belong to us and to the
place. I don't believe very intensely in fatherhood. If we had the child
to rear, it would be our own, and it would carry on. Don't you think it's
worth considering?'
Connie looked up at him at last. The child, her child, was just an `it'
to him. It...it...it!
`But what about the other man?' she asked.
`Does it matter very much? Do these things really affect us very deeply?...You
had that lover in Germany...what is it now? Nothing almost. It seems to
me that it isn't these little acts and little connexions we make in our
lives that matter so very much. They pass away, and where are they? Where...Where
are the snows of yesteryear?...It's what endures through one's life that
matters; my own life matters to me, in its long continuance and development.
But what do the occasional connexions matter? And the occasional sexual
connexions especially! If people don't exaggerate them ridiculously, they
pass like the mating of birds. And so they should. What does it matter?
It's the life-long companionship that matters. It's the living together
from day to day, not the sleeping together once or twice. You and I are
married, no matter what happens to us. We have the habit of each other.
And habit, to my thinking, is more vital than any occasional excitement.
The long, slow, enduring thing...that's what we live by...not the occasional
spasm of any sort. Little by little, living together, two people fall into
a sort of unison, they vibrate so intricately to one another. That's the
real secret of marriage, not sex; at least not the simple function of sex.
You and I are interwoven in a marriage. If we stick to that we ought to
be able to arrange this sex thing, as we arrange going to the dentist; since
fate has given us a checkmate physically there.'
Connie sat and listened in a sort of wonder, and a sort of fear. She
did not know if he was right or not. There was Michaelis, whom she loved;
so she said to herself. But her love was somehow only an excursion from
her marriage with Clifford; the long, slow habit of intimacy, formed through
years of suffering and patience. Perhaps the human soul needs excursions,
and must not be denied them. But the point of an excursion is that you come
home again.
`And wouldn't you mind what man's child I had?' she asked.
`Why, Connie, I should trust your natural instinct of decency and selection.
You just wouldn't let the wrong sort of fellow touch you.'
She thought of Michaelis! He was absolutely Clifford's idea of the wrong
sort of fellow.
`But men and women may have different feelings about the wrong sort
of fellow,' she said.
`No,' he replied. `You care for me. I don't believe you would ever care
for a man who was purely antipathetic to me. Your rhythm wouldn't let you.'
She was silent. Logic might be unanswerable because it was so absolutely
wrong.
`And should you expect me to tell you?' she asked, glancing up at him
almost furtively.
`Not at all, I'd better not know...But you do agree with me, don't you,
that the casual sex thing is nothing, compared to the long life lived together?
Don't you think one can just subordinate the sex thing to the necessities
of a long life? Just use it, since that's what we're driven to? After all,
do these temporary excitements matter? Isn't the whole problem of life the
slow building up of an integral personality, through the years? living an
integrated life? There's no point in a disintegrated life. If lack of sex
is going to disintegrate you, then go out and have a love-affair. If lack
of a child is going to disintegrate you, then have a child if you possibly
can. But only do these things so that you have an integrated life, that
makes a long harmonious thing. And you and I can do that together...don't
you think?...if we adapt ourselves to the necessities, and at the same time
weave the adaptation together into a piece with our steadily-lived life.
Don't you agree?'
Connie was a little overwhelmed by his words. She knew he was right
theoretically. But when she actually touched her steadily-lived life with
him she...hesitated. Was it actually her destiny to go on weaving herself
into his life all the rest of her life? Nothing else?
Was it just that? She was to be content to weave a steady life with
him, all one fabric, but perhaps brocaded with the occasional flower of
an adventure. But how could she know what she would feel next year? How
could one ever know? How could one say Yes? for years and years? The little
yes, gone on a breath! Why should one be pinned down by that butterfly word?
Of course it had to flutter away and be gone, to be followed by other yes's
and no's! Like the straying of butterflies.
`I think you're right, Clifford. And as far as I can see I agree with
you. Only life may turn quite a new face on it all.'
`But until life turns a new face on it all, you do agree?'
`Oh yes! I think I do, really.'
She was watching a brown spaniel that had run out of a side-path, and
was looking towards them with lifted nose, making a soft, fluffy bark. A
man with a gun strode swiftly, softly out after the dog, facing their way
as if about to attack them; then stopped instead, saluted, and was turning
downhill. It was only the new game-keeper, but he had frightened Connie,
he seemed to emerge with such a swift menace. That was how she had seen
him, like the sudden rush of a threat out of nowhere.
He was a man in dark green velveteens and gaiters...the old style, with
a red face and red moustache and distant eyes. He was going quickly downhill.
`Mellors!' called Clifford.
The man faced lightly round, and saluted with a quick little gesture,
a soldier!
`Will you turn the chair round and get it started? That makes it easier,'
said Clifford.
The man at once slung his gun over his shoulder, and came forward with
the same curious swift, yet soft movements, as if keeping invisible. He
was moderately tall and lean, and was silent. He did not look at Connie
at all, only at the chair.
`Connie, this is the new game-keeper, Mellors. You haven't spoken to
her ladyship yet, Mellors?'
`No, Sir!' came the ready, neutral words.
The man lifted his hat as he stood, showing his thick, almost fair hair.
He stared straight into Connie's eyes, with a perfect, fearless, impersonal
look, as if he wanted to see what she was like. He made her feel shy. She
bent her head to him shyly, and he changed his hat to his left hand and
made her a slight bow, like a gentleman; but he said nothing at all. He
remained for a moment still, with his hat in his hand.
`But you've been here some time, haven't you?' Connie said to him.
`Eight months, Madam...your Ladyship!' he corrected himself calmly.
`And do you like it?'
She looked him in the eyes. His eyes narrowed a little, with irony,
perhaps with impudence.
`Why, yes, thank you, your Ladyship! I was reared here...'
He gave another slight bow, turned, put his hat on, and strode to take
hold of the chair. His voice on the last words had fallen into the heavy
broad drag of the dialect...perhaps also in mockery, because there had been
no trace of dialect before. He might almost be a gentleman. Anyhow, he was
a curious, quick, separate fellow, alone, but sure of himself.
Clifford started the little engine, the man carefully turned the chair,
and set it nose-forwards to the incline that curved gently to the dark hazel
thicket.
`Is that all then, Sir Clifford?' asked the man.
`No, you'd better come along in case she sticks. The engine isn't really
strong enough for the uphill work.' The man glanced round for his dog...a
thoughtful glance. The spaniel looked at him and faintly moved its tail.
A little smile, mocking or teasing her, yet gentle, came into his eyes for
a moment, then faded away, and his face was expressionless. They went fairly
quickly down the slope, the man with his hand on the rail of the chair,
steadying it. He looked like a free soldier rather than a servant. And something
about him reminded Connie of Tommy Dukes.
When they came to the hazel grove, Connie suddenly ran forward, and
opened the gate into the park. As she stood holding it, the two men looked
at her in passing, Clifford critically, the other man with a curious, cool
wonder; impersonally wanting to see what she looked like. And she saw in
his blue, impersonal eyes a look of suffering and detachment, yet a certain
warmth. But why was he so aloof, apart?
Clifford stopped the chair, once through the gate, and the man came
quickly, courteously, to close it.
`Why did you run to open?' asked Clifford in his quiet, calm voice,
that showed he was displeased. `Mellors would have done it.'
`I thought you would go straight ahead,' said Connie. `And leave you
to run after us?' said Clifford.
`Oh, well, I like to run sometimes!'
Mellors took the chair again, looking perfectly unheeding, yet Connie
felt he noted everything. As he pushed the chair up the steepish rise of
the knoll in the park, he breathed rather quickly, through parted lips.
He was rather frail really. Curiously full of vitality, but a little frail
and quenched. Her woman's instinct sensed it.
Connie fell back, let the chair go on. The day had greyed over; the
small blue sky that had poised low on its circular rims of haze was closed
in again, the lid was down, there was a raw coldness. It was going to snow.
All grey, all grey! the world looked worn out.
The chair waited at the top of the pink path. Clifford looked round
for Connie.
`Not tired, are you?' he said.
`Oh, no!' she said.
But she was. A strange, weary yearning, a dissatisfaction had started
in her. Clifford did not notice: those were not things he was aware of.
But the stranger knew. To Connie, everything in her world and life seemed
worn out, and her dissatisfaction was older than the hills.
They came to the house, and around to the back, where there were no
steps. Clifford managed to swing himself over on to the low, wheeled house-chair;
he was very strong and agile with his arms. Then Connie lifted the burden
of his dead legs after him.
The keeper, waiting at attention to be dismissed, watched everything
narrowly, missing nothing. He went pale, with a sort of fear, when he saw
Connie lifting the inert legs of the man in her arms, into the other chair,
Clifford pivoting round as she did so. He was frightened.
`Thanks, then, for the help, Mellors,' said Clifford casually, as he
began to wheel down the passage to the servants' quarters.
`Nothing else, Sir?' came the neutral voice, like one in a dream.
`Nothing, good morning!'
`Good morning, Sir.'
`Good morning! it was kind of you to push the chair up that hill...I
hope it wasn't heavy for you,' said Connie, looking back at the keeper outside
the door.
His eyes came to hers in an instant, as if wakened up. He was aware
of her.
`Oh no, not heavy!' he said quickly. Then his voice dropped again into
the broad sound of the vernacular: `Good mornin' to your Ladyship!'
`Who is your game-keeper?' Connie asked at lunch.
`Mellors! You saw him,' said Clifford.
`Yes, but where did he come from?'
`Nowhere! He was a Tevershall boy...son of a collier, I believe.'
`And was he a collier himself?'
`Blacksmith on the pit-bank, I believe: overhead smith. But he was keeper
here for two years before the war...before he joined up. My father always
had a good Opinion of him, so when he came back, and went to the pit for
a blacksmith's job, I just took him back here as keeper. I was really very
glad to get him...its almost impossible to find a good man round here for
a gamekeeper...and it needs a man who knows the people.'
`And isn't he married?'
`He was. But his wife went off with...with various men...but finally
with a collier at Stacks Gate, and I believe she's living there still.'
`So this man is alone?'
`More or less! He has a mother in the village...and a child, I believe.'
Clifford looked at Connie, with his pale, slightly prominent blue eyes,
in which a certain vagueness was coming. He seemed alert in the foreground,
but the background was like the Midlands atmosphere, haze, smoky mist. And
the haze seemed to be creeping forward. So when he stared at Connie in his
peculiar way, giving her his peculiar, precise information, she felt all
the background of his mind filling up with mist, with nothingness. And it
frightened her. It made him seem impersonal, almost to idiocy.
And dimly she realized one of the great laws of the human soul: that
when the emotional soul receives a wounding shock, which does not kill the
body, the soul seems to recover as the body recovers. But this is only appearance.
It is really only the mechanism of the re-assumed habit. Slowly, slowly
the wound to the soul begins to make itself felt, like a bruise, which Only
slowly deepens its terrible ache, till it fills all the psyche. And when
we think we have recovered and forgotten, it is then that the terrible after-effects
have to be encountered at their worst.
So it was with Clifford. Once he was `well', once he was back at Wragby,
and writing his stories, and feeling sure of life, in spite of all, he seemed
to forget, and to have recovered all his equanimity. But now, as the years
went by, slowly, slowly, Connie felt the bruise of fear and horror coming
up, and spreading in him. For a time it had been so deep as to be numb,
as it were non-existent. Now slowly it began to assert itself in a spread
of fear, almost paralysis. Mentally he still was alert. But the paralysis,
the bruise of the too- great shock, was gradually spreading in his affective
self.
And as it spread in him, Connie felt it spread in her. An inward dread,
an emptiness, an indifference to everything gradually spread in her soul.
When Clifford was roused, he could still talk brilliantly and, as it were,
command the future: as when, in the wood, he talked about her having a child,
and giving an heir to Wragby. But the day after, all the brilliant words
seemed like dead leaves, crumpling up and turning to powder, meaning really
nothing, blown away on any gust of wind. They were not the leafy words of
an effective life, young with energy and belonging to the tree. They were
the hosts of fallen leaves of a life that is ineffectual.
So it seemed to her everywhere. The colliers at Tevershall were talking
again of a strike, and it seemed to Connie there again it was not a manifestation
of energy, it was the bruise of the war that had been in abeyance, slowly
rising to the surface and creating the great ache of unrest, and stupor
of discontent. The bruise was deep, deep, deep...the bruise of the false
inhuman war. It would take many years for the living blood of the generations
to dissolve the vast black clot of bruised blood, deep inside their souls
and bodies. And it would need a new hope.
Poor Connie! As the years drew on it was the fear of nothingness In
her life that affected her. Clifford's mental life and hers gradually began
to feel like nothingness. Their marriage, their integrated life based on
a habit of intimacy, that he talked about: there were days when it all became
utterly blank and nothing. It was words, just so many words. The only reality
was nothingness, and over it a hypocrisy of words.
There was Clifford's success: the bitch-goddess! It was true he was
almost famous, and his books brought him in a thousand pounds. His photograph
appeared everywhere. There was a bust of him in one of the galleries, and
a portrait of him in two galleries. He seemed the most modern of modern
voices. With his uncanny lame instinct for publicity, he had become in four
or five years one of the best known of the young `intellectuals'. Where
the intellect came in, Connie did not quite see. Clifford was really clever
at that slightly humorous analysis of people and motives which leaves everything
in bits at the end. But it was rather like puppies tearing the sofa cushions
to bits; except that it was not young and playful, but curiously old, and
rather obstinately conceited. It was weird and it was nothing. This was
the feeling that echoed and re-echoed at the bottom of Connie's soul: it
was all flag, a wonderful display of nothingness; At the same time a display.
A display! a display! a display!
Michaelis had seized upon Clifford as the central figure for a play;
already he had sketched in the plot, and written the first act. For Michaelis
was even better than Clifford at making a display of nothingness. It was
the last bit of passion left in these men: the passion for making a display.
Sexually they were passionless, even dead. And now it was not money that
Michaelis was after. Clifford had never been primarily out for money, though
he made it where he could, for money is the seal and stamp of success. And
success was what they wanted. They wanted, both of them, to make a real
display...a man's own very display of himself that should capture for a
time the vast populace.
It was strange...the prostitution to the bitch-goddess. To Connie, since
she was really outside of it, and since she had grown numb to the thrill
of it, it was again nothingness. Even the prostitution to the bitch- goddess
was nothingness, though the men prostituted themselves innumerable times.
Nothingness even that.
Michaelis wrote to Clifford about the play. Of course she knew about
it long ago. And Clifford was again thrilled. He was going to be displayed
again this time, somebody was going to display him, and to advantage. He
invited Michaelis down to Wragby with Act I.
Michaelis came: in summer, in a pale-coloured suit and white suede gloves,
with mauve orchids for Connie, very lovely, and Act I was a great success.
Even Connie was thrilled...thrilled to what bit of marrow she had left.
And Michaelis, thrilled by his power to thrill, was really wonderful...and
quite beautiful, in Connie's eyes. She saw in him that ancient motionlessness
of a race that can't be disillusioned any more, an extreme, perhaps, of
impurity that is pure. On the far side of his supreme prostitution to the
bitch-goddess he seemed pure, pure as an African ivory mask that dreams
impurity into purity, in its ivory curves and planes.
His moment of sheer thrill with the two Chatterleys, when he simply
carried Connie and Clifford away, was one of the supreme moments of Michaelis'
life. He had succeeded: he had carried them away. Even Clifford was temporarily
in love with him...if that is the way one can put it.
So next morning Mick was more uneasy than ever; restless, devoured,
with his hands restless in his trousers pockets. Connie had not visited
him in the night...and he had not known where to find her. Coquetry!...at
his moment of triumph.
He went up to her sitting-room in the morning. She knew he would come.
And his restlessness was evident. He asked her about his play...did she
think it good? He had to hear it praised: that affected him with the last
thin thrill of passion beyond any sexual orgasm. And she praised it rapturously.
Yet all the while, at the bottom of her soul, she knew it was nothing.
`Look here!' he said suddenly at last. `Why don't you and I make a clean
thing of it? Why don't we marry?'
`But I am married,' she said, amazed, and yet feeling nothing.
`Oh that!...he'll divorce you all right...Why don't you and I marry?
I want to marry. I know it would be the best thing for me...marry and lead
a regular life. I lead the deuce of a life, simply tearing myself to pieces.
Look here, you and I, we're made for one another...hand and glove. Why don't
we marry? Do you see any reason why we shouldn't?'
Connie looked at him amazed: and yet she felt nothing. These men, they
were all alike, they left everything out. They just went off from the top
of their heads as if they were squibs, and expected you to be carried heavenwards
along with their own thin sticks.
`But I am married already,' she said. `I can't leave Clifford, you know.'
`Why not? but why not?' he cried. `He'll hardly know you've gone, after
six months. He doesn't know that anybody exists, except himself. Why the
man has no use for you at all, as far as I can see; he's entirely wrapped
up in himself.'
Connie felt there was truth in this. But she also felt that Mick was
hardly making a display of selflessness.
`Aren't all men wrapped up in themselves?' she asked.
`Oh, more or less, I allow. A man's got to be, to get through. But that's
not the point. The point is, what sort of a time can a man give a woman?
Can he give her a damn good time, or can't he? If he can't he's no right
to the woman...' He paused and gazed at her with his full, hazel eyes, almost
hypnotic. `Now I consider,' he added, `I can give a woman the darndest good
time she can ask for. I think I can guarantee myself.'
`And what sort of a good time?' asked Connie, gazing on him still with
a sort of amazement, that looked like thrill; and underneath feeling nothing
at all.
`Every sort of a good time, damn it, every sort! Dress, jewels up to
a point, any nightclub you like, know anybody you want to know, live the
pace...travel and be somebody wherever you go...Darn it, every sort of good
time.'
He spoke it almost in a brilliancy of triumph, and Connie looked at
him as if dazzled, and really feeling nothing at all. Hardly even the surface
of her mind was tickled at the glowing prospects he offered her. Hardly
even her most outside self responded, that at any other time would have
been thrilled. She just got no feeling from it, she couldn't `go off'. She
just sat and stared and looked dazzled, and felt nothing, only somewhere
she smelt the extraordinarily unpleasant smell of the bitch-goddess.
Mick sat on tenterhooks, leaning forward in his chair, glaring at her
almost hysterically: and whether he was more anxious out of vanity for her
to say Yes! or whether he was more panic-stricken for fear she should
say Yes!---who can tell?
`I should have to think about it,' she said. `I couldn't say now. It
may seem to you Clifford doesn't count, but he does. When you think how
disabled he is...'
`Oh damn it all! If a fellow's going to trade on his disabilities, I
might begin to say how lonely I am, and always have been, and all the rest
of the my-eye-Betty-Martin sob-stuff! Damn it all, if a fellow's got nothing
but disabilities to recommend him...'
He turned aside, working his hands furiously in his trousers pockets.
That evening he said to her:
`You're coming round to my room tonight, aren't you? I don't darn know
where your room is.'
`All right!' she said.
He was a more excited lover that night, with his strange, small boy's
frail nakedness. Connie found it impossible to come to her crisis before
he had really finished his. And he roused a certain craving passion in her,
with his little boy's nakedness and softness; she had to go on after he
had finished, in the wild tumult and heaving of her loins, while he heroically
kept himself up, and present in her, with all his will and self- offering,
till she brought about her own crisis, with weird little cries.
When at last he drew away from her, he said, in a bitter, almost sneering
little voice:
`You couldn't go off at the same time as a man, could you? You'd have
to bring yourself off! You'd have to run the show!'
This little speech, at the moment, was one of the shocks of her life.
Because that passive sort of giving himself was so obviously his only real
mode of intercourse.
`What do you mean?' she said.
`You know what I mean. You keep on for hours after I've gone off...and
I have to hang on with my teeth till you bring yourself off by your own
exertions.'
She was stunned by this unexpected piece of brutality, at the moment
when she was glowing with a sort of pleasure beyond words, and a sort of
love for him. Because, after all, like so many modern men, he was finished
almost before he had begun. And that forced the woman to be active.
`But you want me to go on, to get my own satisfaction?' she said.
He laughed grimly: `I want it!' he said. `That's good! I want to hang
on with my teeth clenched, while you go for me!'
`But don't you?' she insisted.
He avoided the question. `All the darned women are like that,' he said.
`Either they don't go off at all, as if they were dead in there...or else
they wait till a chap's really done, and then they start in to bring themselves
off, and a chap's got to hang on. I never had a woman yet who went off just
at the same moment as I did.'
Connie only half heard this piece of novel, masculine information. She
was only stunned by his feeling against her...his incomprehensible brutality.
She felt so innocent.
`But you want me to have my satisfaction too, don't you?' she repeated.
`Oh, all right! I'm quite willing. But I'm darned if hanging on waiting
for a woman to go off is much of a game for a man...'
This speech was one of the crucial blows of Connie's life. It killed
something in her. She had not been so very keen on Michaelis; till he started
it, she did not want him. It was as if she never positively wanted him.
But once he had started her, it seemed only natural for her to come to her
own crisis with him. Almost she had loved him for it...almost that night
she loved him, and wanted to marry him.
Perhaps instinctively he knew it, and that was why he had to bring down
the whole show with a smash; the house of cards. Her whole sexual feeling
for him, or for any man, collapsed that night. Her life fell apart from
his as completely as if he had never existed.
And she went through the days drearily. There was nothing now but this
empty treadmill of what Clifford called the integrated life, the long living
together of two people, who are in the habit of being in the same house
with one another.
Nothingness! To accept the great nothingness of life seemed to be the
one end of living. All the many busy and important little things that make
up the grand sum-total of nothingness! Chapter 6
`Why don't men and women really like one another nowadays?' Connie asked
Tommy Dukes, who was more or less her oracle. `Oh, but they do! I don't
think since the human species was invented, there has ever been a time when
men and women have liked one another as much as they do today. Genuine liking!
Take myself. I really like women better than men; they are braver, one can
be more frank with them.' Connie pondered this. `Ah, yes, but you never
have anything to do with them!' she said. `I? What am I doing but talking
perfectly sincerely to a woman at this moment?' `Yes, talking...' `And what
more could I do if you were a man, than talk perfectly sincerely to you?'
`Nothing perhaps. But a woman...' `A woman wants you to like her and talk
to her, and at the same time love her and desire her; and it seems to me
the two things are mutually exclusive.' `But they shouldn't be!' `No doubt
water ought not to be so wet as it is; it overdoes it in wetness. But there
it is! I like women and talk to them, and therefore I don't love them and
desire them. The two things don't happen at the same time in me.' `I think
they ought to.' `All right. The fact that things ought to be something else
than what they are, is not my department. Connie considered this. `It isn't
true,' she said. `Men can love women and talk to them. I don't see how they
can love them without talking, and being friendly and intimate.
How can they?' `Well,' he said, `I don't know. What's the use of my generalizing?
I only know my own case. I like women, but I don't desire them. I like talking
to them; but talking to them, though it makes me intimate in one direction,
sets me poles apart from them as far as kissing is concerned. So there you
are! But don't take me as a general example, probably I'm just a special
case: one of the men who like women, but don't love women, and even hate
them if they force me into a pretence of love, or an entangled appearance.
`But doesn't it make you sad?' `Why should it? Not a bit! I look at Charlie
May, and the rest of the men who have affairs...No, I don't envy them a
bit! If fate sent me a woman I wanted, well and good. Since I don't know
any woman I want, and never see one...why, I presume I'm cold, and really
like some women very much.' `Do you like me?' `Very much! And you
see there's no question of kissing between us, is there?' `None at all!'
said Connie. `But oughtn't there to be?' `Why, in God's name? I
like Clifford, but what would you say if I went and kissed him?' `But isn't
there a difference?' `Where does it lie, as far as we're concerned? We're
all intelligent human beings, and the male and female business is in abeyance.
Just in abeyance. How would you like me to start acting up like a continental
male at this moment, and parading the sex thing?' `I should hate it.' `Well
then! I tell you, if I'm really a male thing at all, I never run across
the female of my species. And I don't miss her, I just like women. Who's
going to force me into loving or pretending to love them, working up the
sex game?' `No, I'm not. But isn't something wrong?' `You may feel it, I
don't.' `Yes, I feel something is wrong between men and women. A woman has
no glamour for a man any more.' `Has a man for a woman?' She pondered the
other side of the question. `Not much,' she said truthfully. `Then let's
leave it all alone, and just be decent and simple, like proper human beings
with one another. Be damned to the artificial sex-compulsion! I refuse it!'
Connie knew he was right, really. Yet it left her feeling so forlorn, so
forlorn and stray. Like a chip on a dreary pond, she felt. What was the
point, of her or anything? It was her youth which rebelled. These men seemed
so old and cold. Everything seemed old and cold. And Michaelis let one down
so; he was no good. The men didn't want one; they just didn't really want
a woman, even Michaelis didn't. And the bounders who pretended they did,
and started working the sex game, they were worse than ever. It was just
dismal, and one had to put up with it. It was quite true, men had no real
glamour for a woman: if you could fool yourself into thinking they had,
even as she had fooled herself over Michaelis, that was the best you could
do. Meanwhile you just lived on and there was nothing to it. She understood
perfectly well why people had cocktail parties, and jazzed, and Charlestoned
till they were ready to drop. You had to take it out some way or other,
your youth, or it ate you up. But what a ghastly thing, this youth! You
felt as old as Methuselah, and yet the thing fizzed somehow, and didn't
let you be comfortable. A mean sort of life! And no prospect! She almost
wished she had gone off with Mick, and made her life one long cocktail party,
and jazz evening. Anyhow that was better than just mooning yourself into
the grave. On one of her bad days she went out alone to walk in the wood,
ponderously, heeding nothing, not even noticing where she was. The report
of a gun not far off startled and angered her. Then, as she went, she heard
voices, and recoiled. People! She didn't want people. But her quick ear
caught another sound, and she roused; it was a child sobbing. At once she
attended; someone was ill-treating a child. She strode swinging down the
wet drive, her sullen resentment uppermost. She felt just prepared to make
a scene. Turning the corner, she saw two figures in the drive beyond her:
the keeper, and a little girl in a purple coat and moleskin cap, crying.
`Ah, shut it up, tha false little bitch!' came the man's angry voice, and
the child sobbed louder. Constance strode nearer, with blazing eyes. The
man turned and looked at her, saluting coolly, but he was pale with anger.
`What's the matter? Why is she crying?' demanded Constance, peremptory but
a little breathless. A faint smile like a sneer came on the man's face.
`Nay, yo mun ax 'er,' he replied callously, in broad vernacular. Connie
felt as if he had hit her in the face, and she changed colour. Then she
gathered her defiance, and looked at him, her dark blue eyes blazing rather
vaguely. `I asked you,' she panted. He gave a queer little bow,
lifting his hat. `You did, your Ladyship,' he said; then, with a return
to the vernacular: `but I canna tell yer.' And he became a soldier, inscrutable,
only pale with annoyance. Connie turned to the child, a ruddy, black-haired
thing of nine or ten. `What is it, dear? Tell me why you're crying!' she
said, with the conventionalized sweetness suitable. More violent sobs, self-conscious.
Still more sweetness on Connie's part. `There, there, don't you cry! Tell
me what they've done to you!'...an intense tenderness of tone. At the same
time she felt in the pocket of her knitted jacket, and luckily found a sixpence.
`Don't you cry then!' she said, bending in front of the child. `See what
I've got for you!' Sobs, snuffles, a fist taken from a blubbered face, and
a black shrewd eye cast for a second on the sixpence. Then more sobs, but
subduing. `There, tell me what's the matter, tell me!' said Connie, putting
the coin into the child's chubby hand, which closed over it. `It's the...it's
the...pussy!' Shudders of subsiding sobs. `What pussy, dear?' After a silence
the shy fist, clenching on sixpence, pointed into the bramble brake. `There!'
Connie looked, and there, sure enough, was a big black cat, stretched out
grimly, with a bit of blood on it. `Oh!' she said in repulsion. `A poacher,
your Ladyship,' said the man satirically. She glanced at him angrily. `No
wonder the child cried,' she said, `if you shot it when she was there. No
wonder she cried!' He looked into Connie's eyes, laconic, contemptuous,
not hiding his feelings. And again Connie flushed; she felt she had been
making a scene, the man did not respect her. `What is your name?' she said
playfully to the child. `Won't you tell me your name?' Sniffs; then very
affectedly in a piping voice: `Connie Mellors!' `Connie Mellors! Well, that's
a nice name! And did you come out with your Daddy, and he shot a pussy?
But it was a bad pussy!' The child looked at her, with bold, dark eyes of
scrutiny, sizing her up, and her condolence. `I wanted to stop with my Gran,'
said the little girl. `Did you? But where is your Gran?' The child lifted
an arm, pointing down the drive. `At th' cottidge.' `At the cottage! And
would you like to go back to her?' Sudden, shuddering quivers of reminiscent
sobs. `Yes!' `Come then, shall I take you? Shall I take you to your Gran?
Then your Daddy can do what he has to do.' She turned to the man. `It is
your little girl, isn't it?' He saluted, and made a slight movement of the
head in affirmation. `I suppose I can take her to the cottage?' asked Connie.
`If your Ladyship wishes.' Again he looked into her eyes, with that calm,
searching detached glance. A man very much alone, and on his own. `Would
you like to come with me to the cottage, to your Gran, dear?' The child
peeped up again. `Yes!' she simpered. Connie disliked her; the spoilt, false
little female. Nevertheless she wiped her face and took her hand. The keeper
saluted in silence. `Good morning!' said Connie. It was nearly a mile to
the cottage, and Connie senior was well red by Connie junior by the time
the game- keeper's picturesque little home was in sight. The child was already
as full to the brim with tricks as a little monkey, and so self-assured.
At the cottage the door stood open, and there was a rattling heard inside.
Connie lingered, the child slipped her hand, and ran indoors. `Gran! Gran!'
`Why, are yer back a'ready!' The grandmother had been blackleading the stove,
it was Saturday morning. She came to the door in her sacking apron, a blacklead-brush
in her hand, and a black smudge on her nose. She was a little, rather dry
woman. `Why, whatever?' she said, hastily wiping her arm across her face
as she saw Connie standing outside. `Good morning!' said Connie. `She was
crying, so I just brought her home.' The grandmother looked around swiftly
at the child: `Why, wheer was yer Dad?' The little girl clung to her grandmother's
skirts and simpered. `He was there,' said Connie, `but he'd shot a poaching
cat, and the child was upset.' `Oh, you'd no right t'ave bothered, Lady
Chatterley, I'm sure! I'm sure it was very good of you, but you shouldn't
'ave bothered. Why, did ever you see!'---and the old woman turned to the
child: `Fancy Lady Chatterley takin' all that trouble over yer! Why, she
shouldn't 'ave bothered!' `It was no bother, just a walk,' said Connie smiling.
`Why, I'm sure 'twas very kind of you, I must say! So she was crying! I
knew there'd be something afore they got far. She's frightened of 'im, that's
wheer it is. Seems 'e's almost a stranger to 'er, fair a stranger, and I
don't think they're two as'd hit it off very easy. He's got funny ways.'
Connie didn't know what to say. `Look, Gran!' simpered the child. The old
woman looked down at the sixpence in the little girl's hand. `An' sixpence
an' all! Oh, your Ladyship, you shouldn't, you shouldn't. Why, isn't Lady
Chatterley good to yer! My word, you're a lucky girl this morning!' She
pronounced the name, as all the people did: Chat'ley.---Isn't Lady Chat'ley
good to you!'--- Connie couldn't help looking at the old woman's
nose, and the latter again vaguely wiped her face with the back of her wrist,
but missed the smudge. Connie was moving away `Well, thank you ever so much,
Lady Chat'ley, I'm sure. Say thank you to Lady Chat'ley!'---this last to
the child. `Thank you,' piped the child. `There's a dear!' laughed Connie,
and she moved away, saying `Good morning', heartily relieved to get away
from the contact. Curious, she thought, that that thin, proud man should
have that little, sharp woman for a mother! And the old woman, as soon as
Connie had gone, rushed to the bit of mirror in the scullery, and looked
at her face. Seeing it, she stamped her foot with impatience. `Of course
she had to catch me in my coarse apron, and a dirty face! Nice idea she'd
get of me!' Connie went slowly home to Wragby. `Home!'...it was a warm word
to use for that great, weary warren. But then it was a word that had had
its day. It was somehow cancelled. All the great words, it seemed to Connie,
were cancelled for her generation: love, joy, happiness, home, mother, father,
husband, all these great, dynamic words were half dead now, and dying from
day to day. Home was a place you lived in, love was a thing you didn't fool
yourself about, joy was a word you applied to a good Charleston, happiness
was a term of hypocrisy used to bluff other people, a father was an individual
who enjoyed his own existence, a husband was a man you lived with and kept
going in spirits. As for sex, the last of the great words, it was just a
cocktail term for an excitement that bucked you up for a while, then left
you more raggy than ever. Frayed! It was as if the very material you were
made of was cheap stuff, and was fraying out to nothing. All that really
remained was a stubborn stoicism: and in that there was a certain pleasure.
In the very experience of the nothingness of life, phase after phase, étape
after étape, there was a certain grisly satisfaction. So
that's that! Always this was the last utterance: home, love, marriage,
Michaelis: So that's that! And when one died, the last words to
life would be: So that's that! Money? Perhaps one couldn't say
the same there. Money one always wanted. Money, Success, the bitch- goddess,
as Tommy Dukes persisted in calling it, after Henry James, that was a permanent
necessity. You couldn't spend your last sou, and say finally: So that's
that! No, if you lived even another ten minutes, you wanted a few
more sous for something or other. Just to keep the business mechanically
going, you needed money. You had to have it. Money you have to
have. You needn't really have anything else. So that's that! Since, of course,
it's not your own fault you are alive. Once you are alive, money is a necessity,
and the only absolute necessity. All the rest you can get along without,
at a pinch. But not money. Emphatically, that's that! She thought
of Michaelis, and the money she might have had with him; and even that she
didn't want. She preferred the lesser amount which she helped Clifford to
make by his writing. That she actually helped to make.---`Clifford and I
together, we make twelve hundred a year out of writing'; so she put it to
herself. Make money! Make it! Out of nowhere. Wring it out of the thin air!
The last feat to be humanly proud of! The rest all-my-eye-Betty-Martin.
So she plodded home to Clifford, to join forces with him again, to make
another story out of nothingness: and a story meant money. Clifford seemed
to care very much whether his stories were considered first-class literature
or not. Strictly, she didn't care. Nothing in it! said her father. Twelve
hundred pounds last year! was the retort simple and final. If you were young,
you just set your teeth, and bit on and held on, till the money began to
flow from the invisible; it was a question of power. It was a question of
will; a subtle, subtle, powerful emanation of will out of yourself brought
back to you the mysterious nothingness of money a word on a bit of paper.
It was a sort of magic, certainly it was triumph. The bitch-goddess! Well,
if one had to prostitute oneself, let it be to a bitch-goddess! One could
always despise her even while one prostituted oneself to her, which was
good. Clifford, of course, had still many childish taboos and fetishes.
He wanted to be thought `really good', which was all cock-a-hoopy nonsense.
What was really good was what actually caught on. It was no good being really
good and getting left with it. It seemed as if most of the `really good'
men just missed the bus. After all you only lived one life, and if you missed
the bus, you were just left on the pavement, along with the rest of the
failures. Connie was contemplating a winter in London with Clifford, next
winter. He and she had caught the bus all right, so they might as well ride
on top for a bit, and show it. The worst of it was, Clifford tended to become
vague, absent, and to fall into fits of vacant depression. It was the wound
to his psyche coming out. But it made Connie want to scream. Oh God, if
the mechanism of the consciousness itself was going to go wrong, then what
was one to do? Hang it all, one did one's bit! Was one to be let down absolutely?
Sometimes she wept bitterly, but even as she wept she was saying to herself:
Silly fool, wetting hankies! As if that would get you anywhere! Since Michaelis,
she had made up her mind she wanted nothing. That seemed the simplest solution
of the otherwise insoluble. She wanted nothing more than what she'd got;
only she wanted to get ahead with what she'd got: Clifford, the stories,
Wragby, the Lady-Chatterley business, money and fame, such as it was...she
wanted to go ahead with it all. Love, sex, all that sort of stuff, just
water-ices! Lick it up and forget it. If you don't hang on to it in your
mind, it's nothing. Sex especially...nothing! Make up your mind to it, and
you've solved the problem. Sex and a cocktail: they both lasted about as
long, had the same effect, and amounted to about the same thing. But a child,
a baby! That was still one of the sensations. She would venture very gingerly
on that experiment. There was the man to consider, and it was curious, there
wasn't a man in the world whose children you wanted. Mick's children! Repulsive
thought! As lief have a child to a rabbit! Tommy Dukes? he was very nice,
but somehow you couldn't associate him with a baby, another generation.
He ended in himself. And out of all the rest of Clifford's pretty wide acquaintance,
there was not a man who did not rouse her contempt, when she thought of
having a child by him. There were several who would have been quite possible
as lover, even Mick. But to let them breed a child on you! Ugh! Humiliation
and abomination. So that was that! Nevertheless, Connie had the child at
the back of her mind. Wait! wait! She would sift the generations of men
through her sieve, and see if she couldn't find one who would do.---`Go
ye into the streets and by ways of Jerusalem, and see if you can find a
man.' It had been impossible to find a man in the Jerusalem of
the prophet, though there were thousands of male humans. But a man!
C'est une autre chose! She had an idea that he would have to be a foreigner:
not an Englishman, still less an Irishman. A real foreigner. But wait! wait!
Next winter she would get Clifford to London; the following winter she would
get him abroad to the South of France, Italy. Wait! She was in no hurry
about the child. That was her own private affair, and the one point on which,
in her own queer, female way, she was serious to the bottom of her soul.
She was not going to risk any chance comer, not she! One might take a lover
almost at any moment, but a man who should beget a child on one...wait!
wait! it's a very different matter.---`Go ye into the streets and byways
of Jerusalem...' It was not a question of love; it was a question of a man.
Why, one might even rather hate him, personally. Yet if he was the man,
what would one's personal hate matter? This business concerned another part
of oneself. It had rained as usual, and the paths were too sodden for Clifford's
chair, but Connie would go out. She went out alone every day now, mostly
in the wood, where she was really alone. She saw nobody there. This day,
however, Clifford wanted to send a message to the keeper, and as the boy
was laid up with influenza, somebody always seemed to have influenza at
Wragby, Connie said she would call at the cottage. The air was soft and
dead, as if all the world were slowly dying. Grey and clammy and silent,
even from the shuffling of the collieries, for the pits were working short
time, and today they were stopped altogether. The end of all things! In
the wood all was utterly inert and motionless, only great drops fell from
the bare boughs, with a hollow little crash. For the rest, among the old
trees was depth within depth of grey, hopeless inertia, silence, nothingness.
Connie walked dimly on. From the old wood came an ancient melancholy, somehow
soothing to her, better than the harsh insentience of the outer world. She
liked the inwardness of the remnant of forest, the unspeaking reticence
of the old trees. They seemed a very power of silence, and yet a vital presence.
They, too, were waiting: obstinately, stoically waiting, and giving off
a potency of silence. Perhaps they were only waiting for the end; to be
cut down, cleared away, the end of the forest, for them the end of all things.
But perhaps their strong and aristocratic silence, the silence of strong
trees, meant something else. As she came out of the wood on the north side,
the keeper's cottage, a rather dark, brown stone cottage, with gables and
a handsome chimney, looked uninhabited, it was so silent and alone. But
a thread of smoke rose from the chimney, and the little railed-in garden
in the front of the house was dug and kept very tidy. The door was shut.
Now she was here she felt a little shy of the man, with his curious far-seeing
eyes. She did not like bringing him orders, and felt like going away again.
She knocked softly, no one came. She knocked again, but still not loudly.
There was no answer. She peeped through the window, and saw the dark little
room, with its almost sinister privacy, not wanting to be invaded. She stood
and listened, and it seemed to her she heard sounds from the back of the
cottage. Having failed to make herself heard, her mettle was roused, she
would not be defeated. So she went round the side of the house. At the back
of the cottage the land rose steeply, so the back yard was sunken, and enclosed
by a low stone wall. She turned the corner of the house and stopped. In
the little yard two paces beyond her, the man was washing himself, utterly
unaware. He was naked to the hips, his velveteen breeches slipping down
over his slender loins. And his white slim back was curved over a big bowl
of soapy water, in which he ducked his head, shaking his head with a queer,
quick little motion, lifting his slender white arms, and pressing the soapy
water from his ears, quick, subtle as a weasel playing with water, and utterly
alone. Connie backed away round the corner of the house, and hurried away
to the wood. In spite of herself, she had had a shock. After all, merely
a man washing himself, commonplace enough, Heaven knows! Yet in some curious
way it was a visionary experience: it had hit her in the middle of the body.
She saw the clumsy breeches slipping down over the pure, delicate, white
loins, the bones showing a little, and the sense of aloneness, of a creature
purely alone, overwhelmed her. Perfect, white, solitary nudity of a creature
that lives alone, and inwardly alone. And beyond that, a certain beauty
of a pure creature. Not the stuff of beauty, not even the body of beauty,
but a lambency, the warm, white flame of a single life, revealing itself
in contours that one might touch: a body! Connie had received the shock
of vision in her womb, and she knew it; it lay inside her. But with her
mind she was inclined to ridicule. A man washing himself in a back yard!
No doubt with evil-smelling yellow soap! She was rather annoyed; why should
she be made to stumble on these vulgar privacies? So she walked away from
herself, but after a while she sat down on a stump. She was too confused
to think. But in the coil of her confusion, she was determined to deliver
her message to the fellow. She would not he balked. She must give him time
to dress himself, but not time to go out. He was probably preparing to go
out somewhere. So she sauntered slowly back, listening. As she came near,
the cottage looked just the same. A dog barked, and she knocked at the door,
her heart beating in spite of herself. She heard the man coming lightly
downstairs. He opened the door quickly, and startled her. He looked uneasy
himself, but instantly a laugh came on his face. `Lady Chatterley!' he said.
`Will you come in?' His manner was so perfectly easy and good, she stepped
over the threshold into the rather dreary little room. `I only called with
a message from Sir Clifford,' she said in her soft, rather breathless voice.
The man was looking at her with those blue, all-seeing eyes of his, which
made her turn her face aside a little. He thought her comely, almost beautiful,
in her shyness, and he took command of the situation himself at once. `Would
you care to sit down?' he asked, presuming she would not. The door stood
open. `No thanks! Sir Clifford wondered if you would and she delivered her
message, looking unconsciously into his eyes again. And now his eyes looked
warm and kind, particularly to a woman, wonderfully warm, and kind, and
at ease. `Very good, your Ladyship. I will see to it at once.' Taking an
order, his whole self had changed, glazed over with a sort of hardness and
distance. Connie hesitated, she ought to go. But she looked round the clean,
tidy, rather dreary little sitting-room with something like dismay. `Do
you live here quite alone?' she asked. `Quite alone, your Ladyship.' `But
your mother...?' `She lives in her own cottage in the village.' `With the
child?' asked Connie. `With the child!' And his plain, rather worn face
took on an indefinable look of derision. It was a face that changed all
the time, baking. `No,' he said, seeing Connie stand at a loss, `my mother
comes and cleans up for me on Saturdays; I do the rest myself.' Again Connie
looked at him. His eyes were smiling again, a little mockingly, but warm
and blue, and somehow kind. She wondered at him. He was in trousers and
flannel shirt and a grey tie, his hair soft and damp, his face rather pale
and worn-looking. When the eyes ceased to laugh they looked as if they had
suffered a great deal, still without losing their warmth. But a pallor of
isolation came over him, she was not really there for him. She wanted to
say so many things, and she said nothing. Only she looked up at him again,
and remarked: `I hope I didn't disturb you?' The faint smile of mockery
narrowed his eyes. `Only combing my hair, if you don't mind. I'm sorry I
hadn't a coat on, but then I had no idea who was knocking. Nobody knocks
here, and the unexpected sounds ominous.' He went in front of her down the
garden path to hold the gate. In his shirt, without the clumsy velveteen
coat, she saw again how slender he was, thin, stooping a little. Yet, as
she passed him, there was something young and bright in his fair hair, and
his quick eyes. He would be a man about thirty-seven or eight. She plodded
on into the wood, knowing he was looking after her; he upset her so much,
in spite of herself. And he, as he went indoors, was thinking: `She's nice,
she's real! She's nicer than she knows.' She wondered very much about him;
he seemed so unlike a game-keeper, so unlike a working-man anyhow; although
he had something in common with the local people. But also something very
uncommon. `The game-keeper, Mellors, is a curious kind of person,' she said
to Clifford; `he might almost be a gentleman.' `Might he?' said Clifford.
`I hadn't noticed.' `But isn't there something special about him?' Connie
insisted. `I think he's quite a nice fellow, but I know very little about
him. He only came out of the army last year, less than a year ago. From
India, I rather think. He may have picked up certain tricks out there, perhaps
he was an officer's servant, and improved on his position. Some of the men
were like that. But it does them no good, they have to fall back into their
old places when they get home again.' Connie gazed at Clifford contemplatively.
She saw in him the peculiar tight rebuff against anyone of the lower classes
who might be really climbing up, which she knew was characteristic of his
breed. `But don't you think there is something special about him?' she asked.
`Frankly, no! Nothing I had noticed.' He looked at her curiously, uneasily,
half-suspiciously. And she felt he wasn't telling her the real truth; he
wasn't telling himself the real truth, that was it. He disliked any suggestion
of a really exceptional human being. People must be more or less at his
level, or below it. Connie felt again the tightness, niggardliness of the
men of her generation. They were so tight, so scared of life! Chapter 7
When Connie went up to her bedroom she did what she had not done for
a long time: took off all her clothes, and looked at herself naked in the
huge mirror. She did not know what she was looking for, or at, very definitely,
yet she moved the lamp till it shone full on her.
And she thought, as she had thought so often, what a frail, easily hurt,
rather pathetic thing a human body is, naked; somehow a little unfinished,
incomplete!
She had been supposed to have rather a good figure, but now she was
out of fashion: a little too female, not enough like an adolescent boy.
She was not very tall, a bit Scottish and short; but she had a certain fluent,
down-slipping grace that might have been beauty. Her skin was faintly tawny,
her limbs had a certain stillness, her body should have had a full, down-slipping
richness; but it lacked something.
Instead of ripening its firm, down-running curves, her body was flattening
and going a little harsh. It was as if it had not had enough sun and warmth;
it was a little greyish and sapless.
Disappointed of its real womanhood, it had not succeeded in becoming
boyish, and unsubstantial, and transparent; instead it had gone opaque.
Her breasts were rather small, and dropping pear-shaped. But they were
unripe, a little bitter, without meaning hanging there. And her belly had
lost the fresh, round gleam it had had when she was young, in the days of
her German boy, who really loved her physically. Then it was young and expectant,
with a real look of its own. Now it was going slack, and a little flat,
thinner, but with a slack thinness. Her thighs, too, they used to look so
quick and glimpsy in their female roundness, somehow they too were going
flat, slack, meaningless.
Her body was going meaningless, going dull and opaque, so much insignificant
substance. It made her feel immensely depressed and hopeless. What hope
was there? She was old, old at twenty-seven, with no gleam and sparkle in
the flesh. Old through neglect and denial, yes, denial. Fashionable women
kept their bodies bright like delicate porcelain, by external attention.
There was nothing inside the porcelain; but she was not even as bright as
that. The mental life! Suddenly she hated it with a rushing fury, the swindle!
She looked in the other mirror's reflection at her back, her waist,
her loins. She was getting thinner, but to her it was not becoming. The
crumple of her waist at the back, as she bent back to look, was a little
weary; and it used to be so gay-looking. And the longish slope of her haunches
and her buttocks had lost its gleam and its sense of richness. Gone! Only
the German boy had loved it, and he was ten years dead, very nearly. How
time went by! Ten years dead, and she was only twenty-seven. The healthy
boy with his fresh, clumsy sensuality that she had then been so scornful
of! Where would she find it now? It was gone out of men. They had their
pathetic, two-seconds spasms like Michaelis; but no healthy human sensuality,
that warms the blood and freshens the whole being.
Still she thought the most beautiful part of her was the long-sloping
fall of the haunches from the socket of the back, and the slumberous, round
stillness of the buttocks. Like hillocks of sand, the Arabs say, soft and
downward-slipping with a long slope. Here the life still lingered hoping.
But here too she was thinner, and going unripe, astringent.
But the front of her body made her miserable. It was already beginning
to slacken, with a slack sort of thinness, almost withered, going old before
it had ever really lived. She thought of the child she might somehow bear.
Was she fit, anyhow?
She slipped into her nightdress, and went to bed, where she sobbed bitterly.
And in her bitterness burned a cold indignation against Clifford, and his
writings and his talk: against all the men of his sort who defrauded a woman
even of her own body.
Unjust! Unjust! The sense of deep physical injustice burned to her very
soul.
But in the morning, all the same, she was up at seven, and going downstairs
to Clifford. She had to help him in all the intimate things, for he had
no man, and refused a woman-servant. The housekeeper's husband, who had
known him as a boy, helped him, and did any heavy lifting; but Connie did
the personal things, and she did them willingly. It was a demand on her,
but she had wanted to do what she could.
So she hardly ever went away from Wragby, and never for more than a
day or two; when Mrs Betts, the housekeeper, attended to Clifford. He, as
was inevitable in the course of time, took all the service for granted.
It was natural he should.
And yet, deep inside herself, a sense of injustice, of being defrauded,
had begun to burn in Connie. The physical sense of injustice is a dangerous
feeling, once it is awakened. It must have outlet, or it eats away the one
in whom it is aroused. Poor Clifford, he was not to blame. His was the greater
misfortune. It was all part of the general catastrophe.
And yet was he not in a way to blame? This lack of warmth, this lack
of the simple, warm, physical contact, was he not to blame for that? He
was never really warm, nor even kind, only thoughtful, considerate, in a
well-bred, cold sort of way! But never warm as a man can be warm to a woman,
as even Connie's father could be warm to her, with the warmth of a man who
did himself well, and intended to, but who still could comfort it woman
with a bit of his masculine glow.
But Clifford was not like that. His whole race was not like that. They
were all inwardly hard and separate, and warmth to them was just bad taste.
You had to get on without it, and hold your own; which was all very well
if you were of the same class and race. Then you could keep yourself cold
and be very estimable, and hold your own, and enjoy the satisfaction of
holding it. But if you were of another class and another race it wouldn't
do; there was no fun merely holding your own, and feeling you belonged to
the ruling class. What was the point, when even the smartest aristocrats
had really nothing positive of their own to hold, and their rule was really
a farce, not rule at all? What was the point? It was all cold nonsense.
A sense of rebellion smouldered in Connie. What was the good of it all?
What was the good of her sacrifice, her devoting her life to Clifford? What
was she serving, after all? A cold spirit of vanity, that had no warm human
contacts, and that was as corrupt as any low-born Jew, in craving for prostitution
to the bitch-goddess, Success. Even Clifford's cool and contactless assurance
that he belonged to the ruling class didn't prevent his tongue lolling out
of his mouth, as he panted after the bitch-goddess. After all, Michaelis
was really more dignified in the matter, and far, far more successful. Really,
if you looked closely at Clifford, he was a buffoon, and a buffoon is more
humiliating than a bounder.
As between the two men, Michaelis really had far more use for her than
Clifford had. He had even more need of her. Any good nurse can attend to
crippled legs! And as for the heroic effort, Michaelis was a heroic rat,
and Clifford was very much of a poodle showing off.
There were people staying in the house, among them Clifford's Aunt Eva,
Lady Bennerley. She was a thin woman of sixty, with a red nose, a widow,
and still something of a grande dame. She belonged to one of the
best families, and had the character to carry it off. Connie liked her,
she was so perfectly simple and [rank, as far as she intended to be frank,
and superficially kind. Inside herself she was a past-mistress in holding
her own, and holding other people a little lower. She was not at all a snob:
far too sure of herself. She was perfect at the social sport of coolly holding
her own, and making other people defer to her.
She was kind to Connie, and tried to worm into her woman's soul with
the sharp gimlet of her well-born observations.
`You're quite wonderful, in my opinion,' she said to Connie. `You've
done wonders for Clifford. I never saw any budding genius myself, and there
he is, all the rage.' Aunt Eva was quite complacently proud of Clifford's
success. Another feather in the family cap! She didn't care a straw about
his books, but why should she?
`Oh, I don't think it's my doing,' said Connie.
`It must be! Can't be anybody else's. And it seems to me you don't get
enough out of it.'
`How?'
`Look at the way you are shut up here. I said to Clifford: If that child
rebels one day you'll have yourself to thank!'
`But Clifford never denies me anything,' said Connie.
`Look here, my dear child'---and Lady Bennerley laid her thin hand on
Connie's arm. `A woman has to live her life, or live to repent not having
lived it. Believe me!' And she took another sip of brandy, which maybe was
her form of repentance.
`But I do live my life, don't I?'
`Not in my idea! Clifford should bring you to London, and let you go
about. His sort of friends are all right for him, but what are they for
you? If I were you I should think it wasn't good enough. You'll let your
youth slip by, and you'll spend your old age, and your middle age too, repenting
it.'
Her ladyship lapsed into contemplative silence, soothed by the brandy.
But Connie was not keen on going to London, and being steered into the
smart world by Lady Bennerley. She didn't feel really smart, it wasn't interesting.
And she did feel the peculiar, withering coldness under it all; like the
soil of Labrador, which his gay little flowers on its surface, and a foot
down is frozen.
Tommy Dukes was at Wragby, and another man, Harry Winterslow, and Jack
Strangeways with his wife Olive. The talk was much more desultory than when
only the cronies were there, and everybody was a bit bored, for the weather
was bad, and there was only billiards, and the pianola to dance to.
Olive was reading a book about the future, when babies would be bred
in bottles, and women would be `immunized'.
`Jolly good thing too!' she said. `Then a woman can live her own life.'
Strangeways wanted children, and she didn't.
`How'd you like to be immunized?' Winterslow asked her, with an ugly
smile.
`I hope I am; naturally,' she said. `Anyhow the future's going to have
more sense, and a woman needn't be dragged down by her functions.'
`Perhaps she'll float off into space altogether,' said Dukes.
`I do think sufficient civilization ought to eliminate a lot of the
physical disabilities,' said Clifford. `All the love-business for example,
it might just as well go. I suppose it would if we could breed babies in
bottles.'
`No!' cried Olive. `That might leave all the more room for fun.'
`I suppose,' said Lady Bennerley, contemplatively, `if the love-business
went, something else would take its place. Morphia, perhaps. A little morphine
in all the air. It would be wonderfully refreshing for everybody.'
`The government releasing ether into the air on Saturdays, for a cheerful
weekend!' said Jack. `Sounds all right, but where should we be by Wednesday?'
`So long as you can forget your body you are happy,' said Lady Bennerley.
`And the moment you begin to be aware of your body, you are wretched. So,
if civilization is any good, it has to help us to forget our bodies, and
then time passes happily without our knowing it.'
`Help us to get rid of our bodies altogether,' said Winterslow. `It's
quite time man began to improve on his own nature, especially the physical
side of it.'
`Imagine if we floated like tobacco smoke,' said Connie.
`It won't happen,' said Dukes. `Our old show will come flop; our civilization
is going to fall. It's going down the bottomless pit, down the chasm. And
believe me, the only bridge across the chasm will be the phallus!'
`Oh do! do be impossible, General!' cried Olive.
`I believe our civilization is going to collapse,' said Aunt Eva.
`And what will come after it?' asked Clifford.
`I haven't the faintest idea, but something, I suppose,' said the elderly
lady.
`Connie says people like wisps of smoke, and Olive says immunized women,
and babies in bottles, and Dukes says the phallus is the bridge to what
comes next. I wonder what it will really be?' said Clifford.
`Oh, don't bother! let's get on with today,' said Olive. `Only hurry
up with the breeding bottle, and let us poor women off.'
`There might even be real men, in the next phase,' said Tommy. `Real,
intelligent, wholesome men, and wholesome nice women! Wouldn't that be a
change, an enormous change from us? We're not men, and the women
aren't women. We're only cerebrating make-shifts, mechanical and intellectual
experiments. There may even come a civilization of genuine men and women,
instead of our little lot of clever-jacks, all at the intelligence-age of
seven. It would be even more amazing than men of smoke or babies in bottles.'
`Oh, when people begin to talk about real women, I give up,' said Olive.
`Certainly nothing but the spirit in us is worth having,' said Winterslow.
`Spirits!' said Jack, drinking his whisky and soda.
`Think so? Give me the resurrection of the body!' said Dukes.
`But it'll come, in time, when we've shoved the cerebral stone away
a bit, the money and the rest. Then we'll get a democracy of touch, instead
of a democracy of pocket.'
Something echoed inside Connie: `Give me the democracy of touch, the
resurrection of the body!' She didn't at all know what it meant, but it
comforted her, as meaningless things may do.
Anyhow everything was terribly silly, and she was exasperatedly bored
by it all, by Clifford, by Aunt Eva, by Olive and Jack, and Winterslow,
and even by Dukes. Talk, talk, talk! What hell it was, the continual rattle
of it!
Then, when all the people went, it was no better. She continued plodding
on, but exasperation and irritation had got hold of her lower body, she
couldn't escape. The days seemed to grind by, with curious painfulness,
yet nothing happened. Only she was getting thinner; even the housekeeper
noticed it, and asked her about herself Even Tommy Dukes insisted she was
not well, though she said she was all right. Only she began to be afraid
of the ghastly white tombstones, that peculiar loathsome whiteness of Carrara
marble, detestable as false teeth, which stuck up on the hillside, under
Tevershall church, and which she saw with such grim painfulness from the
park. The bristling of the hideous false teeth of tombstones on the hill
affected her with a grisly kind of horror. She felt the time not far off
when she would be buried there, added to the ghastly host under the tombstones
and the monuments, in these filthy Midlands.
She needed help, and she knew it: so she wrote a little cri du coeur
to her sister, Hilda. `I'm not well lately, and I don't know what's the
matter with me.'
Down posted Hilda from Scotland, where she had taken up her abode. She
came in March, alone, driving herself in a nimble two-seater. Up the drive
she came, tooting up the incline, then sweeping round the oval of grass,
where the two great wild beech-trees stood, on the flat in front of the
house.
Connie had run out to the steps. Hilda pulled up her car, got out, and
kissed her sister.
`But Connie!' she cried. `Whatever is the matter?'
`Nothing!' said Connie, rather shamefacedly; but she knew how she had
suffered in contrast to Hilda. Both sisters had the same rather golden,
glowing skin, and soft brown hair, and naturally strong, warm physique.
But now Connie was thin and earthy-looking, with a scraggy, yellowish neck,
that stuck out of her jumper.
`But you're ill, child!' said Hilda, in the soft, rather breathless
voice that both sisters had alike. Hilda was nearly, but not quite, two
years older than Connie.
`No, not ill. Perhaps I'm bored,' said Connie a little pathetically.
The light of battle glowed in Hilda's face; she was a woman, soft and
still as she seemed, of the old amazon sort, not made to fit with men.
`This wretched place!' she said softly, looking at poor, old, lumbering
Wragby with real hate. She looked soft and warm herself, as a ripe pear,
and she was an amazon of the real old breed.
She went quietly in to Clifford. He thought how handsome she looked,
but also he shrank from her. His wife's family did not have his sort of
manners, or his sort of etiquette. He considered them rather outsiders,
but once they got inside they made him jump through the hoop.
He sat square and well-groomed in his chair, his hair sleek and blond,
and his face fresh, his blue eyes pale, and a little prominent, his expression
inscrutable, but well-bred. Hilda thought it sulky and stupid, and he waited.
He had an air of aplomb, but Hilda didn't care what he had an air of; she
was up in arms, and if he'd been Pope or Emperor it would have been just
the same.
`Connie's looking awfully unwell,' she said in her soft voice, fixing
him with her beautiful, glowering grey eyes. She looked so maidenly, so
did Connie; but he well knew the tone of Scottish obstinacy underneath.
`She's a little thinner,' he said.
`Haven't you done anything about it?'
`Do you think it necessary?' he asked, with his suavest English stiffness,
for the two things often go together.
Hilda only glowered at him without replying; repartee was not her forte,
nor Connie's; so she glowered, and he was much more uncomfortable than if
she had said things.
`I'll take her to a doctor,' said Hilda at length. `Can you suggest
a good one round here?'
`I'm afraid I can't.'
`Then I'll take her to London, where we have a doctor we trust.'
Though boiling with rage, Clifford said nothing.
`I suppose I may as well stay the night,' said Hilda, pulling off her
gloves, `and I'll drive her to town tomorrow.'
Clifford was yellow at the gills with anger, and at evening the whites
of his eyes were a little yellow too. He ran to liver. But Hilda was consistently
modest and maidenly.
`You must have a nurse or somebody, to look after you personally. You
should really have a manservant,' said Hilda as they sat, with apparent
calmness, at coffee after dinner. She spoke in her soft, seemingly gentle
way, but Clifford felt she was hitting him on the head with a bludgeon.
`You think so?' he said coldly.
`I'm sure! It's necessary. Either that, or Father and I must take Connie
away for some months. This can't go on.'
`What can't go on?'
`Haven't you looked at the child!' asked Hilda, gazing at him full stare.
He looked rather like a huge, boiled crayfish at the moment; or so she thought.
`Connie and I will discuss it,' he said.
`I've already discussed it with her,' said Hilda.
Clifford had been long enough in the hands of nurses; he hated them,
because they left him no real privacy. And a manservant!...he couldn't stand
a man hanging round him. Almost better any woman. But why not Connie?
The two sisters drove off in the morning, Connie looking rather like
an Easter lamb, rather small beside Hilda, who held the wheel. Sir Malcolm
was away, but the Kensington house was open.
The doctor examined Connie carefully, and asked her all about her life.
`I see your photograph, and Sir Clifford's, in the illustrated papers sometimes.
Almost notorieties, aren't you? That's how the quiet little girls grow up,
though you're only a quiet little girl even now, in spite of the illustrated
papers. No, no! There's nothing organically wrong, but it won't do! It won't
do! Tell Sir Clifford he's got to bring you to town, or take you abroad,
and amuse you. You've got to be amused, got to! Your vitality is much too
low; no reserves, no reserves. The nerves of the heart a bit queer already:
oh, yes! Nothing but nerves; I'd put you right in a month at Cannes or Biarritz.
But it mustn't go on, mustn't, I tell you, or I won't be answerable
for consequences. You're spending your life without renewing it. You've
got to be amused, properly, healthily amused. You're spending your vitality
without making any. Can't go on, you know. Depression! Avoid depression!'
Hilda set her jaw, and that meant something.
Michaelis heard they were in town, and came running with roses. `Why,
whatever's wrong?' he cried. `You're a shadow of yourself. Why, I never
saw such a change! Why ever didn't you let me know? Come to Nice with me!
Come down to Sicily! Go on, come to Sicily with me. It's lovely there just
now. You want sun! You want life! Why, you're wasting away! Come away with
me! Come to Africa! Oh, hang Sir Clifford! Chuck him, and come along with
me. I'll marry you the minute he divorces you. Come along and try a life!
God's love! That place Wragby would kill anybody. Beastly place! Foul place!
Kill anybody! Come away with me into the sun! It's the sun you want, of
course, and a bit of normal life.'
But Connie's heart simply stood still at the thought of abandoning Clifford
there and then. She couldn't do it. No...no! She just couldn't. She had
to go back to Wragby.
Michaelis was disgusted. Hilda didn't like Michaelis, but she almost
preferred him to Clifford. Back went the sisters to the Midlands.
Hilda talked to Clifford, who still had yellow eyeballs when they got
back. He, too, in his way, was overwrought; but he had to listen to all
Hilda said, to all the doctor had said, not what Michaelis had said, of
course, and he sat mum through the ultimatum.
`Here is the address of a good manservant, who was with an invalid patient
of the doctor's till he died last month. He is really a good man, and fairly
sure to come.'
`But I'm not an invalid, and I will not have a manservant,'
said Clifford, poor devil.
`And here are the addresses of two women; I saw one of them, she would
do very well; a woman of about fifty, quiet, strong, kind, and in her way
cultured...'
Clifford only sulked, and would not answer.
`Very well, Clifford. If we don't settle something by to-morrow, I shall
telegraph to Father, and we shall take Connie away.'
`Will Connie go?' asked Clifford.
`She doesn't want to, but she knows she must. Mother died of cancer,
brought on by fretting. We're not running any risks.'
So next day Clifford suggested Mrs Bolton, Tevershall parish nurse.
Apparently Mrs Betts had thought of her. Mrs Bolton was just retiring from
her parish duties to take up private nursing jobs. Clifford had a queer
dread of delivering himself into the hands of a stranger, but this Mrs Bolton
had once nursed him through scarlet fever, and he knew her.
The two sisters at once called on Mrs Bolton, in a newish house in a
row, quite select for Tevershall. They found a rather good-looking woman
of forty-odd, in a nurse's uniform, with a white collar and apron, just
making herself tea in a small crowded sitting-room.
Mrs Bolton was most attentive and polite, seemed quite nice, spoke with
a bit of a broad slur, but in heavily correct English, and from having bossed
the sick colliers for a good many years, had a very good opinion of herself,
and a fair amount of assurance. In short, in her tiny way, one of the governing
class in the village, very much respected.
`Yes, Lady Chatterley's not looking at all well! Why, she used to be
that bonny, didn't she now? But she's been failing all winter! Oh, it's
hard, it is. Poor Sir Clifford! Eh, that war, it's a lot to answer for.'
And Mrs Bolton would come to Wragby at once, if Dr Shardlow would let
her off. She had another fortnight's parish nursing to do, by rights, but
they might get a substitute, you know.
Hilda posted off to Dr Shardlow, and on the following Sunday Mrs Bolton
drove up in Leiver's cab to Wragby with two trunks. Hilda had talks with
her; Mrs Bolton was ready at any moment to talk. And she seemed so young!
The way the passion would flush in her rather pale cheek. She was forty-seven.
Her husband, Ted Bolton, had been killed in the pit, twenty-two years
ago, twenty-two years last Christmas, just at Christmas time, leaving her
with two children, one a baby in arms. Oh, the baby was married now, Edith,
to a young man in Boots Cash Chemists in Sheffield. The other one was a
schoolteacher in Chesterfield; she came home weekends, when she wasn't asked
out somewhere. Young folks enjoyed themselves nowadays, not like when she,
Ivy Bolton, was young.
Ted Bolton was twenty-eight when lie was killed in an explosion down
th' pit. The butty in front shouted to them all to lie down quick, there
were four of them. And they all lay down in time, only Ted, and it killed
him. Then at the inquiry, on the masters' side they said Ted had been frightened,
and trying to run away, and not obeying orders, so it was like his fault
really. So the compensation was only three hundred pounds, and they made
out as if it was more of a gift than legal compensation, because it was
really the man's own fault. And they wouldn't let her have the money down;
she wanted to have a little shop. But they said she'd no doubt squander
it, perhaps in drink! So she had to draw it thirty shillings a week. Yes,
she had to go every Monday morning down to the offices, and stand there
a couple of hours waiting her turn; yes, for almost four years she went
every Monday. And what could she do with two little children on her hands?
But Ted's mother was very good to her. When the baby could toddle she'd
keep both the children for the day, while she, Ivy Bolton, went to Sheffield,
and attended classes in ambulance, and then the fourth year she even took
a nursing course and got qualified. She was determined to be independent
and keep her children. So she was assistant at Uthwaite hospital, just a
little place, for a while. But when the Company, the Tevershall Colliery
Company, really Sir Geoffrey, saw that she could get on by herself, they
were very good to her, gave her the parish nursing, and stood by her, she
would say that for them. And she'd done it ever since, till now it was getting
a bit much for her; she needed something a bit lighter, there was such a
lot of traipsing around if you were a district nurse.
`Yes, the Company's been very good to me, I always say it.
But I should never forget what they said about Ted, for he was as steady
and fearless a chap as ever set foot on the cage, and it was as good as
branding him a coward. But there, he was dead, and could say nothing to
none of 'em.'
It was a queer mixture of feelings the woman showed as she talked. She
liked the colliers, whom she had nursed for so long; but she felt very superior
to them. She felt almost upper class; and at the same time a resentment
against the ruling class smouldered in her. The masters! In a dispute between
masters and men, she was always for the men. But when there was no question
of contest, she was pining to be superior, to be one of the upper class.
The upper classes fascinated her, appealing to her peculiar English passion
for superiority. She was thrilled to come to Wragby; thrilled to talk to
Lady Chatterley, my word, different from the common colliers' wives! She
said so in so many words. Yet one could see a grudge against the Chatterleys
peep out in her; the grudge against the masters.
`Why, yes, of course, it would wear Lady Chatterley out! It's a mercy
she had a sister to come and help her. Men don't think, high and low-alike,
they take what a woman does for them for granted. Oh, I've told the colliers
off about it many a time. But it's very hard for Sir Clifford, you know,
crippled like that. They were always a haughty family, standoffish in a
way, as they've a right to be. But then to be brought down like that! And
it's very hard on Lady Chatterley, perhaps harder on her. What she misses!
I only had Ted three years, but my word, while I had him I had a husband
I could never forget. He was one in a thousand, and jolly as the day. Who'd
ever have thought he'd get killed? I don't believe it to this day somehow,
I've never believed it, though I washed him with my own hands. But he was
never dead for me, he never was. I never took it in.'
This was a new voice in Wragby, very new for Connie to hear; it roused
a new ear in her.
For the first week or so, Mrs Bolton, however, was very quiet at Wragby,
her assured, bossy manner left her, and she was nervous. With Clifford she
was shy, almost frightened, and silent. He liked that, and soon recovered
his self-possession, letting her do things for him without even noticing
her.
`She's a useful nonentity!' he said. Connie opened her eyes in wonder,
but she did not contradict him. So different are impressions on two different
people!
And he soon became rather superb, somewhat lordly with the nurse. She
had rather expected it, and he played up without knowing. So susceptible
we are to what is expected of us! The colliers had been so like children,
talking to her, and telling her what hurt them, while she bandaged them,
or nursed them. They had always made her feel so grand, almost super-human
in her administrations. Now Clifford made her feel small, and like a servant,
and she accepted it without a word, adjusting herself to the upper classes.
She came very mute, with her long, handsome face, and downcast eyes,
to administer to him. And she said very humbly: `Shall I do this now, Sir
Clifford? Shall I do that?'
`No, leave it for a time. I'll have it done later.'
`Very well, Sir Clifford.'
`Come in again in half an hour.'
`Very well, Sir Clifford.'
`And just take those old papers out, will you?'
`Very well, Sir Clifford.'
She went softly, and in half an hour she came softly again. She was
bullied, but she didn't mind. She was experiencing the upper classes. She
neither resented nor disliked Clifford; he was just part of a phenomenon,
the phenomenon of the high-class folks, so far unknown to her, but now to
be known. She felt more at home with Lady Chatterley, and after all it's
the mistress of the house matters most.
Mrs Bolton helped Clifford to bed at night, and slept across the passage
from his room, and came if he rang for her in the night. She also helped
him in the morning, and soon valeted him completely, even shaving him, in
her soft, tentative woman's way. She was very good and competent, and she
soon knew how to have him in her power. He wasn't so very different from
the colliers after all, when you lathered his chin, and softly rubbed the
bristles. The stand-offishness and the lack of frankness didn't bother her;
she was having a new experience.
Clifford, however, inside himself, never quite forgave Connie for giving
up her personal care of him to a strange hired woman. It killed, he said
to himself, the real flower of the intimacy between him and her. But Connie
didn't mind that. The fine flower of their intimacy was to her rather like
an orchid, a bulb stuck parasitic on her tree of life, and producing, to
her eyes, a rather shabby flower.
Now she had more time to herself she could softly play the piano, up
in her room, and sing: `Touch not the nettle, for the bonds of love are
ill to loose.' She had not realized till lately how ill to loose they were,
these bonds of love. But thank Heaven she had loosened them! She was so
glad to be alone, not always to have to talk to him. When he was alone he
tapped-tapped-tapped on a typewriter, to infinity. But when he was not `working',
and she was there, he talked, always talked; infinite small analysis of
people and motives, and results, characters and personalities, till now
she had had enough. For years she had loved it, until she had enough, and
then suddenly it was too much. She was thankful to be alone.
It was as if thousands and thousands of little roots and threads of
consciousness in him and her had grown together into a tangled mass, till
they could crowd no more, and the plant was dying. Now quietly, subtly,
she was unravelling the tangle of his consciousness and hers, breaking the
threads gently, one by one, with patience and impatience to get clear. But
the bonds of such love are more ill to loose even than most bonds; though
Mrs Bolton's coming had been a great help.
But he still wanted the old intimate evenings of talk with Connie: talk
or reading aloud. But now she could arrange that Mrs Bolton should come
at ten to disturb them. At ten o'clock Connie could go upstairs and be alone.
Clifford was in good hands with Mrs Bolton.
Mrs Bolton ate with Mrs Betts in the housekeeper's room, since they
were all agreeable. And it was curious how much closer the servants' quarters
seemed to have come; right up to the doors of Clifford's study, when before
they were so remote. For Mrs Betts would sometimes sit in Mrs Bolton's room,
and Connie heard their lowered voices, and felt somehow the strong, other
vibration of the working people almost invading the sitting-room, when she
and Clifford were alone. So changed was Wragby merely by Mrs Bolton's coming.
And Connie felt herself released, in another world, she felt she breathed
differently. But still she was afraid of how many of her roots, perhaps
mortal ones, were tangled with Clifford's. Yet still, she breathed freer,
a new phase was going to begin in her life. Chapter 8
Mrs Bolton also kept a cherishing eye on Connie, feeling she must extend
to her her female and professional protection. She was always urging her
ladyship to walk out, to drive to Uthwaite, to be in the air. For Connie
had got into the habit of sitting still by the fire, pretending to read;
or to sew feebly, and hardly going out at all.
It was a blowy day soon after Hilda had gone, that Mrs Bolton said:
`Now why don't you go for a walk through the wood, and look at the daffs
behind the keeper's cottage? They're the prettiest sight you'd see in a
day's march. And you could put some in your room; wild daffs are always
so cheerful-looking, aren't they?'
Connie took it in good part, even daffs for daffodils. Wild daffodils!
After all, one could not stew in one's own juice. The spring came back...`Seasons
return, but not to me returns Day, or the sweet approach of Ev'n or Morn.'
And the keeper, his thin, white body, like a lonely pistil of an invisible
flower! She had forgotten him in her unspeakable depression. But now something
roused...`Pale beyond porch and portal'...the thing to do was to pass the
porches and the portals.
She was stronger, she could walk better, and iii the wood the wind would
not be so tiring as it was across the bark, flatten against her. She wanted
to forget, to forget the world, and all the dreadful, carrion- bodied people.
`Ye must be born again! I believe in the resurrection of the body! Except
a grain of wheat fall into the earth and die, it shall by no means bring
forth. When the crocus cometh forth I too will emerge and see the sun!'
In the wind of March endless phrases swept through her consciousness.
Little gusts of sunshine blew, strangely bright, and lit up the celandines
at the wood's edge, under the hazel-rods, they spangled out bright and yellow.
And the wood was still, stiller, but yet gusty with crossing sun. The first
windflowers were out, and all the wood seemed pale with the pallor of endless
little anemones, sprinkling the shaken floor. `The world has grown pale
with thy breath.' But it was the breath of Persephone, this time; she was
out of hell on a cold morning. Cold breaths of wind came, and overhead there
was an anger of entangled wind caught among the twigs. It, too, was caught
and trying to tear itself free, the wind, like Absalom. How cold the anemones
looked, bobbing their naked white shoulders over crinoline skirts of green.
But they stood it. A few first bleached little primroses too, by the path,
and yellow buds unfolding themselves.
The roaring and swaying was overhead, only cold currents came down below.
Connie was strangely excited in the wood, and the colour flew in her cheeks,
and burned blue in her eyes. She walked ploddingly, picking a few primroses
and the first violets, that smelled sweet and cold, sweet and cold. And
she drifted on without knowing where she was.
Till she came to the clearing, at the end of the wood, and saw the green-stained
stone cottage, looking almost rosy, like the flesh underneath a mushroom,
its stone warmed in a burst of sun. And there was a sparkle of yellow jasmine
by the door; the closed door. But no sound; no smoke from the chimney; no
dog barking.
She went quietly round to the back, where the bank rose up; she had
an excuse, to see the daffodils.
And they were there, the short-stemmed flowers, rustling and fluttering
and shivering, so bright and alive, but with nowhere to hide their faces,
as they turned them away from the wind.
They shook their bright, sunny little rags in bouts of distress. But
perhaps they liked it really; perhaps they really liked the tossing.
Constance sat down with her back to a young pine-tree, that wayed against
her with curious life, elastic, and powerful, rising up. The erect, alive
thing, with its top in the sun! And she watched the daffodils turn golden,
in a burst of sun that was warm on her hands and lap. Even she caught the
faint, tarry scent of the flowers. And then, being so still and alone, she
seemed to bet into the current of her own proper destiny. She had been fastened
by a rope, and jagging and snarring like a boat at its moorings; now she
was loose and adrift.
The sunshine gave way to chill; the daffodils were in shadow, dipping
silently. So they would dip through the day and the long cold night. So
strong in their frailty!
She rose, a little stiff, took a few daffodils, and went down. She hated
breaking the flowers, but she wanted just one or two to go with her. She
would have to go back to Wragby and its walls, and now she hated it, especially
its thick walls. Walls! Always walls! Yet one needed them in this wind.
When she got home Clifford asked her:
`Where did you go?'
`Right across the wood! Look, aren't the little daffodils adorable?
To think they should come out of the earth!'
`Just as much out of air and sunshine,' he said.
`But modelled in the earth,' she retorted, with a prompt contradiction,
that surprised her a little.
The next afternoon she went to the wood again. She followed the broad
riding that swerved round and up through the larches to a spring called
John's Well. It was cold on this hillside, and not a flower in the darkness
of larches. But the icy little spring softly pressed upwards from its tiny
well-bed of pure, reddish- white pebbles. How icy and clear it was! Brilliant!
The new keeper had no doubt put in fresh pebbles. She heard the faint tinkle
of water, as the tiny overflow trickled over and downhill. Even above the
hissing boom of the larchwood, that spread its bristling, leafless, wolfish
darkness on the down-slope, she heard the tinkle as of tiny water-bells.
This place was a little sinister, cold, damp. Yet the well must have
been a drinking-place for hundreds of years. Now no more. Its tiny cleared
space was lush and cold and dismal.
She rose and went slowly towards home. As she went she heard a faint
tapping away on the right, and stood still to listen. Was it hammering,
or a woodpecker? It was surely hammering.
She walked on, listening. And then she noticed a narrow track between
young fir-trees, a track that seemed to lead nowhere. But she felt it had
been used. She turned down it adventurously, between the thick young firs,
which gave way soon to the old oak wood. She followed the track, and the
hammering grew nearer, in the silence of the windy wood, for trees make
a silence even in their noise of wind.
She saw a secret little clearing, and a secret little hot made of rustic
poles. And she had never been here before! She realized it was the quiet
place where the growing pheasants were reared; the keeper in his shirt-
sleeves was kneeling, hammering. The dog trotted forward with a short, sharp
bark, and the keeper lifted his face suddenly and saw her. He had a startled
look in his eyes.
He straightened himself and saluted, watching her in silence, as she
came forward with weakening limbs. He resented the intrusion; he cherished
his solitude as his only and last freedom in life.
`I wondered what the hammering was,' she said, feeling weak and breathless,
and a little afraid of him, as he looked so straight at her.
`Ah'm gettin' th' coops ready for th' young bods,' he said, in broad
vernacular.
She did not know what to say, and she felt weak. `I should like to sit
down a bit,' she said.
`Come and sit 'ere i' th' 'ut,' he said, going in front of her to the
hut, pushing aside some timber and stuff, and drawing out a rustic chair,
made of hazel sticks.
`Am Ah t' light yer a little fire?' he asked, with the curious naïveté
of the dialect.
`Oh, don't bother,' she replied.
But he looked at her hands; they were rather blue. So he quickly took
some larch twigs to the little brick fire-place in the corner, and in a
moment the yellow flame was running up the chimney. He made a place by the
brick hearth.
`Sit 'ere then a bit, and warm yer,' he said.
She obeyed him. He had that curious kind of protective authority she
obeyed at once. So she sat and warmed her hands at the blaze, and dropped
logs on the fire, whilst outside he was hammering again. She did not really
want to sit, poked in a corner by the fire; she would rather have watched
from the door, but she was being looked after, so she had to submit.
The hut was quite cosy, panelled with unvarnished deal, having a little
rustic table and stool beside her chair, and a carpenter's bench, then a
big box, tools, new boards, nails; and many things hung from pegs: axe,
hatchet, traps, things in sacks, his coat. It had no window, the light came
in through the open door. It was a jumble, but also it was a sort of little
sanctuary.
She listened to the tapping of the man's hammer; it was not so happy.
He was oppressed. Here was a trespass on his privacy, and a dangerous one!
A woman! He had reached the point where all he wanted on earth was to be
alone. And yet he was powerless to preserve his privacy; he was a hired
man, and these people were his masters.
Especially he did not want to come into contact with a woman again.
He feared it; for he had a big wound from old contacts. He felt if he could
not be alone, and if he could not be left alone, he would die. His recoil
away from the outer world was complete; his last refuge was this wood; to
hide himself there!
Connie grew warm by the fire, which she had made too big: then she grew
hot. She went and sat on the stool in the doorway, watching the man at work.
He seemed not to notice her, but he knew. Yet he worked on, as if absorbedly,
and his brown dog sat on her tail near him, and surveyed the untrustworthy
world.
Slender, quiet and quick, the man finished the coop he was making, turned
it over, tried the sliding door, then set it aside. Then he rose, went for
an old coop, and took it to the chopping log where he was working. Crouching,
he tried the bars; some broke in his hands; he began to draw the nails.
Then he turned the coop over and deliberated, and he gave absolutely no
sign of awareness of the woman's presence.
So Connie watched him fixedly. And the same solitary aloneness she had
seen in him naked, she now saw in him clothed: solitary, and intent, like
an animal that works alone, but also brooding, like a soul that recoils
away, away from all human contact. Silently, patiently, he was recoiling
away from her even now. It was the stillness, and the timeless sort of patience,
in a man impatient and passionate, that touched Connie's womb. She saw it
in his bent head, the quick quiet hands, the crouching of his slender, sensitive
loins; something patient and withdrawn. She felt his experience had been
deeper and wider than her own; much deeper and wider, and perhaps more deadly.
And this relieved her of herself; she felt almost irresponsible.
So she sat in the doorway of the hut in a dream, utterly unaware of
time and of particular circumstances. She was so drifted away that he glanced
up at her quickly, and saw the utterly still, waiting look on her face.
To him it was a look of waiting. And a little thin tongue of fire suddenly
flickered in his loins, at the root of his back, and he groaned in spirit.
He dreaded with a repulsion almost of death, any further close human contact.
He wished above all things she would go away, and leave him to his own privacy.
He dreaded her will, her female will, and her modern female insistency.
And above all he dreaded her cool, upper-class impudence of having her own
way. For after all he was only a hired man. He hated her presence there.
Connie came to herself with sudden uneasiness. She rose. The afternoon
was turning to evening, yet she could not go away. She went over to the
man, who stood up at attention, his worn face stiff and blank, his eyes
watching her.
`It is so nice here, so restful,' she said. `I have never been here
before.'
`No?'
`I think I shall come and sit here sometimes.
`Yes?'
`Do you lock the hut when you're not here?'
`Yes, your Ladyship.'
`Do you think I could have a key too, so that I could sit here sometimes?
Are there two keys?'
`Not as Ah know on, ther' isna.'
He had lapsed into the vernacular. Connie hesitated; he was putting
up an opposition. Was it his hut, after all?
`Couldn't we get another key?' she asked in her soft voice, that underneath
had the ring of a woman determined to get her way.
`Another!' he said, glancing at her with a flash of anger, touched with
derision.
`Yes, a duplicate,' she said, flushing.
`'Appen Sir Clifford 'ud know,' he said, putting her off.
`Yes!' she said, `he might have another. Otherwise we could have one
made from the one you have. It would only take a day or so, I suppose. You
could spare your key for so long.'
`Ah canna tell yer, m'Lady! Ah know nob'dy as ma'es keys round 'ere.'
Connie suddenly flushed with anger.
`Very well!' she said. `I'll see to it.'
`All right, your Ladyship.'
Their eyes met. His had a cold, ugly look of dislike and contempt, and
indifference to what would happen. Hers were hot with rebuff.
But her heart sank, she saw how utterly he disliked her, when she went
against him. And she saw him in a sort of desperation.
`Good afternoon!'
`Afternoon, my Lady!' He saluted and turned abruptly away. She had wakened
the sleeping dogs of old voracious anger in him, anger against the self-willed
female. And he was powerless, powerless. He knew it!
And she was angry against the self-willed male. A servant too! She walked
sullenly home.
She found Mrs Bolton under the great beech-tree on the knoll, looking
for her.
`I just wondered if you'd be coming, my Lady,' the woman said brightly.
`Am I late?' asked Connie.
`Oh only Sir Clifford was waiting for his tea.'
`Why didn't you make it then?'
`Oh, I don't think it's hardly my place. I don't think Sir Clifford
would like it at all, my Lady.'
`I don't see why not,' said Connie.
She went indoors to Clifford's study, where the old brass kettle was
simmering on the tray.
`Am I late, Clifford?' she said, putting down the few flowers and taking
up the tea-caddy, as she stood before the tray in her hat and scarf. `I'm
sorry! Why didn't you let Mrs Bolton make the tea?'
`I didn't think of it,' he said ironically. `I don't quite see her presiding
at the tea-table.'
`Oh, there's nothing sacrosanct about a silver tea-pot,' said Connie.
He glanced up at her curiously.
`What did you do all afternoon?' he said.
`Walked and sat in a sheltered place. Do you know there are still berries
on the big holly-tree?'
She took off her scarf, but not her hat, and sat down to make tea. The
toast would certainly be leathery. She put the tea-cosy over the tea-pot,
and rose to get a little glass for her violets. The poor flowers hung over,
limp on their stalks.
`They'll revive again!' she said, putting them before him in their glass
for him to smell.
`Sweeter than the lids of Juno's eyes,' he quoted.
`I don't see a bit of connexion with the actual violets,' she said.
`The Elizabethans are rather upholstered.'
She poured him his tea.
`Do you think there is a second key to that little hut not far from
John's Well, where the pheasants are reared?' she said.
`There may be. Why?'
`I happened to find it today---and I'd never seen it before. I think
it's a darling place. I could sit there sometimes, couldn't I?'
`Was Mellors there?'
`Yes! That's how I found it: his hammering. He didn't seem to like my
intruding at all. In fact he was almost rude when I asked about a second
key.'
`What did he say?'
`Oh, nothing: just his manner; and he said he knew nothing about keys.'
`There may be one in Father's study. Betts knows them all, they're all
there. I'll get him to look.'
`Oh do!' she said.
`So Mellors was almost rude?'
`Oh, nothing, really! But I don't think he wanted me to have the freedom
of the castle, quite.'
`I don't suppose he did.'
`Still, I don't see why he should mind. It's not his home, after all!
It's not his private abode. I don't see why I shouldn't sit there if I want
to.'
`Quite!' said Clifford. `He thinks too much of himself, that man.'
`Do you think he does?'
`Oh, decidedly! He thinks he's something exceptional. You know he had
a wife he didn't get on with, so he joined up in 1915 and was sent to India,
I believe. Anyhow he was blacksmith to the cavalry in Egypt for a time;
always was connected with horses, a clever fellow that way. Then some Indian
colonel took a fancy to him, and he was made a lieutenant. Yes, they gave
him a commission. I believe he went back to India with his colonel, and
up to the north-west frontier. He was ill; he was a pension. He didn't come
out of the army till last year, I believe, and then, naturally, it isn't
easy for a man like that to get back to his own level. He's bound to flounder.
But he does his duty all right, as far as I'm concerned. Only I'm not having
any of the Lieutenant Mellors touch.'
`How could they make him an officer when he speaks broad Derbyshire?'
`He doesn't...except by fits and starts. He can speak perfectly well,
for him. I suppose he has an idea if he's come down to the ranks again,
he'd better speak as the ranks speak.'
`Why didn't you tell me about him before?'
`Oh, I've no patience with these romances. They're the ruin of all order.
It's a thousand pities they ever happened.'
Connie was inclined to agree. What was the good of discontented people
who fitted in nowhere?
In the spell of fine weather Clifford, too, decided to go to the wood.
The wind was cold, but not so tiresome, and the sunshine was like life itself,
warm and full.
`It's amazing,' said Connie, `how different one feels when there's a
really fresh fine day. Usually one feels the very air is half dead. People
are killing the very air.'
`Do you think people are doing it?' he asked.
`I do. The steam of so much boredom, and discontent and anger out of
all the people, just kills the vitality in the air. I'm sure of it.'
`Perhaps some condition of the atmosphere lowers the vitality of the
people?' he said.
`No, it's man that poisons the universe,' she asserted.
`Fouls his own nest,' remarked Clifford.
The chair puffed on. In the hazel copse catkins were hanging pale gold,
and in sunny places the wood- anemones were wide open, as if exclaiming
with the joy of life, just as good as in past days, when people could exclaim
along with them. They had a faint scent of apple-blossom. Connie gathered
a few for Clifford.
He took them and looked at them curiously.
`Thou still unravished bride of quietness,' he quoted. `It seems to
fit flowers so much better than Greek vases.'
`Ravished is such a horrid word!' she said. `It's only people who ravish
things.'
`Oh, I don't know...snails and things,' he said.
`Even snails only eat them, and bees don't ravish.'
She was angry with him, turning everything into words. Violets were
Juno's eyelids, and windflowers were on ravished brides. How she hated words,
always coming between her and life: they did the ravishing, if anything
did: ready-made words and phrases, sucking all the life-sap out of living
things.
The walk with Clifford was not quite a success. Between him and Connie
there was a tension that each pretended not to notice, but there it was.
Suddenly, with all the force of her female instinct, she was shoving him
off. She wanted to be clear of him, and especially of his consciousness,
his words, his obsession with himself, his endless treadmill obsession with
himself, and his own words.
The weather came rainy again. But after a day or two she went out in
the rain, and she went to the wood. And once there, she went towards the
hut. It was raining, but not so cold, and the wood felt so silent and remote,
inaccessible in the dusk of rain.
She came to the clearing. No one there! The hut was locked. But she
sat on the log doorstep, under the rustic porch, and snuggled into her own
warmth. So she sat, looking at the rain, listening to the many noiseless
noises of it, and to the strange soughings of wind in upper branches, when
there seemed to be no wind. Old oak-trees stood around, grey, powerful trunks,
rain-blackened, round and vital, throwing off reckless limbs. The ground
was fairly free of undergrowth, the anemones sprinkled, there was a bush
or two, elder, or guelder-rose, and a purplish tangle of bramble: the old
russet of bracken almost vanished under green anemone ruffs. Perhaps this
was one of the unravished places. Unravished! The whole world was ravished.
Some things can't be ravished. You can't ravish a tin of sardines. And
so many women are like that; and men. But the earth...!
The rain was abating. It was hardly making darkness among the oaks any
more. Connie wanted to go; yet she sat on. But she was getting cold; yet
the overwhelming inertia of her inner resentment kept her there as if paralysed.
Ravished! How ravished one could be without ever being touched. Ravished
by dead words become obscene, and dead ideas become obsessions.
A wet brown dog came running and did not bark, lifting a wet feather
of a tail. The man followed in a wet black oilskin jacket, like a chauffeur,
and face flushed a little. She felt him recoil in his quick walk, when he
saw her. She stood up in the handbreadth of dryness under the rustic porch.
He saluted without speaking, coming slowly near. She began to withdraw.
`I'm just going,' she said.
`Was yer waitin' to get in?' he asked, looking at the hut, not at her.
`No, I only sat a few minutes in the shelter,' she said, with quiet
dignity.
He looked at her. She looked cold.
`Sir Clifford 'adn't got no other key then?' he asked.
`No, but it doesn't matter. I can sit perfectly dry under this porch.
Good afternoon!' She hated the excess of vernacular in his speech.
He watched her closely, as she was moving away. Then he hitched up his
jacket, and put his hand in his breeches pocket, taking out the key of the
hut.
`'Appen yer'd better 'ave this key, an' Ah min fend for t' bods some
other road.'
She looked at him.
`What do you mean?' she asked.
`I mean as 'appen Ah can find anuther pleece as'll du for rearin' th'
pheasants. If yer want ter be 'ere, yo'll non want me messin' abaht a' th'
time.'
She looked at him, getting his meaning through the fog of the dialect.
`Why don't you speak ordinary English?' she said coldly.
`Me! Ah thowt it wor ordinary.'
She was silent for a few moments in anger.
`So if yer want t' key, yer'd better tacit. Or 'appen Ah'd better gi'e
't yer termorrer, an' clear all t' stuff aht fust. Would that du for yer?'
She became more angry.
`I didn't want your key,' she said. `I don't want you to clear anything
out at all. I don't in the least want to turn you out of your hut, thank
you! I only wanted to be able to sit here sometimes, like today. But I can
sit perfectly well under the porch, so please say no more about it.'
He looked at her again, with his wicked blue eyes.
`Why,' he began, in the broad slow dialect. `Your Ladyship's as welcome
as Christmas ter th' hut an' th' key an' iverythink as is. On'y this time
O' th' year ther's bods ter set, an' Ah've got ter be potterin' abaht a
good bit, seein' after 'em, an' a'. Winter time Ah ned 'ardly come nigh
th' pleece. But what wi' spring, an' Sir Clifford wantin' ter start th'
pheasants...An' your Ladyship'd non want me tinkerin' around an' about when
she was 'ere, all the time.'
She listened with a dim kind of amazement.
`Why should I mind your being here?' she asked.
He looked at her curiously.
`T'nuisance on me!' he said briefly, but significantly. She flushed.
`Very well!' she said finally. `I won't trouble you. But I don't think I
should have minded at all sitting and seeing you look after the birds. I
should have liked it. But since you think it interferes with you, I won't
disturb you, don't be afraid. You are Sir Clifford's keeper, not mine.'
The phrase sounded queer, she didn't know why. But she let it pass.
`Nay, your Ladyship. It's your Ladyship's own 'ut. It's as your Ladyship
likes an' pleases, every time. Yer can turn me off at a wik's notice. It
wor only...'
`Only what?' she asked, baffled.
He pushed back his hat in an odd comic way.
`On'y as 'appen yo'd like the place ter yersen, when yer did come, an'
not me messin' abaht.'
`But why?' she said, angry. `Aren't you a civilized human being? Do
you think I ought to be afraid of you? Why should I take any notice of you
and your being here or not? Why is it important?'
He looked at her, all his face glimmering with wicked laughter.
`It's not, your Ladyship. Not in the very least,' he said.
`Well, why then?' she asked.
`Shall I get your Ladyship another key then?'
`No thank you! I don't want it.'
`Ah'll get it anyhow. We'd best 'ave two keys ter th' place.'
`And I consider you are insolent,' said Connie, with her colour up,
panting a little.
`Nay, nay!' he said quickly. `Dunna yer say that! Nay, nay! I niver
meant nuthink. Ah on'y thought as if yo' come 'ere, Ah s'd ave ter clear
out, an' it'd mean a lot of work, settin' up somewheres else. But if your
Ladyship isn't going ter take no notice O' me, then...it's Sir Clifford's
'ut, an' everythink is as your Ladyship likes, everythink is as your Ladyship
likes an' pleases, barrin' yer take no notice O' me, doin' th' bits of jobs
as Ah've got ter do.'
Connie went away completely bewildered. She was not sure whether she
had been insulted and mortally of fended, or not. Perhaps the man really
only meant what he said; that he thought she would expect him to keep away.
As if she would dream of it! And as if he could possibly be so important,
he and his stupid presence.
She went home in confusion, not knowing what she thought or felt. Chapters
9
Connie was surprised at her own feeling of aversion from Clifford. What
is more, she felt she had always really disliked him. Not hate: there was
no passion in it. But a profound physical dislike. Almost, it seemed to
her, she had married him because she disliked him, in a secret, physical
sort of way. But of course, she had married him really because in a mental
way he attracted her and excited her. He had seemed, in some way, her master,
beyond her.
Now the mental excitement had worn itself out and collapsed, and she
was aware only of the physical aversion. It rose up in her from her depths:
and she realized how it had been eating her life away.
She felt weak and utterly forlorn. She wished some help would come from
outside. But in the whole world there was no help. Society was terrible
because it was insane. Civilized society is insane. Money and so-called
love are its two great manias; money a long way first. The individual asserts
himself in his disconnected insanity in these two modes: money and love.
Look at Michaelis! His life and activity were just insanity. His love was
a sort of insanity.
And Clifford the same. All that talk! All that writing! All that wild
struggling to push himself forwards! It was just insanity. And it was getting
worse, really maniacal.
Connie felt washed-out with fear. But at least, Clifford was shifting
his grip from her on to Mrs Bolton. He did not know it. Like many insane
people, his insanity might be measured by the things he was not
aware of the great desert tracts in his consciousness.
Mrs Bolton was admirable in many ways. But she had that queer sort of
bossiness, endless assertion of her own will, which is one of the signs
of insanity in modern woman. She thought she was utterly subservient
and living for others. Clifford fascinated her because he always, or so
of ten, frustrated her will, as if by a finer instinct. He had a finer,
subtler will of self-assertion than herself. This was his charm for her.
Perhaps that had been his charm, too, for Connie.
`It's a lovely day, today!' Mrs Bolton would say in her caressive, persuasive
voice. `I should think you'd enjoy a little run in your chair today, the
sun's just lovely.'
`Yes? Will you give me that book---there, that yellow one. And I think
I'll have those hyacinths taken out.'
`Why they're so beautiful!' She pronounced it with the `y' sound: be-yutiful!
`And the scent is simply gorgeous.'
`The scent is what I object to,' he said. `It's a little funereal.'
`Do you think so!' she exclaimed in surprise, just a little offended,
but impressed. And she carried the hyacinths out of the room, impressed
by his higher fastidiousness.
`Shall I shave you this morning, or would you rather do it yourself?'
Always the same soft, caressive, subservient, yet managing voice.
`I don't know. Do you mind waiting a while. I'll ring when I'm ready.'
`Very good, Sir Clifford!' she replied, so soft and submissive, withdrawing
quietly. But every rebuff stored up new energy of will in her.
When he rang, after a time, she would appear at once. And then he would
say:
`I think I'd rather you shaved me this morning.'
Her heart gave a little thrill, and she replied with extra softness:
`Very good, Sir Clifford!'
She was very deft, with a soft, lingering touch, a little slow. At first
he had resented the infinitely soft touch of her lingers on his face. But
now he liked it, with a growing voluptuousness. He let her shave him nearly
every day: her face near his, her eyes so very concentrated, watching that
she did it right. And gradually her fingertips knew his cheeks and lips,
his jaw and chin and throat perfectly. He was well-fed and well-liking,
his face and throat were handsome enough and he was a gentleman.
She was handsome too, pale, her face rather long and absolutely still,
her eyes bright, but revealing nothing. Gradually, with infinite softness,
almost with love, she was getting him by the throat, and he was yielding
to her.
She now did almost everything for him, and he felt more at home with
her, less ashamed of accepting her menial offices, than with Connie. She
liked handling him. She loved having his body in her charge, absolutely,
to the last menial offices. She said to Connie one day: `All men are babies,
when you come to the bottom of them. Why, I've handled some of the toughest
customers as ever went down Tevershall pit. But let anything ail them so
that you have to do for them, and they're babies, just big babies. Oh, there's
not much difference in men!'
At first Mrs Bolton had thought there really was something different
in a gentleman, a real gentleman, like Sir Clifford. So Clifford
had got a good start of her. But gradually, as she came to the bottom of
him, to use her own term, she found he was like the rest, a baby grown to
man's proportions: but a baby with a queer temper and a fine manner and
power in its control, and all sorts of odd knowledge that she had never
dreamed of, with which he could still bully her.
Connie was sometimes tempted to say to him:
`For God's sake, don't sink so horribly into the hands of that woman!'
But she found she didn't care for him enough to say it, in the long run.
It was still their habit to spend the evening together, till ten o'clock.
Then they would talk, or read together, or go over his manuscript. But the
thrill had gone out of it. She was bored by his manuscripts. But she still
dutifully typed them out for him. But in time Mrs Bolton would do even that.
For Connie had suggested to Mrs Bolton that she should learn to use
a typewriter. And Mrs Bolton, always ready, had begun at once, and practised
assiduously. So now Clifford would sometimes dictate a letter to her, and
she would take it down rather slowly, but correctly. And he was very patient,
spelling for her the difficult words, or the occasional phrases in French.
She was so thrilled, it was almost a pleasure to instruct her.
Now Connie would sometimes plead a headache as an excuse for going up
to her room after dinner.
`Perhaps Mrs Bolton will play piquet with you,' she said to Clifford.
`Oh, I shall be perfectly all right. You go to your own room and rest,
darling.'
But no sooner had she gone, than he rang for Mrs Bolton, and asked her
to take a hand at piquet or bezique, or even chess. He had taught her all
these games. And Connie found it curiously objectionable to see Mrs Bolton,
flushed and tremulous like a little girl, touching her queen or her knight
with uncertain fingers, then drawing away again. And Clifford, faintly smiling
with a half-teasing superiority, saying to her:
`You must say j'adoube!'
She looked up at him with bright, startled eyes, then murmured shyly,
obediently:
`J'adoube!'
Yes, he was educating her. And he enjoyed it, it gave him a sense of
power. And she was thrilled. She was coming bit by bit into possession of
all that the gentry knew, all that made them upper class: apart from the
money. That thrilled her. And at the same time, she was making him want
to have her there with him. It was a subtle deep flattery to him, her genuine
thrill.
To Connie, Clifford seemed to be coming out in his true colours: a little
vulgar, a little common, and uninspired; rather fat. Ivy Bolton's tricks
and humble bossiness were also only too transparent. But Connie did wonder
at the genuine thrill which the woman got out of Clifford. To say she was
in love with him would be putting it wrongly. She was thrilled by her contact
with a man of the upper class, this titled gentleman, this author who could
write books and poems, and whose photograph appeared in the illustrated
newspapers. She was thrilled to a weird passion. And his `educating' her
roused in her a passion of excitement and response much deeper than any
love affair could have done. In truth, the very fact that there could be
no love affair left her free to thrill to her very marrow with this other
passion, the peculiar passion of knowing, knowing as he knew.
There was no mistake that the woman was in some way in love with him:
whatever force we give to the word love. She looked so handsome and so young,
and her grey eyes were sometimes marvellous. At the same time, there was
a lurking soft satisfaction about her, even of triumph, and private satisfaction.
Ugh, that private satisfaction. How Connie loathed it!
But no wonder Clifford was caught by the woman! She absolutely adored
him, in her persistent fashion, and put herself absolutely at his service,
for him to use as he liked. No wonder he was flattered!
Connie heard long conversations going on between the two. Or rather,
it bas mostly Mrs Bolton talking. She had unloosed to him the stream of
gossip about Tevershall village. It was more than gossip. It was Mrs Gaskell
and George Eliot and Miss Mitford all rolled in one, with a great deal more,
that these women left out.' Once started, Mrs Bolton was better than any
book, about the lives of the people. She knew them all so intimately, and
had such a peculiar, flamey zest in all their affairs, it was wonderful,
if just a trifle humiliating to listen to her. At first she had
not ventured to `talk Tevershall', as she called it, to Clifford. But once
started, it went on. Clifford was listening for `material', and he found
it in plenty. Connie realized that his so-called genius was just this: a
perspicuous talent for personal gossip, clever and apparently detached.
Mrs Bolton, of course, was very warm when she `talked Tevershall'. Carried
away, in fact. And it was marvellous, the things that happened and that
she knew about. She would have run to dozens of volumes.
Connie was fascinated, listening to her. But afterwards always a little
ashamed. She ought not to listen with this queer rabid curiosity. After
all, one may hear the most private affairs of other people, but only in
a spirit of respect for the struggling, battered thing which any human soul
is, and in a spirit of fine, discriminative sympathy. For even satire is
a form of sympathy. It is the way our sympathy flows and recoils that really
determines our lives. And here lies the vast importance of the novel, properly
handled. It can inform and lead into new places the flow of our sympathetic
consciousness, and it can lead our sympathy away in recoil from things gone
dead. Therefore, the novel, properly handled, can reveal the most secret
places of life: for it is in the passional secret places of life,
above all, that the tide of sensitive awareness needs to ebb and flow, cleansing
and freshening.
But the novel, like gossip, can also excite spurious sympathies and
recoils, mechanical and deadening to the psyche. The novel can glorify the
most corrupt feelings, so long as they are conventionally `pure'.
Then the novel, like gossip, becomes at last vicious, and, like gossip,
all the more vicious because it is always ostensibly on the side of the
angels. Mrs Bolton's gossip was always on the side of the angels. `And he
was such a bad fellow, and she was such a nice woman.'
Whereas, as Connie could see even from Mrs Bolton's gossip, the woman had
been merely a mealy-mouthed sort, and the man angrily honest. But angry
honesty made a `bad man' of him, and mealy-mouthedness made a `nice woman'
of her, in the vicious, conventional channelling of sympathy by Mrs Bolton.
For this reason, the gossip was humiliating. And for the same reason,
most novels, especially popular ones, are humiliating too. The public responds
now only to an appeal to its vices.
Nevertheless, one got a new vision of Tevershall village from Mrs Bolton's
talk. A terrible, seething welter of ugly life it seemed: not at all the
flat drabness it looked from outside. Clifford of course knew by sight most
of the people mentioned, Connie knew only one or two. But it sounded really
more like a Central African jungle than an English village.
`I suppose you heard as Miss Allsopp was married last week! Would you
ever! Miss Allsopp, old James' daughter, the boot-and-shoe Allsopp. You
know they built a house up at Pye Croft. The old man died last year from
a fall; eighty-three, he was, an' nimble as a lad. An' then he slipped on
Bestwood Hill, on a slide as the lads 'ad made last winter, an' broke his
thigh, and that finished him, poor old man, it did seem a shame. Well, he
left all his money to Tattie: didn't leave the boys a penny. An' Tattie,
I know, is five years-- -yes, she's fifty-three last autumn. And you know
they were such Chapel people, my word! She taught Sunday school for thirty
years, till her father died. And then she started carrying on with a fellow
from Kinbrook, I don't know if you know him, an oldish fellow with a red
nose, rather dandified, Willcock, as works in Harrison's woodyard. Well
he's sixty-five, if he's a day, yet you'd have thought they were a pair
of young turtle-doves, to see them, arm in arm, and kissing at the gate:
yes, an' she sitting on his knee right in the bay window on Pye Croft Road,
for anybody to see. And he's got sons over forty: only lost his wife two
years ago. If old James Allsopp hasn't risen from his grave, it's because
there is no rising: for he kept her that strict! Now they're married and
gone to live down at Kinbrook, and they say she goes round in a dressing-gown
from morning to night, a veritable sight. I'm sure it's awful, the way the
old ones go on! Why they're a lot worse than the young, and a sight more
disgusting. I lay it down to the pictures, myself. But you can't keep them
away. I was always saying: go to a good instructive film, but do for goodness
sake keep away from these melodramas and love films. Anyhow keep the children
away! But there you are, grown-ups are worse than the children: and the
old ones beat the band. Talk about morality! Nobody cares a thing. Folks
does as they like, and much better off they are for it, I must say. But
they're having to draw their horns in nowadays, now th' pits are working
so bad, and they haven't got the money. And the grumbling they do, it's
awful, especially the women. The men are so good and patient! What can they
do, poor chaps! But the women, oh, they do carry on! They go and show off,
giving contributions for a wedding present for Princess Mary, and then when
they see all the grand things that's been given, they simply rave: who's
she, any better than anybody else! Why doesn't Swan & Edgar give me one
fur coat, instead of giving her six. I wish I'd kept my ten shillings! What's
she going to give me, I should like to know? Here I can't get a new spring
coat, my dad's working that bad, and she gets van-loads. It's time as poor
folks had some money to spend, rich ones 'as 'ad it long enough. I want
a new spring coat, I do, an' wheer am I going to get it? I say to them,
be thankful you're well fed and well clothed, without all the new finery
you want! And they fly back at me: "Why isn't Princess Mary thankful
to go about in her old rags, then, an' have nothing! Folks like her
get van-loads, an' I can't have a new spring coat. It's a damned shame.
Princess! Bloomin' rot about Princess! It's munney as matters, an' cos she's
got lots, they give her more! Nobody's givin' me any, an' I've as much right
as anybody else. Don't talk to me about education. It's munney as matters.
I want a new spring coat, I do, an' I shan't get it, cos there's no munney..."
That's all they care about, clothes. They think nothing of giving seven
or eight guineas for a winter coat---colliers' daughters, mind you---and
two guineas for a child's summer hat. And then they go to the Primitive
Chapel in their two-guinea hat, girls as would have been proud of a three-and-sixpenny
one in my day. I heard that at the Primitive Methodist anniversary this
year, when they have a built-up platform for the Sunday School children,
like a grandstand going almost up to th' ceiling, I heard Miss Thompson,
who has the first class of girls in the Sunday School, say there'd be over
a thousand pounds in new Sunday clothes sitting on that platform! And times
are what they are! But you can't stop them. They're mad for clothes. And
boys the same. The lads spend every penny on themselves, clothes, smoking,
drinking in the Miners' Welfare, jaunting off to Sheffield two or three
times a week. Why, it's another world. And they fear nothing, and they respect
nothing, the young don't. The older men are that patient and good, really,
they let the women take everything. And this is what it leads to. The women
are positive demons. But the lads aren't like their dads. They're sacrificing
nothing, they aren't: they're all for self. If you tell them they ought
to be putting a bit by, for a home, they say: That'll keep, that will, I'm
goin' t' enjoy myself while I can. Owt else'll keep! Oh, they're rough an'
selfish, if you like. Everything falls on the older men, an' it's a bad
outlook all round.'
Clifford began to get a new idea of his own village. The place had always
frightened him, but he had thought it more or less stable. Now---?
`Is there much Socialism, Bolshevism, among the people?' he asked.
`Oh!' said Mrs Bolton, `you hear a few loud-mouthed ones. But they're
mostly women who've got into debt. The men take no notice. I don't believe
you'll ever turn our Tevershall men into reds. They're too decent for that.
But the young ones blether sometimes. Not that they care for it really.
They only want a bit of money in their pocket, to spend at the Welfare,
or go gadding to Sheffield. That's all they care. When they've got no money,
they'll listen to the reds spouting. But nobody believes in it, really.'
`So you think there's no danger?'
`Oh no! Not if trade was good, there wouldn't be. But if things were
bad for a long spell, the young ones might go funny. I tell you, they're
a selfish, spoilt lot. But I don't see how they'd ever do anything. They
aren't ever serious about anything, except showing off on motor-bikes and
dancing at the Palais-de-danse in Sheffield. You can't make them
serious. The serious ones dress up in evening clothes and go off to the
Pally to show off before a lot of girls and dance these new Charlestons
and what not. I'm sure sometimes the bus'll be full of young fellows in
evening suits, collier lads, off to the Pally: let alone those that have
gone with their girls in motors or on motor-bikes. They don't give a serious
thought to a thing--- save Doncaster races, and the Derby: for they all
of them bet on every race. And football! But even football's not what it
was, not by a long chalk. It's too much like hard work, they say. No, they'd
rather be off on motor-bikes to Sheffield or Nottingham, Saturday afternoons.'
`But what do they do when they get there?'
`Oh, hang around---and have tea in some fine tea-place like the Mikado---and
go to the Pally or the pictures or the Empire, with some girl. The girls
are as free as the lads. They do just what they like.'
`And what do they do when they haven't the money for these things?'
`They seem to get it, somehow. And they begin talking nasty then. But
I don't see how you're going to get bolshevism, when all the lads want is
just money to enjoy themselves, and the girls the same, with fine clothes:
and they don't care about another thing. They haven't the brains to be socialists.
They haven't enough seriousness to take anything really serious, and they
never will have.'
Connie thought, how extremely like all the rest of the classes the lower
classes sounded. Just the same thing over again, Tevershall or Mayfair or
Kensington. There was only one class nowadays: moneyboys. The moneyboy and
the moneygirl, the only difference was how much you'd got, and how much
you wanted.
Under Mrs Bolton's influence, Clifford began to take a new interest
in the mines. He began to feel he belonged. A new sort of self-assertion
came into him. After all, he was the real boss in Tevershall, he was really
the pits. It was a new sense of power, something he had till now shrunk
from with dread.
Tevershall pits were running thin. There were only two collieries: Tevershall
itself, and New London. Tevershall had once been a famous mine, and had
made famous money. But its best days were over. New London was never very
rich, and in ordinary times just got along decently. But now times were
bad, and it was pits like New London that got left.
`There's a lot of Tevershall men left and gone to Stacks Gate and Whiteover,'
said Mrs Bolton. `You've not seen the new works at Stacks Gate, opened after
the war, have you, Sir Clifford? Oh, you must go one day, they're something
quite new: great big chemical works at the pit-head, doesn't look a bit
like a colliery. They say they get more money out of the chemical by-products
than out of the coal---I forget what it is. And the grand new houses for
the men, fair mansions! of course it's brought a lot of riff-raff from all
over the country. But a lot of Tevershall men got on there, and doin' well,
a lot better than our own men. They say Tevershall's done, finished: only
a question of a few more years, and it'll have to shut down. And New London'll
go first. My word, won't it be funny when there's no Tevershall pit working.
It's bad enough during a strike, but my word, if it closes for good, it'll
be like the end of the world. Even when I was a girl it was the best pit
in the country, and a man counted himself lucky if he could on here. Oh,
there's been some money made in Tevershall. And now the men say it's a sinking
ship, and it's time they all got out. Doesn't it sound awful! But of course
there's a lot as'll never go till they have to. They don't like these new
fangled mines, such a depth, and all machinery to work them. Some of them
simply dreads those iron men, as they call them, those machines for hewing
the coal, where men always did it before. And they say it's wasteful as
well. But what goes in waste is saved in wages, and a lot more. It seems
soon there'll be no use for men on the face of the earth, it'll be all machines.
But they say that's what folks said when they had to give up the old stocking
frames. I can remember one or two. But my word, the more machines, the more
people, that's what it looks like! They say you can't get the same chemicals
out of Tevershall coal as you can out of Stacks Gate, and that's funny,
they're not three miles apart. But they say so. But everybody says it's
a shame something can't be started, to keep the men going a bit better,
and employ the girls. All the girls traipsing off to Sheffield every day!
My word, it would be something to talk about if Tevershall Collieries took
a new lease of life, after everybody saying they're finished, and a sinking
ship, and the men ought to leave them like rats leave a sinking ship. But
folks talk so much, of course there was a boom during the war. When Sir
Geoffrey made a trust of himself and got the money safe for ever, somehow.
So they say! But they say even the masters and the owners don't get much
out of it now. You can hardly believe it, can you! Why I always thought
the pits would go on for ever and ever. Who'd have thought, when I was a
girl! But New England's shut down, so is Colwick Wood: yes, it's fair haunting
to go through that coppy and see Colwick Wood standing there deserted among
the trees, and bushes growing up all over the pit-head, and the lines red
rusty. It's like death itself, a dead colliery. Why, whatever should we
do if Tevershall shut down---? It doesn't bear thinking of. Always that
throng it's been, except at strikes, and even then the fan-wheels didn't
stand, except when they fetched the ponies up. I'm sure it's a funny world,
you don't know where you are from year to year, you really don't.'
It was Mrs Bolton's talk that really put a new fight into Clifford.
His income, as she pointed out to him, was secure, from his father's trust,
even though it was not large. The pits did not really concern him. It was
the other world he wanted to capture, the world of literature and fame;
the popular world, not the working world.
Now he realized the distinction between popular success and working
success: the populace of pleasure and the populace of work. He, as a private
individual, had been catering with his stories for the populace of pleasure.
And he had caught on. But beneath the populace of pleasure lay the populace
of work, grim, grimy, and rather terrible. They too had to have their providers.
And it was a much grimmer business, providing for the populace of work,
than for the populace of pleasure. While he was doing his stories, and `getting
on' in the world, Tevershall was going to the wall.
He realized now that the bitch-goddess of Success had two main appetites:
one for flattery, adulation, stroking and tickling such as writers and artists
gave her; but the other a grimmer appetite for meat and bones. And the meat
and bones for the bitch-goddess were provided by the men who made money
in industry.
Yes, there were two great groups of dogs wrangling for the bitch-goddess:
the group of the flatterers, those who offered her amusement, stories, films,
plays: and the other, much less showy, much more savage breed, those who
gave her meat, the real substance of money. The well-groomed showy dogs
of amusement wrangled and snarled among themselves for the favours of the
bitch-goddess. But it was nothing to the silent fight-to-the-death that
went on among the indispensables, the bone-bringers.
But under Mrs Bolton's influence, Clifford was tempted to enter this
other fight, to capture the bitch- goddess by brute means of industrial
production. Somehow, he got his pecker up.
In one way, Mrs Bolton made a man of him, as Connie never did. Connie
kept him apart, and made him sensitive and conscious of himself and his
own states. Mrs Bolton made hint aware only of outside things. Inwardly
he began to go soft as pulp. But outwardly he began to be effective.
He even roused himself to go to the mines once more: and when he was
there, he went down in a tub, and in a tub he was hauled out into the workings.
Things he had learned before the war, and seemed utterly to have forgotten,
now came back to him. He sat there, crippled, in a tub, with the underground
manager showing him the seam with a powerful torch. And he said little.
But his mind began to work.
He began to read again his technical works on the coal-mining industry,
he studied the government reports, and he read with care the latest things
on mining and the chemistry of coal and of shale which were written in German.
Of course the most valuable discoveries were kept secret as far as possible.
But once you started a sort of research in the field of coal-mining, a study
of methods and means, a study of by- products and the chemical possibilities
of coal, it was astounding the ingenuity and the almost uncanny cleverness
of the modern technical mind, as if really the devil himself had lent fiend's
wits to the technical scientists of industry. It was far more interesting
than art, than literature, poor emotional half-witted stuff, was this technical
science of industry. In this field, men were like gods, or demons, inspired
to discoveries, and fighting to carry them out. In this activity, men were
beyond atty mental age calculable. But Clifford knew that when it did come
to the emotional and human life, these self-made men were of a mental age
of about thirteen, feeble boys. The discrepancy was enormous and appalling.
But let that be. Let man slide down to general idiocy in the emotional
and `human' mind, Clifford did not care. Let all that go hang. He was interested
in the technicalities of modern coal-mining, and in pulling Tevershall out
of the hole.
He went down to the pit day after day, he studied, he put the general
manager, and the overhead manager, and the underground manager, and the
engineers through a mill they had never dreamed of. Power! He felt a new
sense of power flowing through him: power over all these men, over the hundreds
and hundreds of colliers. He was finding out: and he was getting things
into his grip.
And he seemed verily to be re-born. Now life came into him!
He had been gradually dying, with Connie, in the isolated private life of
the artist and the conscious being. Now let all that go. Let it sleep. He
simply felt life rush into him out of the coal, out of the pit. The very
stale air of the colliery was better than oxygen to him. It gave him a sense
of power, power. He was doing something: and he was going to do
something. He was going to win, to win: not as he had won with his stories,
mere publicity, amid a whole sapping of energy and malice. But a man's victory.
At first he thought the solution lay in electricity: convert the coal
into electric power. Then a new idea came. The Germans invented a new locomotive
engine with a self feeder, that did not need a fireman. And it was to be
fed with a new fuel, that burnt in small quantities at a great heat, under
peculiar conditions.
The idea of a new concentrated fuel that burnt with a hard slowness
at a fierce heat was what first attracted Clifford. There must be some sort
of external stimulus of the burning of such fuel, not merely air supply.
He began to experiment, and got a clever young fellow, who had proved brilliant
in chemistry, to help him.
And he felt triumphant. He had at last got out of himself. He had fulfilled
his life-long secret yearning to get out of himself. Art had not done it
for him. Art had only made it worse. But now, now he had done it.
He was not aware how much Mrs Bolton was behind him. He did not know
how much he depended on her. But for all that, it was evident that when
he was with her his voice dropped to an easy rhythm of intimacy, almost
a trifle vulgar.
With Connie, he was a little stiff. He felt he owed her everything,
and he showed her the utmost respect and consideration, so long as she gave
him mere outward respect. But it was obvious he had a secret dread of her.
The new Achilles in hint had a heel, and in this heel the woman, the woman
like Connie, his wife, could lame him fatally. He went in a certain half-subservient
dread of her, and was extremely nice to her. But his voice was a little
tense when he spoke to her, and he began to be silent whenever she was present.
Only when he was alone with Mrs Bolton did he really feel a lord and
a master, and his voice ran on with her almost as easily and garrulously
as her own could run. And he let her shave him or sponge all his body as
if he were a child, really as if he were a child. Chapter 10
Connie was a good deal alone now, fewer people came to Wragby. Clifford
no longer wanted them. He had turned against even the cronies. He was queer.
He preferred the radio, which he had installed at some expense, with a good
deal of success at last. He could sometimes get Madrid or Frankfurt, even
there in the uneasy Midlands.
And he would sit alone for hours listening to the loudspeaker bellowing
forth. It amazed and stunned Connie. But there he would sit, with a blank
entranced expression on his face, like a person losing his mind, and listen,
or seem to listen, to the unspeakable thing.
Was he really listening? Or was it a sort of soporific he took, whilst
something else worked on underneath in him? Connie did now know. She fled
up to her room, or out of doors to the wood. A kind of terror filled her
sometimes, a terror of the incipient insanity of the whole civilized species.
But now that Clifford was drifting off to this other weirdness of industrial
activity, becoming almost a creature, with a hard, efficient shell
of an exterior and a pulpy interior, one of the amazing crabs and lobsters
of the modern, industrial and financial world, invertebrates of the crustacean
order, with shells of steel, like machines, and inner bodies of soft pulp,
Connie herself was really completely stranded.
She was not even free, for Clifford must have her there. He seemed to
have a nervous terror that she should leave him. The curious pulpy part
of him, the emotional and humanly-individual part, depended on her with
terror, like a child, almost like an idiot. She must be there, there at
Wragby, a Lady Chatterley, his wife. Otherwise he would be lost like an
idiot on a moor.
This amazing dependence Connie realized with a sort of horror. She heard
him with his pit managers, with the members of his Board, with young scientists,
and she was amazed at his shrewd insight into things, his power, his uncanny
material power over what is called practical men. He had become a practical
man himself and an amazingly astute and powerful one, a master. Connie attributed
it to Mrs Bolton's influence upon him, just at the crisis in his life.
But this astute and practical man was almost an idiot when left alone
to his own emotional life. He worshipped Connie. She was his wife, a higher
being, and he worshipped her with a queer, craven idolatry, like a savage,
a worship based on enormous fear, and even hate of the power of the idol,
the dread idol. All he wanted was for Connie to swear, to swear not to leave
him, not to give him away.
`Clifford,' she said to him---but this was after she had the key to
the hut---`Would you really like me to have a child one day?'
He looked at her with a furtive apprehension in his rather prominent
pale eyes.
`I shouldn't mind, if it made no difference between us,' he said.
`No difference to what?' she asked.
`To you and me; to our love for one another. If it's going to affect
that, then I'm all against it. Why, I might even one day have a child of
my own!'
She looked at him in amazement.
`I mean, it might come back to me one of these days.'
She still stared in amazement, and he was uncomfortable.
`So you would not like it if I had a child?' she said.
`I tell you,' he replied quickly, like a cornered dog, `I am quite willing,
provided it doesn't touch your love for me. If it would touch that, I am
dead against it.'
Connie could only be silent in cold fear and contempt. Such talk was
really the gabbling of an idiot. He no longer knew what he was talking about.
`Oh, it wouldn't make any difference to my feeling for you,' she said,
with a certain sarcasm.
`There!' he said. `That is the point! In that case I don't mind in the
least. I mean it would be awfully nice to have a child running about the
house, and feel one was building up a future for it. I should have something
to strive for then, and I should know it was your child, shouldn't I, dear?
And it would seem just the same as my own. Because it is you who count in
these matters. You know that, don't you, dear? I don't enter, I am a cypher.
You are the great I-am! as far as life goes. You know that, don't you? I
mean, as far as I am concerned. I mean, but for you I am absolutely nothing.
I live for your sake and your future. I am nothing to myself'
Connie heard it all with deepening dismay and repulsion. It was one
of the ghastly half-truths that poison human existence. What man in his
senses would say such things to a woman! But men aren't in their senses.
What man with a spark of honour would put this ghastly burden of life-responsibility
upon a woman, and leave her there, in the void?
Moreover, in half an hour's time, Connie heard Clifford talking to Mrs
Bolton, in a hot, impulsive voice, revealing himself in a sort of passionless
passion to the woman, as if she were half mistress, half foster- mother
to him. And Mrs Bolton was carefully dressing him in evening clothes, for
there were important business guests in the house.
Connie really sometimes felt she would die at this time. She felt she
was being crushed to death by weird lies, and by the amazing cruelty of
idiocy. Clifford's strange business efficiency in a way over-awed her, and
his declaration of private worship put her into a panic. There was nothing
between them. She never even touched him nowadays, and he never touched
her. He never even took her hand and held it kindly. No, and because they
were so utterly out of touch, he tortured her with his declaration of idolatry.
It was the cruelty of utter impotence. And she felt her reason would give
way, or she would die.
She fled as much as possible to the wood. One afternoon, as she sat
brooding, watching the water bubbling coldly in John's Well, the keeper
had strode up to her.
`I got you a key made, my Lady!' he said, saluting, and he offered her
the key.
`Thank you so much!' she said, startled.
`The hut's not very tidy, if you don't mind,' he said. `I cleared it
what I could.'
`But I didn't want you to trouble!' she said.
`Oh, it wasn't any trouble. I am setting the hens in about a week. But
they won't be scared of you. I s'll have to see to them morning and night,
but I shan't bother you any more than I can help.'
`But you wouldn't bother me,' she pleaded. `I'd rather not go to the
hut at all, if I am going to be in the way.'
He looked at her with his keen blue eyes. He seemed kindly, but distant.
But at least he was sane, and wholesome, if even he looked thin and ill.
A cough troubled him.
`You have a cough,' she said.
`Nothing---a cold! The last pneumonia left me with a cough, but it's
nothing.'
He kept distant from her, and would not come any nearer.
She went fairly often to the hut, in the morning or in the afternoon,
but he was never there. No doubt he avoided her on purpose. He wanted to
keep his own privacy.
He had made the hut tidy, put the little table and chair near the fireplace,
left a little pile of kindling and small logs, and put the tools and traps
away as far as possible, effacing himself. Outside, by the clearing, he
had built a low little roof of boughs and straw, a shelter for the birds,
and under it stood the live coops. And, one day when she came, she found
two brown hens sitting alert and fierce in the coops, sitting on pheasants'
eggs, and fluffed out so proud and deep in all the heat of the pondering
female blood. This almost broke Connie's heart. She, herself was so forlorn
and unused, not a female at all, just a mere thing of terrors.
Then all the live coops were occupied by hens, three brown and a grey
and a black. All alike, they clustered themselves down on the eggs in the
soft nestling ponderosity of the female urge, the female nature, fluffing
out their feathers. And with brilliant eyes they watched Connie, as she
crouched before them, and they gave short sharp clucks of anger and alarm,
but chiefly of female anger at being approached.
Connie found corn in the corn-bin in the hut. She offered it to the
hens in her hand. They would not eat it. Only one hen pecked at her hand
with a fierce little jab, so Connie was frightened. But she was pining to
give them something, the brooding mothers who neither fed themselves nor
drank. She brought water in a little tin, and was delighted when one of
the hens drank.
Now she came every day to the hens, they were the only things in the
world that warmed her heart. Clifford's protestations made her go cold from
head to foot. Mrs Bolton's voice made her go cold, and the sound of the
business men who came. An occasional letter from Michaelis affected her
with the same sense of chill. She felt she would surely die if it lasted
much longer.
Yet it was spring, and the bluebells were coming in the wood, and the
leaf-buds on the hazels were opening like the spatter of green rain. How
terrible it was that it should be spring, and everything cold- hearted,
cold-hearted. Only the hens, fluffed so wonderfully on the eggs, were warm
with their hot, brooding female bodies! Connie felt herself living on the
brink of fainting all the time.
Then, one day, a lovely sunny day with great tufts of primroses under
the hazels, and many violets dotting the paths, she came in the afternoon
to the coops and there was one tiny, tiny perky chicken tinily prancing
round in front of a coop, and the mother hen clucking in terror. The slim
little chick was greyish brown with dark markings, and it was the most alive
little spark of a creature in seven kingdoms at that moment. Connie crouched
to watch in a sort of ecstasy. Life, life! pure, sparky, fearless new life!
New life! So tiny and so utterly without fear! Even when it scampered a
little, scrambling into the coop again, and disappeared under the hen's
feathers in answer to the mother hen's wild alarm-cries, it was not really
frightened, it took it as a game, the game of living. For in a moment a
tiny sharp head was poking through the gold-brown feathers of the hen, and
eyeing the Cosmos.
Connie was fascinated. And at the same time, never had she felt so acutely
the agony of her own female forlornness. It was becoming unbearable.
She had only one desire now, to go to the clearing in the wood. The
rest was a kind of painful dream. But sometimes she was kept all day at
Wragby, by her duties as hostess. And then she felt as if she too were going
blank, just blank and insane.
One evening, guests or no guests, she escaped after tea. It was late,
and she fled across the park like one who fears to be called back. The sun
was setting rosy as she entered the wood, but she pressed on among the flowers.
The light would last long overhead.
She arrived at the clearing flushed and semi-conscious. The keeper was
there, in his shirt-sleeves, just closing up the coops for the night, so
the little occupants would be safe. But still one little trio was pattering
about on tiny feet, alert drab mites, under the straw shelter, refusing
to be called in by the anxious mother.
`I had to come and see the chickens!' she said, panting, glancing shyly
at the keeper, almost unaware of him. `Are there any more?'
`Thurty-six so far!' he said. `Not bad!'
He too took a curious pleasure in watching the young things come out.
Connie crouched in front of the last coop. The three chicks had run
in. But still their cheeky heads came poking sharply through the yellow
feathers, then withdrawing, then only one beady little head eyeing forth
from the vast mother-body.
`I'd love to touch them,' she said, putting her lingers gingerly through
the bars of the coop. But the mother-hen pecked at her hand fiercely, and
Connie drew back startled and frightened.
`How she pecks at me! She hates me!' she said in a wondering voice.
`But I wouldn't hurt them!'
The man standing above her laughed, and crouched down beside her, knees
apart, and put his hand with quiet confidence slowly into the coop. The
old hen pecked at him, but not so savagely. And slowly, softly, with sure
gentle lingers, he felt among the old bird's feathers and drew out a faintly-peeping
chick in his closed hand.
`There!' he said, holding out his hand to her. She took the little drab
thing between her hands, and there it stood, on its impossible little stalks
of legs, its atom of balancing life trembling through its almost weightless
feet into Connie's hands. But it lifted its handsome, clean-shaped little
head boldly, and looked sharply round, and gave a little `peep'. `So adorable!
So cheeky!' she said softly.
The keeper, squatting beside her, was also watching with an amused face
the bold little bird in her hands. Suddenly he saw a tear fall on to her
wrist.
And he stood up, and stood away, moving to the other coop. For suddenly
he was aware of the old flame shooting and leaping up in his loins, that
he had hoped was quiescent for ever. He fought against it, turning his back
to her. But it leapt, and leapt downwards, circling in his knees.
He turned again to look at her. She was kneeling and holding her two
hands slowly forward, blindly, so that the chicken should run in to the
mother-hen again. And there was something so mute and forlorn in her, compassion
flamed in his bowels for her.
Without knowing, he came quickly towards her and crouched beside her
again, taking the chick from her hands, because she was afraid of the hen,
and putting it back in the coop. At the back of his loins the lire suddenly
darted stronger.
He glanced apprehensively at her. Her face was averted, and she was
crying blindly, in all the anguish of her generation's forlornness. His
heart melted suddenly, like a drop of fire, and he put out his hand and
laid his lingers on her knee.
`You shouldn't cry,' he said softly.
But then she put her hands over her face and felt that really her heart
was broken and nothing mattered any more.
He laid his hand on her shoulder, and softly, gently, it began to travel
down the curve of her back, blindly, with a blind stroking motion, to the
curve of her crouching loins. And there his hand softly, softly, stroked
the curve of her flank, in the blind instinctive caress.
She had found her scrap of handkerchief and was blindly trying to dry
her face.
`Shall you come to the hut?' he said, in a quiet, neutral voice.
And closing his hand softly on her upper arm, he drew her up and led
her slowly to the hut, not letting go of her till she was inside. Then he
cleared aside the chair and table, and took a brown, soldier's blanket from
the tool chest, spreading it slowly. She glanced at his face, as she stood
motionless.
His face was pale and without expression, like that of a man submitting
to fate.
`You lie there,' he said softly, and he shut the door, so that it was
dark, quite dark.
With a queer obedience, she lay down on the blanket. Then she felt the
soft, groping, helplessly desirous hand touching her body, feeling for her
face. The hand stroked her face softly, softly, with infinite soothing and
assurance, and at last there was the soft touch of a kiss on her cheek.
She lay quite still, in a sort of sleep, in a sort of dream. Then she
quivered as she felt his hand groping softly, yet with queer thwarted clumsiness,
among her `clothing. Yet the hand knew, too, how to unclothe her where it
wanted. He drew down the thin silk sheath, slowly, carefully, right down
and over her feet. Then with a quiver of exquisite pleasure he touched the
warm soft body, and touched her navel for a moment in a kiss. And he had
to come in to her at once, to enter the peace on earth of her soft, quiescent
body. It was the moment of pure peace for him, the entry into the body of
the woman.
She lay still, in a kind of sleep, always in a kind of sleep. The activity,
the orgasm was his, all his; she could strive for herself no more. Even
the tightness of his arms round her, even the intense movement of his body,
and the springing of his seed in her, was a kind of sleep, from which she
did not begin to rouse till he had finished and lay softly panting against
her breast.
Then she wondered, just dimly wondered, why? Why was this necessary?
Why had it lifted a great cloud from her and given her peace? Was it real?
Was it real?
Her tormented modern-woman's brain still had no rest. Was it real? And
she knew, if she gave herself to the man, it was real. But if she kept herself
for herself it was nothing. She was old; millions of years old, she felt.
And at last, she could bear the burden of herself no more. She was to be
had for the taking. To be had for the taking.
The man lay in a mysterious stillness. What was he feeling? What was
he thinking? She did not know. He was a strange man to her, she did not
know him. She must only wait, for she did not dare to break his mysterious
stillness. He lay there with his arms round her, his body on hers, his wet
body touching hers, so close. And completely unknown. Yet not unpeaceful.
His very stillness was peaceful.
She knew that, when at last he roused and drew away from her. It was
like an abandonment. He drew her dress in the darkness down over her knees
and stood a few moments, apparently adjusting his own clothing. Then he
quietly opened the door and went out.
She saw a very brilliant little moon shining above the afterglow over
the oaks. Quickly she got up and arranged herself she was tidy. Then she
went to the door of the hut.
All the lower wood was in shadow, almost darkness. Yet the sky overhead
was crystal. But it shed hardly any light. He came through the lower shadow
towards her, his face lifted like a pale blotch.
`Shall we go then?' he said.
`Where?'
`I'll go with you to the gate.'
He arranged things his own way. He locked the door of the hut and came
after her.
`You aren't sorry, are you?' he asked, as he went at her side.
`No! No! Are you?' she said.
`For that! No!' he said. Then after a while he added: `But there's the
rest of things.'
`What rest of things?' she said.
`Sir Clifford. Other folks. All the complications.'
`Why complications?' she said, disappointed.
`It's always so. For you as well as for me. There's always complications.'
He walked on steadily in the dark.
`And are you sorry?' she said.
`In a way!' he replied, looking up at the sky. `I thought I'd done with
it all. Now I've begun again.'
`Begun what?'
`Life.'
`Life!' she re-echoed, with a queer thrill.
`It's life,' he said. `There's no keeping clear. And if you do keep
clear you might almost as well die. So if I've got to be broken open again,
I have.'
She did not quite see it that way, but still `It's just love,' she said
cheerfully.
`Whatever that may be,' he replied.
They went on through the darkening wood in silence, till they were almost
at the gate.
`But you don't hate me, do you?' she said wistfully.
`Nay, nay,' he replied. And suddenly he held her fast against his breast
again, with the old connecting passion. `Nay, for me it was good, it was
good. Was it for you?'
`Yes, for me too,' she answered, a little untruthfully, for she had
not been conscious of much.
He kissed her softly, softly, with the kisses of warmth.
`If only there weren't so many other people in the world,' he said lugubriously.
She laughed. They were at the gate to the park. He opened it for her.
`I won't come any further,' he said.
`No!' And she held out her hand, as if to shake hands. But he took it
in both his.
`Shall I come again?' she asked wistfully.
`Yes! Yes!'
She left him and went across the park.
He stood back and watched her going into the dark, against the pallor
of the horizon. Almost with bitterness he watched her go. She had connected
him up again, when he had wanted to be alone. She had cost him that bitter
privacy of a man who at last wants only to be alone.
He turned into the dark of the wood. All was still, the moon had set.
But he was aware of the noises of the night, the engines at Stacks Gate,
the traffic on the main road. Slowly he climbed the denuded knoll. And from
the top he could see the country, bright rows of lights at Stacks Gate,
smaller lights at Tevershall pit, the yellow lights of Tevershall and lights
everywhere, here and there, on the dark country, with the distant blush
of furnaces, faint and rosy, since the night was clear, the rosiness of
the outpouring of white- hot metal. Sharp, wicked electric lights at Stacks
Gate! An undefinable quick of evil in them! And all the unease, the ever-shifting
dread of the industrial night in the Midlands. He could hear the winding-engines
at Stacks Gate turning down the seven-o'clock miners. The pit worked three
shifts.
He went down again into the darkness and seclusion of the wood. But
he knew that the seclusion of the wood was illusory. The industrial noises
broke the solitude, the sharp lights, though unseen, mocked it. A man could
no longer be private and withdrawn. The world allows no hermits. And now
he had taken the woman, and brought on himself a new cycle of pain and doom.
For he knew by experience what it meant.
It was not woman's fault, nor even love's fault, nor the fault of sex.
The fault lay there, out there, in those evil electric lights and diabolical
rattlings of engines. There, in the world of the mechanical greedy, greedy
mechanism and mechanized greed, sparkling with lights and gushing hot metal
and roaring with traffic, there lay the vast evil thing, ready to destroy
whatever did not conform. Soon it would destroy the wood, and the bluebells
would spring no more. All vulnerable things must perish under the rolling
and running of iron.
He thought with infinite tenderness of the woman. Poor forlorn thing,
she was nicer than she knew, and oh! so much too nice for the tough lot
she was in contact with. Poor thing, she too had some of the vulnerability
of the wild hyacinths, she wasn't all tough rubber-goods and platinum, like
the modern girl. And they would do her in! As sure as life, they would do
her in, as they do in all naturally tender life. Tender! Somewhere she was
tender, tender with a tenderness of the growing hyacinths, something that
has gone out of the celluloid women of today. But he would protect her with
his heart for a little while. For a little while, before the insentient
iron world and the Mammon of mechanized greed did them both in, her as well
as him.
He went home with his gun and his dog, to the dark cottage, lit the
lamp, started the fire, and ate his supper of bread and cheese, young onions
and beer. He was alone, in a silence he loved. His room was clean and tidy,
but rather stark. Yet the fire was bright, the hearth white, the petroleum
lamp hung bright over the table, with its white oil-cloth. He tried to read
a book about India, but tonight he could not read. He sat by the fire in
his shirt-sleeves, not smoking, but with a mug of beer in reach. And he
thought about Connie.
To tell the truth, he was sorry for what had happened, perhaps most
for her sake. He had a sense of foreboding. No sense of wrong or sin; he
was troubled by no conscience in that respect. He knew that conscience was
chiefly tear of society, or fear of oneself. He was not afraid of himself.
But he was quite consciously afraid of society, which he knew by instinct
to be a malevolent, partly-insane beast.
The woman! If she could be there with him, arid there were nobody else
in the world! The desire rose again, his penis began to stir like a live
bird. At the same time an oppression, a dread of exposing himself and her
to that outside Thing that sparkled viciously in the electric lights, weighed
down his shoulders. She, poor young thing, was just a young female creature
to him; but a young female creature whom he had gone into and whom he desired
again.
Stretching with the curious yawn of desire, for he had been alone and
apart from man or woman for four years, he rose and took his coat again,
and his gun, lowered the lamp and went out into the starry night, with the
dog. Driven by desire and by dread of the malevolent Thing outside, he made
his round in the wood, slowly, softly. He loved the darkness arid folded
himself into it. It fitted the turgidity of his desire which, in spite of
all, was like a riches; the stirring restlessness of his penis, the stirring
fire in his loins! Oh, if only there were other men to be with, to fight
that sparkling electric Thing outside there, to preserve the tenderness
of life, the tenderness of women, and the natural riches of desire. If only
there were men to fight side by side with! But the men were all outside
there, glorying in the Thing, triumphing or being trodden down in the rush
of mechanized greed or of greedy mechanism.
Constance, for her part, had hurried across the park, home, almost without
thinking. As yet she had no afterthought. She would be in time for dinner.
She was annoyed to find the doors fastened, however, so that she had
to ring. Mrs Bolton opened.
`Why there you are, your Ladyship! I was beginning to wonder if you'd
gone lost!' she said a little roguishly. `Sir Clifford hasn't asked for
you, though; he's got Mr Linley in with him, talking over something. It
looks as if he'd stay to dinner, doesn't it, my Lady?'
`It does rather,' said Connie.
`Shall I put dinner back a quarter of an hour? That would give you time
to dress in comfort.'
`Perhaps you'd better.'
Mr Linley was the general manager of the collieries, an elderly man
from the north, with not quite enough punch to suit Clifford; not up to
post-war conditions, nor post-war colliers either, with their `ca' canny'
creed. But Connie liked Mr Linley, though she was glad to be spared the
toadying of his wife.
Linley stayed to dinner, and Connie was the hostess men liked so much,
so modest, yet so attentive and aware, with big, wide blue eyes arid a soft
repose that sufficiently hid what she was really thinking. Connie had played
this woman so much, it was almost second nature to her; but still, decidedly
second. Yet it was curious how everything disappeared from her consciousness
while she played it.
She waited patiently till she could go upstairs and think her own thoughts.
She was always waiting, it seemed to be her forte.
Once in her room, however, she felt still vague and confused. She didn't
know what to think. What sort of a man was he, really? Did he really like
her? Not much, she felt. Yet he was kind. There was something, a sort of
warm naive kindness, curious and sudden, that almost opened her womb to
him. But she felt he might be kind like that to any woman. Though even so,
it was curiously soothing, comforting. And he was a passionate man, wholesome
and passionate. But perhaps he wasn't quite individual enough; he might
be the same with any woman as he had been with her. It really wasn't personal.
She was only really a female to him.
But perhaps that was better. And after all, he was kind to the female
in her, which no man had ever been. Men were very kind to the person
she was, but rather cruel to the female, despising her or ignoring her altogether.
Men were awfully kind to Constance Reid or to Lady Chatterley; but not to
her womb they weren't kind. And he took no notice of Constance or of Lady
Chatterley; he just softly stroked her loins or her breasts.
She went to the wood next day. It was a grey, still afternoon, with
the dark-green dogs-mercury spreading under the hazel copse, and all the
trees making a silent effort to open their buds. Today she could almost
feel it in her own body, the huge heave of the sap in the massive trees,
upwards, up, up to the bud-a, there to push into little flamey oak-leaves,
bronze as blood. It was like a ride running turgid upward, and spreading
on the sky.
She came to the clearing, but he was not there. She had only half expected
him. The pheasant chicks were running lightly abroad, light as insects,
from the coops where the fellow hens clucked anxiously. Connie sat and watched
them, and waited. She only waited. Even the chicks she hardly saw. She waited.
The time passed with dream-like slowness, and he did not come. She had
only half expected him. He never came in the afternoon. She must go home
to tea. But she had to force herself to leave.
As she went home, a fine drizzle of rain fell.
`Is it raining again?' said Clifford, seeing her shake her hat.
`Just drizzle.'
She poured tea in silence, absorbed in a sort of obstinacy. She did
want to see the keeper today, to see if it were really real. If it were
really real.
`Shall I read a little to you afterwards?' said Clifford.
She looked at him. Had he sensed something?
`The spring makes me feel queer---I thought I might rest a little,'
she said.
`Just as you like. Not feeling really unwell, are you?'
`No! Only rather tired---with the spring. Will you have Mrs Bolton to
play something with you?'
`No! I think I'll listen in.'
She heard the curious satisfaction in his voice. She went upstairs to
her bedroom. There she heard the loudspeaker begin to bellow, in an idiotically
velveteen-genteel sort of voice, something about a series of street-cries,
the very cream of genteel affectation imitating old criers. She pulled on
her old violet coloured mackintosh, and slipped out of the house at the
side door.
The drizzle of rain was like a veil over the world, mysterious, hushed,
not cold. She got very warm as she hurried across the park. She had to open
her light waterproof.
The wood was silent, still and secret in the evening drizzle of rain,
full of the mystery of eggs and half- open buds, half unsheathed flowers.
In the dimness of it all trees glistened naked and dark as if they had unclothed
themselves, and the green things on earth seemed to hum with greenness.
There was still no one at the clearing. The chicks had nearly all gone
under the mother-hens, only one or two last adventurous ones still dibbed
about in the dryness under the straw roof shelter. And they were doubtful
of themselves.
So! He still had not been. He was staying away on purpose. Or perhaps
something was wrong. Perhaps she should go to the cottage and see.
But she was born to wait. She opened the hut with her key. It was all
tidy, the corn put in the bin, the blankets folded on the shelf, the straw
neat in a corner; a new bundle of straw. The hurricane lamp hung on a nail.
The table and chair had been put back where she had lain.
She sat down on a stool in the doorway. How still everything was! The
fine rain blew very softly, filmily, but the wind made no noise. Nothing
made any sound. The trees stood like powerful beings, dim, twilit, silent
and alive. How alive everything was!
Night was drawing near again; she would have to go. He was avoiding
her.
But suddenly he came striding into the clearing, in his black oilskin
jacket like a chauffeur, shining with wet. He glanced quickly at the hut,
half-saluted, then veered aside and went on to the coops. There he crouched
in silence, looking carefully at everything, then carefully shutting the
hens and chicks up safe against the night.
At last he came slowly towards her. She still sat on her stool. He stood
before her under the porch.
`You come then,' he said, using the intonation of the dialect.
`Yes,' she said, looking up at him. `You're late!'
`Ay!' he replied, looking away into the wood.
She rose slowly, drawing aside her stool.
`Did you want to come in?' she asked.
He looked down at her shrewdly.
`Won't folks be thinkin' somethink, you comin' here every night?' he
said.
`Why?' She looked up at him, at a loss. `I said I'd come. Nobody knows.'
`They soon will, though,' he replied. `An' what then?'
She was at a loss for an answer.
`Why should they know?' she said.
`Folks always does,' he said fatally.
Her lip quivered a little.
`Well I can't help it,' she faltered.
`Nay,' he said. `You can help it by not comin'---if yer want to,' he
added, in a lower tone.
`But I don't want to,' she murmured.
He looked away into the wood, and was silent.
`But what when folks finds out?' he asked at last. `Think about it!
Think how lowered you'll feel, one of your husband's servants.'
She looked up at his averted face.
`Is it,' she stammered, `is it that you don't want me?'
`Think!' he said. `Think what if folks find out Sir Clifford an' a'---an'
everybody talkin'---'
`Well, I can go away.'
`Where to?'
`Anywhere! I've got money of my own. My mother left me twenty thousand
pounds in trust, and I know Clifford can't touch it. I can go away.'
`But 'appen you don't want to go away.'
`Yes, yes! I don't care what happens to me.'
`Ay, you think that! But you'll care! You'll have to care, everybody
has. You've got to remember your Ladyship is carrying on with a game-keeper.
It's not as if I was a gentleman. Yes, you'd care. You'd care.'
`I shouldn't. What do I care about my ladyship! I hate it really. I
feel people are jeering every time they say it. And they are, they are!
Even you jeer when you say it.'
`Me!'
For the first time he looked straight at her, and into her eyes. `I
don't jeer at you,' he said.
As he looked into her eyes she saw his own eyes go dark, quite dark,
the pupils dilating.
`Don't you care about a' the risk?' he asked in a husky voice. `You
should care. Don't care when it's too late!'
There was a curious warning pleading in his voice.
`But I've nothing to lose,' she said fretfully. `If you knew what it
is, you'd think I'd be glad to lose it. But are you afraid for yourself?'
`Ay!' he said briefly. `I am. I'm afraid. I'm afraid. I'm afraid O'
things.'
`What things?' she asked.
He gave a curious backward jerk of his head, indicating the outer world.
`Things! Everybody! The lot of 'em.'
Then he bent down and suddenly kissed her unhappy face.
`Nay, I don't care,' he said. `Let's have it, an' damn the rest. But
if you was to feel sorry you'd ever done it---!'
`Don't put me off,' she pleaded.
He put his fingers to her cheek and kissed her again suddenly.
`Let me come in then,' he said softly. `An' take off your mackintosh.'
He hung up his gun, slipped out of his wet leather jacket, and reached
for the blankets.
`I brought another blanket,' he said, `so we can put one over us if
you like.'
`I can't stay long,' she said. `Dinner is half-past seven.'
He looked at her swiftly, then at his watch.
`All right,' he said.
He shut the door, and lit a tiny light in the hanging hurricane lamp.
`One time we'll have a long time,' he said.
He put the blankets down carefully, one folded for her head. Then he
sat down a moment on the stool, and drew her to him, holding her close with
one arm, feeling for her body with his free hand. She heard the catch of
his intaken breath as he found her. Under her frail petticoat she was naked.
`Eh! what it is to touch thee!' he said, as his finger caressed the
delicate, warm, secret skin of her waist and hips. He put his face down
and rubbed his cheek against her belly and against her thighs again and
again. And again she wondered a little over the sort of rapture it was to
him. She did not understand the beauty he found in her, through touch upon
her living secret body, almost the ecstasy of beauty. For passion alone
is awake to it. And when passion is dead, or absent, then the magnificent
throb of beauty is incomprehensible and even a little despicable; warm,
live beauty of contact, so much deeper than the beauty of vision. She felt
the glide of his cheek on her thighs and belly and buttocks, and the close
brushing of his moustache and his soft thick hair, and her knees began to
quiver. Far down in her she felt a new stirring, a new nakedness emerging.
And she was half afraid. Half she wished he would not caress her so. He
was encompassing her somehow. Yet she was waiting, waiting.
And when he came into her, with an intensification of relief and consummation
that was pure peace to him, still she was waiting. She felt herself a little
left out. And she knew, partly it was her own fault. She willed herself
into this separateness. Now perhaps she was condemned to it. She lay still,
feeling his motion within her, his deep-sunk intentness, the sudden quiver
of him at the springing of his seed, then the slow- subsiding thrust. That
thrust of the buttocks, surely it was a little ridiculous. If you were a
woman, and a part in all the business, surely that thrusting of the man's
buttocks was supremely ridiculous. Surely the man was intensely ridiculous
in this posture and this act!
But she lay still, without recoil. Even when he had finished, she did
not rouse herself to get a grip on her own satisfaction, as she had done
with Michaelis; she lay still, and the tears slowly filled and ran from
her eyes.
He lay still, too. But he held her close and tried to cover her poor
naked legs with his legs, to keep them warm. He lay on her with a close,
undoubting warmth.
`Are yer cold?' he asked, in a soft, small voice, as if she were close,
so close. Whereas she was left out, distant.
`No! But I must go,' she said gently.
He sighed, held her closer, then relaxed to rest again.
He had not guessed her tears. He thought she was there with him.
`I must go,' she repeated.
He lifted himself kneeled beside her a moment, kissed the inner side
of her thighs, then drew down her skirts, buttoning his own clothes unthinking,
not even turning aside, in the faint, faint light from the lantern.
`Tha mun come ter th' cottage one time,' he said, looking down at her
with a warm, sure, easy face.
But she lay there inert, and was gazing up at him thinking: Stranger!
Stranger! She even resented him a little.
He put on his coat and looked for his hat, which had fallen, then he
slung on his gun.
`Come then!' he said, looking down at her with those warm, peaceful
sort of eyes.
She rose slowly. She didn't want to go. She also rather resented staying.
He helped her with her thin waterproof and saw she was tidy.
Then he opened the door. The outside was quite dark. The faithful dog
under the porch stood up with pleasure seeing him. The drizzle of rain drifted
greyly past upon the darkness. It was quite dark.
`Ah mun ta'e th' lantern,' he said. `The'll be nob'dy.'
He walked just before her in the narrow path, swinging the hurricane
lamp low, revealing the wet grass, the black shiny tree-roots like snakes,
wan flowers. For the rest, all was grey rain-mist and complete darkness.
`Tha mun come to the cottage one time,' he said, `shall ta? We might
as well be hung for a sheep as for a lamb.'
It puzzled her, his queer, persistent wanting her, when there was nothing
between them, when he never really spoke to her, and in spite of herself
she resented the dialect. His `tha mun come' seemed not addressed to her,
but some common woman. She recognized the foxglove leaves of the riding
and knew, more or less, where they were.
`It's quarter past seven,' he said, `you'll do it.' He had changed his
voice, seemed to feel her distance. As they turned the last bend in the
riding towards the hazel wall and the gate, he blew out the light. `We'll
see from here,' be said, taking her gently by the arm.
But it was difficult, the earth under their feet was a mystery, but
he felt his way by tread: he was used to it. At the gate he gave her his
electric torch. `It's a bit lighter in the park,' he said; `but take it
for fear you get off th' path.'
It was true, there seemed a ghost-glimmer of greyness in the open space
of the park. He suddenly drew her to him and whipped his hand under her
dress again, feeling her warm body with his wet, chill hand.
`I could die for the touch of a woman like thee,' he said in his throat.
`If tha' would stop another minute.'
She felt the sudden force of his wanting her again.
`No, I must run,' she said, a little wildly.
`Ay,' he replied, suddenly changed, letting her go.
She turned away, and on the instant she turned back to him saying: `Kiss
me.'
He bent over her indistinguishable and kissed her on the left eye. She
held her mouth and he softly kissed it, but at once drew away. He hated
mouth kisses.
`I'll come tomorrow,' she said, drawing away; `if I can,' she added.
`Ay! not so late,' he replied out of the darkness. Already she could
not see him at all.
`Goodnight,' she said.
`Goodnight, your Ladyship,' his voice.
She stopped and looked back into the wet dark. She could just see the
bulk of him. `Why did you say that?' she said.
`Nay,' he replied. `Goodnight then, run!'
She plunged on in the dark-grey tangible night. She found the side-door
open, and slipped into her room unseen. As she closed the door the gong
sounded, but she would take her bath all the same---she must take her bath.
`But I won't be late any more,' she said to herself; `it's too annoying.'
The next day she did not go to the wood. She went instead with Clifford
to Uthwaite. He could occasionally go out now in the car, and had got a
strong young man as chauffeur, who could help him out of the car if need
be. He particularly wanted to see his godfather, Leslie Winter, who lived
at Shipley Hall, not far from Uthwaite. Winter was an elderly gentleman
now, wealthy, one of the wealthy coal-owners who had had their hey-day in
King Edward's time. King Edward had stayed more than once at Shipley, for
the shooting. It was a handsome old stucco hall, very elegantly appointed,
for Winter was a bachelor and prided himself on his style; but the place
was beset by collieries. Leslie Winter was attached to Clifford, but personally
did not entertain a great respect for him, because of the photographs in
illustrated papers and the literature. The old man was a buck of the King
Edward school, who thought life was life and the scribbling fellows were
something else. Towards Connie the Squire was always rather gallant; he
thought her an attractive demure maiden and rather wasted on Clifford, and
it was a thousand pities she stood no chance of bringing forth an heir to
Wragby. He himself had no heir.
Connie wondered what he would say if he knew that Clifford's game-keeper
had been having intercourse with her, and saying to her `tha mun come to
th' cottage one time.' He would detest and despise her, for he had come
almost to hate the shoving forward of the working classes. A man of her
own class he would not mind, for Connie was gifted from nature with this
appearance of demure, submissive maidenliness, and perhaps it was part of
her nature. Winter called her `dear child' and gave her a rather lovely
miniature of an eighteenth-century lady, rather against her will.
But Connie was preoccupied with her affair with the keeper. After all,
Mr Winter, who was really a gentleman and a man of the world, treated her
as a person and a discriminating individual; he did not lump her together
with all the rest of his female womanhood in his `thee' and `tha'.
She did not go to the wood that day nor the next, nor the day following.
She did not go so long as she felt, or imagined she felt, the man waiting
for her, wanting her. But the fourth day she was terribly unsettled and
uneasy. She still refused to go to the wood and open her thighs once more
to the man. She thought of all the things she might do---drive to Sheffield,
pay visits, and the thought of all these things was repellent. At last she
decided to take a walk, not towards the wood, but in the opposite direction;
she would go to Marehay, through the little iron gate in the other side
of the park fence. It was a quiet grey day of spring, almost warm. She walked
on unheeding, absorbed in thoughts she was not even conscious of She was
not really aware of anything outside her, till she was startled by the loud
barking of the dog at Marehay Farm. Marehay Farm! Its pastures ran up to
Wragby park fence, so they were neighbours, but it was some time since Connie
had called.
`Bell!' she said to the big white bull-terrier. `Bell! have you forgotten
me? Don't you know me?' She was afraid of dogs, and Bell stood back and
bellowed, and she wanted to pass through the farmyard on to the warren path.
Mrs Flint appeared. She was a woman of Constance's own age, had been
a school-teacher, but Connie suspected her of being rather a false little
thing.
`Why, it's Lady Chatterley! Why!' And Mrs Flint's eyes glowed again,
and she flushed like a young girl. `Bell, Bell. Why! barking at Lady Chatterley!
Bell! Be quiet!' She darted forward and slashed at the dog with a white
cloth she held in her hand, then came forward to Connie.
`She used to know me,' said Connie, shaking hands. The Flints were Chatterley
tenants.
`Of course she knows your Ladyship! She's just showing off,' said Mrs
Flint, glowing and looking up with a sort of flushed confusion, `but it's
so long since she's seen you. I do hope you are better.'
`Yes thanks, I'm all right.'
`We've hardly seen you all winter. Will you come in and look at the
baby?'
`Well!' Connie hesitated. `Just for a minute.'
Mrs Flint flew wildly in to tidy up, and Connie came slowly after her,
hesitating in the rather dark kitchen where the kettle was boiling by the
fire. Back came Mrs Flint.
`I do hope you'll excuse me,' she said. `Will you come in here?'
They went into the living-room, where a baby was sitting on the rag
hearth rug, and the table was roughly set for tea. A young servant-girl
backed down the passage, shy and awkward.
The baby was a perky little thing of about a year, with red hair like
its father, and cheeky pale-blue eyes. It was a girl, and not to be daunted.
It sat among cushions and was surrounded with rag dolls and other toys in
modern excess.
`Why, what a dear she is!' said Connie, `and how she's grown! A big
girl! A big girl!'
She had given it a shawl when it was born, and celluloid ducks for Christmas.
`There, Josephine! Who's that come to see you? Who's this, Josephine?
Lady Chatterley---you know Lady Chatterley, don't you?'
The queer pert little mite gazed cheekily at Connie. Ladyships were
still all the same to her.
`Come! Will you come to me?' said Connie to the baby.
The baby didn't care one way or another, so Connie picked her up and
held her in her lap. How warm and lovely it was to hold a child in one's
lap, and the soft little arms, the unconscious cheeky little legs.
`I was just having a rough cup of tea all by myself. Luke's gone to
market, so I can have it when I like. Would you care for a cup, Lady Chatterley?
I don't suppose it's what you're used to, but if you would...'
Connie would, though she didn't want to be reminded of what she was
used to. There was a great relaying of the table, and the best cups brought
and the best tea-pot.
`If only you wouldn't take any trouble,' said Connie.
But if Mrs Flint took no trouble, where was the fun! So Connie played
with the child and was amused by its little female dauntlessness, and got
a deep voluptuous pleasure out of its soft young warmth. Young life! And
so fearless! So fearless, because so defenceless. All the other people,
so narrow with fear!
She had a cup of tea, which was rather strong, and very good bread and
butter, and bottled damsons. Mrs Flint flushed and glowed and bridled with
excitement, as if Connie were some gallant knight. And they had a real female
chat, and both of them enjoyed it.
`It's a poor little tea, though,' said Mrs Flint.
`It's much nicer than at home,' said Connie truthfully.
`Oh-h!' said Mrs Flint, not believing, of course.
But at last Connie rose.
`I must go,' she said. `My husband has no idea where I am. He'll be
wondering all kinds of things.'
`He'll never think you're here,' laughed Mrs Flint excitedly. `He'll
be sending the crier round.'
`Goodbye, Josephine,' said Connie, kissing the baby and ruffling its
red, wispy hair.
Mrs Flint insisted on opening the locked and barred front door. Connie
emerged in the farm's little front garden, shut in by a privet hedge. There
were two rows of auriculas by the path, very velvety and rich.
`Lovely auriculas,' said Connie.
`Recklesses, as Luke calls them,' laughed Mrs Flint. `Have some.'
And eagerly she picked the velvet and primrose flowers.
`Enough! Enough!' said Connie.
They came to the little garden gate.
`Which way were you going?' asked Mrs Flint.
`By the Warren.'
`Let me see! Oh yes, the cows are in the gin close. But they're not
up yet. But the gate's locked, you'll have to climb.'
`I can climb,' said Connie.
`Perhaps I can just go down the close with you.'
They went down the poor, rabbit-bitten pasture. Birds were whistling
in wild evening triumph in the wood. A man was calling up the last cows,
which trailed slowly over the path-worn pasture.
`They're late, milking, tonight,' said Mrs Flint severely. `They know
Luke won't be back till after dark.'
They came to the fence, beyond which the young fir-wood bristled dense.
There was a little gate, but it was locked. In the grass on the inside stood
a bottle, empty.
`There's the keeper's empty bottle for his milk,' explained Mrs Flint.
`We bring it as far as here for him, and then he fetches it himself'
`When?' said Connie.
`Oh, any time he's around. Often in the morning. Well, goodbye Lady
Chatterley! And do come again. It was so lovely having you.'
Connie climbed the fence into the narrow path between the dense, bristling
young firs. Mrs Flint went running back across the pasture, in a sun-bonnet,
because she was really a schoolteacher. Constance didn't like this dense
new part of the wood; it seemed gruesome and choking. She hurried on with
her head down, thinking of the Flints' baby. It was a dear little thing,
but it would be a bit bow-legged like its father. It showed already, but
perhaps it would grow out of it. How warm and fulfilling somehow to have
a baby, and how Mrs Flint had showed it off! She had something anyhow that
Connie hadn't got, and apparently couldn't have. Yes, Mrs Flint had flaunted
her motherhood. And Connie had been just a bit, just a little bit jealous.
She couldn't help it.
She started out of her muse, and gave a little cry of fear. A man was
there.
It was the keeper. He stood in the path like Balaam's ass, barring her
way.
`How's this?' he said in surprise.
`How did you come?' she panted.
`How did you? Have you been to the hut?'
`No! No! I went to Marehay.'
He looked at her curiously, searchingly, and she hung her head a little
guiltily.
`And were you going to the hut now?' he asked rather sternly. `No! I
mustn't. I stayed at Marehay. No one knows where I am. I'm late. I've got
to run.'
`Giving me the slip, like?' he said, with a faint ironic smile. `No!
No. Not that. Only---'
`Why, what else?' he said. And he stepped up to her and put his arms
around her. She felt the front of his body terribly near to her, and alive.
`Oh, not now, not now,' she cried, trying to push him away.
`Why not? It's only six o'clock. You've got half an hour. Nay! Nay!
I want you.'
He held her fast and she felt his urgency. Her old instinct was to fight
for her freedom. But something else in her was strange and inert and heavy.
His body was urgent against her, and she hadn't the heart any more to fight.
He looked around.
`Come---come here! Through here,' he said, looking penetratingly into
the dense fir-trees, that were young and not more than half-grown.
He looked back at her. She saw his eyes, tense and brilliant, fierce,
not loving. But her will had left her. A strange weight was on her limbs.
She was giving way. She was giving up.
He led her through the wall of prickly trees, that were difficult to
come through, to a place where was a little space and a pile of dead boughs.
He threw one or two dry ones down, put his coat and waistcoat over them,
and she had to lie down there under the boughs of the tree, like an animal,
while he waited, standing there in his shirt and breeches, watching her
with haunted eyes. But still he was provident---he made her lie properly,
properly. Yet he broke the band of her underclothes, for she did not help
him, only lay inert.
He too had bared the front part of his body and she felt his naked flesh
against her as he came into her. For a moment he was still inside her, turgid
there and quivering. Then as he began to move, in the sudden helpless orgasm,
there awoke in her new strange thrills rippling inside her. Rippling, rippling,
rippling, like a flapping overlapping of soft flames, soft as feathers,
running to points of brilliance, exquisite, exquisite and melting her all
molten inside. It was like bells rippling up and up to a culmination. She
lay unconscious of the wild little cries she uttered at the last. But it
was over too soon, too soon, and she could no longer force her own conclusion
with her own activity. This was different, different. She could do nothing.
She could no longer harden and grip for her own satisfaction upon him. She
could only wait, wait and moan in spirit as she felt him withdrawing, withdrawing
and contracting, coming to the terrible moment when he would slip out of
her and be gone. Whilst all her womb was open and soft, and softly clamouring,
like a sea- anemone under the tide, clamouring for him to come in again
and make a fulfilment for her. She clung to him unconscious iii passion,
and he never quite slipped from her, and she felt the soft bud of him within
her stirring, and strange rhythms flushing up into her with a strange rhythmic
growing motion, swelling and swelling till it filled all her cleaving consciousness,
and then began again the unspeakable motion that was not really motion,
but pure deepening whirlpools of sensation swirling deeper and deeper through
all her tissue and consciousness, till she was one perfect concentric fluid
of feeling, and she lay there crying in unconscious inarticulate cries.
The voice out of the uttermost night, the life! The man heard it beneath
him with a kind of awe, as his life sprang out into her. And as it subsided,
he subsided too and lay utterly still, unknowing, while her grip on him
slowly relaxed, and she lay inert. And they lay and knew nothing, not even
of each other, both lost. Till at last he began to rouse and become aware
of his defenceless nakedness, and she was aware that his body was loosening
its clasp on her. He was coming apart; but in her breast she felt she could
not bear him to leave her uncovered. He must cover her now for ever.
But he drew away at last, and kissed her and covered her over, and began
to cover himself She lay looking up to the boughs of the tree, unable as
yet to move. He stood and fastened up his breeches, looking round. All was
dense and silent, save for the awed dog that lay with its paws against its
nose. He sat down again on the brushwood and took Connie's hand in silence.
She turned and looked at him. `We came off together that time,' he said.
She did not answer.
`It's good when it's like that. Most folks live their lives through
and they never know it,' he said, speaking rather dreamily.
She looked into his brooding face.
`Do they?' she said. `Are you glad?'
He looked back into her eyes. `Glad,' he said, `Ay, but never mind.'
He did not want her to talk. And he bent over her and kissed her, and she
felt, so he must kiss her for ever.
At last she sat up.
`Don't people often come off together?' she asked with naive curiosity.
`A good many of them never. You can see by the raw look of them.' He
spoke unwittingly, regretting he had begun.
`Have you come off like that with other women?'
He looked at her amused.
`I don't know,' he said, `I don't know.'
And she knew he would never tell her anything he didn't want to tell
her. She watched his face, and the passion for him moved in her bowels.
She resisted it as far as she could, for it was the loss of herself to herself.
He put on his waistcoat and his coat, and pushed a way through to the
path again.
The last level rays of the sun touched the wood. `I won't come with
you,' he said; `better not.'
She looked at him wistfully before she turned. His dog was waiting so
anxiously for him to go, and he seemed to have nothing whatever to say.
Nothing left.
Connie went slowly home, realizing the depth of the other thing in her.
Another self was alive in her, burning molten and soft in her womb and bowels,
and with this self she adored him. She adored him till her knees were weak
as she walked. In her womb and bowels she was flowing and alive now and
vulnerable, and helpless in adoration of him as the most naive woman. It
feels like a child, she said to herself it feels like a child in me. And
so it did, as if her womb, that had always been shut, had opened and filled
with new life, almost a burden, yet lovely.
`If I had a child!' she thought to herself; `if I had him inside me
as a child!'---and her limbs turned molten at the thought, and she realized
the immense difference between having a child to oneself and having a child
to a man whom one's bowels yearned towards. The former seemed in a sense
ordinary: but to have a child to a man whom one adored in one's bowels and
one's womb, it made her feel she was very different from her old self and
as if she was sinking deep, deep to the centre of all womanhood and the
sleep of creation.
It was not the passion that was new to her, it was the yearning adoration.
She knew she had always feared it, for it left her helpless; she feared
it still, lest if she adored him too much, then she would lose herself become
effaced, and she did not want to be effaced, a slave, like a savage woman.
She must not become a slave. She feared her adoration, yet she would not
at once fight against it. She knew she could fight it. She had a devil of
self-will in her breast that could have fought the full soft heaving adoration
of her womb and crushed it. She could even now do it, or she thought so,
and she could then take up her passion with her own will.
Ah yes, to be passionate like a Bacchante, like a Bacchanal fleeing
through the woods, to call on Iacchos, the bright phallos that had no independent
personality behind it, but was pure god-servant to the woman! The man, the
individual, let him not dare intrude. He was but a temple-servant, the bearer
and keeper of the bright phallos, her own.
So, in the flux of new awakening, the old hard passion flamed in her
for a time, and the man dwindled to a contemptible object, the mere phallos-bearer,
to be torn to pieces when his service was performed. She felt the force
of the Bacchae in her limbs and her body, the woman gleaming and rapid,
beating down the male; but while she felt this, her heart was heavy. She
did not want it, it was known and barren, birthless; the adoration was her
treasure.
It was so fathomless, so soft, so deep and so unknown. No, no, she would
give up her hard bright female power; she was weary of it, stiffened with
it; she would sink in the new bath of life, in the depths of her womb and
her bowels that sang the voiceless song of adoration. It was early yet to
begin to fear the man.
`I walked over by Marehay, and I had tea with Mrs Flint,' she said to
Clifford. `I wanted to see the baby. It's so adorable, with hair like red
cobwebs. Such a dear! Mr Flint had gone to market, so she and I and the
baby had tea together. Did you wonder where I was?'
`Well, I wondered, but I guessed you had dropped in somewhere to tea,'
said Clifford jealously. With a sort of second sight he sensed something
new in her, something to him quite incomprehensible, hut he ascribed it
to the baby. He thought that all that ailed Connie was that she did not
have a baby, automatically bring one forth, so to speak.
`I saw you go across the park to the iron gate, my Lady,' said Mrs Bolton;
`so I thought perhaps you'd called at the Rectory.'
`I nearly did, then I turned towards Marehay instead.'
The eyes of the two women met: Mrs Bolton's grey and bright and searching;
Connie's blue and veiled and strangely beautiful. Mrs Bolton was almost
sure she had a lover, yet how could it be, and who could it be? Where was
there a man?
`Oh, it's so good for you, if you go out and see a bit of company sometimes,'
said Mrs Bolton. `I was saying to Sir Clifford, it would do her ladyship
a world of good if she'd go out among people more.'
`Yes, I'm glad I went, and such a quaint dear cheeky baby, Clifford,'
said Connie. `It's got hair just like spider-webs, and bright orange, and
the oddest, cheekiest, pale-blue china eyes. Of course it's a girl, or it
wouldn't be so bold, bolder than any little Sir Francis Drake.'
`You're right, my Lady---a regular little Flint. They were always a
forward sandy-headed family,' said Mrs Bolton.
`Wouldn't you like to see it, Clifford? I've asked them to tea for you
to see it.'
`Who?' he asked, looking at Connie in great uneasiness. `Mrs Flint and
the baby, next Monday.'
`You can have them to tea up in your room,' he said.
`Why, don't you want to see the baby?' she cried.
`Oh, I'll see it, but I don't want to sit through a tea-time with them.'
`Oh,' cried Connie, looking at him with wide veiled eyes.
She did not really see him, he was somebody else.
`You can have a nice cosy tea up in your room, my Lady, and Mrs Flint
will be more comfortable than if Sir Clifford was there,' said Mrs Bolton.
She was sure Connie had a lover, and something in her soul exulted.
But who was he? Who was he? Perhaps Mrs Flint would provide a clue.
Connie would not take her bath this evening. The sense of his flesh
touching her, his very stickiness upon her, was dear to her, and in a sense
holy.
Clifford was very uneasy. He would not let her go after dinner, and
she had wanted so much to be alone. She looked at him, but was curiously
submissive.
`Shall we play a game, or shall I read to you, or what shall it be?'
he asked uneasily.
`You read to me,' said Connie.
`What shall I read---verse or prose? Or drama?'
`Read Racine,' she said.
It had been one of his stunts in the past, to read Racine in the real
French grand manner, but he was rusty now, and a little self-conscious;
he really preferred the loudspeaker. But Connie was sewing, sewing a little
frock silk of primrose silk, cut out of one of her dresses, for Mrs Flint's
baby. Between coming home and dinner she had cut it out, and she sat in
the soft quiescent rapture of herself sewing, while the noise of the reading
went on.
Inside herself she could feel the humming of passion, like the after-humming
of deep bells.
Clifford said something to her about the Racine. She caught the sense
after the words had gone.
`Yes! Yes!' she said, looking up at him. `It is splendid.'
Again he was frightened at the deep blue blaze of her eyes, and of her
soft stillness, sitting there. She had never been so utterly soft and still.
She fascinated him helplessly, as if some perfume about her intoxicated
him. So he went on helplessly with his reading, and the throaty sound of
the French was like the wind in the chimneys to her. Of the Racine she heard
not one syllable.
She was gone in her own soft rapture, like a forest soughing with the
dim, glad moan of spring, moving into bud. She could feel in the same world
with her the man, the nameless man, moving on beautiful feet, beautiful
in the phallic mystery. And in herself in all her veins, she felt him and
his child. His child was in all her veins, like a twilight.
`For hands she hath none, nor eyes, nor feet, nor golden Treasure of
hair...'
She was like a forest, like the dark interlacing of the oakwood, humming
inaudibly with myriad unfolding buds. Meanwhile the birds of desire were
asleep in the vast interlaced intricacy of her body.
But Clifford's voice went on, clapping and gurgling with unusual sounds.
How extraordinary it was! How extraordinary he was, bent there over the
book, queer and rapacious and civilized, with broad shoulders and no real
legs! What a strange creature, with the sharp, cold inflexible will of some
bird, and no warmth, no warmth at all! One of those creatures of the afterwards,
that have no soul, but an extra-alert will, cold will. She shuddered a little,
afraid of him. But then, the soft warm flame of life was stronger than he,
and the real things were hidden from him.
The reading finished. She was startled. She looked up, and was more
startled still to see Clifford watching her with pale, uncanny eyes, like
hate.
`Thank you so much! You do read Racine beautifully!' she said
softly.
`Almost as beautifully as you listen to him,' he said cruelly. `What
are you making?' he asked.
`I'm making a child's dress, for Mrs Flint's baby.'
He turned away. A child! A child! That was all her obsession.
`After all,' he said in a declamatory voice, `one gets all one wants
out of Racine. Emotions that are ordered and given shape are more important
than disorderly emotions.
She watched him with wide, vague, veiled eyes. `Yes, I'm sure they are,'
she said.
`The modern world has only vulgarized emotion by letting it loose. What
we need is classic control.'
`Yes,' she said slowly, thinking of him listening with vacant face to
the emotional idiocy of the radio. `People pretend to have emotions, and
they really feel nothing. I suppose that is being romantic.'
`Exactly!' he said.
As a matter of fact, he was tired. This evening had tired him. He would
rather have been with his technical books, or his pit-manager, or listening-in
to the radio.
Mrs Bolton came in with two glasses of malted milk: for Clifford, to
make him sleep, and for Connie, to fatten her again. It was a regular night-cap
she had introduced.
Connie was glad to go, when she had drunk her glass, and thankful she
needn't help Clifford to bed. She took his glass and put it on the tray,
then took the tray, to leave it outside.
`Goodnight Clifford! Do sleep well! The Racine gets into one
like a dream. Goodnight!'
She had drifted to the door. She was going without kissing him goodnight.
He watched her with sharp, cold eyes. So! She did not even kiss him goodnight,
after he had spent an evening reading to her. Such depths of callousness
in her! Even if the kiss was but a formality, it was on such formalities
that life depends. She was a Bolshevik, really. Her instincts were Bolshevistic!
He gazed coldly and angrily at the door whence she had gone. Anger!
And again the dread of the night came on him. He was a network of nerves,
anden he was not braced up to work, and so full of energy: or when he was
not listening-in, and so utterly neuter: then he was haunted by anxiety
and a sense of dangerous impending void. He was afraid. And Connie could
keep the fear off him, if she would. But it was obvious she wouldn't, she
wouldn't. She was callous, cold and callous to all that he did for her.
He gave up his life for her, and she was callous to him. She only wanted
her own way. `The lady loves her will.'
Now it was a baby she was obsessed by. Just so that it should be her
own, all her own, and not his!
Clifford was so healthy, considering. He looked so well and ruddy in
the face, his shoulders were broad and strong, his chest deep, he had put
on flesh. And yet, at the same time, he was afraid of death. A terrible
hollow seemed to menace him somewhere, somehow, a void, and into this void
his energy would collapse. Energyless, he felt at times he was dead, really
dead.
So his rather prominent pale eyes had a queer look, furtive, and yet
a little cruel, so cold: and at the same time, almost impudent. It was a
very odd look, this look of impudence: as if he were triumphing over life
in spite of life. `Who knoweth the mysteries of the will---for it can triumph
even against the angels---'
But his dread was the nights when he could not sleep. Then it was awful
indeed, when annihilation pressed in on him on every side. Then it was ghastly,
to exist without having any life: lifeless, in the night, to exist.
But now he could ring for Mrs Bolton. And she would always come. That
was a great comfort. She would come in her dressing gown, with her hair
in a plait down her back, curiously girlish and dim, though the brown plait
was streaked with grey. And she would make him coffee or camomile tea, and
she would play chess or piquet with him. She had a woman's queer faculty
of playing even chess well enough, when she was three parts asleep, well
enough to make her worth beating. So, in the silent intimacy of the night,
they sat, or she sat and he lay on the bed, with the reading-lamp shedding
its solitary light on them, she almost gone in sleep, he almost gone in
a sort of fear, and they played, played together---then they had a cup of
coffee and a biscuit together, hardly speaking, in the silence of night,
but being a reassurance to one another.
And this night she was wondering who Lady Chatterley's lover was. And
she was thinking of her own Ted, so long dead, yet for her never quite dead.
And when she thought of him, the old, old grudge against the world rose
up, but especially against the masters, that they had killed him. They had
not really killed him. Yet, to her, emotionally, they had. And somewhere
deep in herself because of it, she was a nihilist, and really anarchic.
In her half-sleep, thoughts of her Ted and thoughts of Lady Chatterley's
unknown lover commingled, and then she felt she shared with the other woman
a great grudge against Sir Clifford and all he stood for. At the same time
she was playing piquet with him, and they were gambling sixpences. And it
was a source of satisfaction to be playing piquet with a baronet, and even
losing sixpences to him.
When they played cards, they always gambled. It made him forget himself.
And he usually won. Tonight too he was winning. So he would not go to sleep
till the first dawn appeared. Luckily it began to appear at half past four
or thereabouts.
Connie was in bed, and fast asleep all this time. But the keeper, too,
could not rest. He had closed the coops and made his round of the wood,
then gone home and eaten supper. But he did not go to bed. Instead he sat
by the fire and thought.
He thought of his boyhood in Tevershall, and of his five or six years
of married life. He thought of his wife, and always bitterly. She had seemed
so brutal. But he had not seen her now since 1915, in the spring when he
joined up. Yet there she was, not three miles away, and more brutal than
ever. He hoped never to see her again while he lived.
He thought of his life abroad, as a soldier. India, Egypt, then India
again: the blind, thoughtless life with the horses: the colonel who had
loved him and whom he had loved: the several years that he had been an officer,
a lieutenant with a very fair chance of being a captain. Then the death
of the colonel from pneumonia, and his own narrow escape from death: his
damaged health: his deep restlessness: his leaving the army and coming back
to England to be a working man again.
He was temporizing with life. He had thought he would be safe, at least
for a time, in this wood. There was no shooting as yet: he had to rear the
pheasants. He would have no guns to serve. He would be alone, and apart
from life, which was all he wanted. He had to have some sort of a background.
And this was his native place. There was even his mother, though she had
never meant very much to him. And he could go on in life, existing from
day to day, without connexion and without hope. For he did not know what
to do with himself.
He did not know what to do with himself. Since he had been an officer
for some years, and had mixed among the other officers and civil servants,
with their wives and families, he had lost all ambition to `get on'. There
was a toughness, a curious rubbernecked toughness and unlivingness about
the middle and upper classes, as he had known them, which just left him
feeling cold and different from them.
So, he had come back to his own class. To find there, what he had forgotten
during his absence of years, a pettiness and a vulgarity of manner extremely
distasteful. He admitted now at last, how important manner was. He admitted,
also, how important it was even to pretend not to care about the
halfpence and the small things of life. But among the common people there
was no pretence. A penny more or less on the bacon was worse than a change
in the Gospel. He could not stand it.
And again, there was the wage-squabble. Having lived among the owning
classes, he knew the utter futility of expecting any solution of the wage-squabble.
There was no solution, short of death. The only thing was not to care, not
to care about the wages.
Yet, if you were poor and wretched you had to care. Anyhow,
it was becoming the only thing they did care about. The care about
money was like a great cancer, eating away the individuals of all classes.
He refused to care about money.
And what then? What did life offer apart from the care of money? Nothing.
Yet he could live alone, in the wan satisfaction of being alone, and
raise pheasants to be shot ultimately by fat men after breakfast. It was
futility, futility to the nth power.
But why care, why bother? And he had not cared nor bothered till now,
when this woman had come into his life. He was nearly ten years older than
she. And he was a thousand years older in experience, starting from the
bottom. The connexion between them was growing closer. He could see the
day when it would clinch up and they would have to make a life together.
`For the bonds of love are ill to loose!'
And what then? What then? Must he start again, with nothing to start
on? Must he entangle this woman? Must he have the horrible broil with her
lame husband? And also some sort of horrible broil with his own brutal wife,
who hated him? Misery! Lots of misery! And he was no longer young and merely
buoyant. Neither was he the insouciant sort. Every bitterness and every
ugliness would hurt him: and the woman!
But even if they got clear of Sir Clifford and of his own wife, even
if they got clear, what were they going to do? What was he, himself going
to do? What was he going to do with his life? For he must do something.
He couldn't be a mere hanger-on, on her money and his own very small pension.
It was the insoluble. He could only think of going to America, to try
a new air. He disbelieved in the dollar utterly. But perhaps, perhaps there
was something else.
He could not rest nor even go to bed. After sitting in a stupor of bitter
thoughts until midnight, he got suddenly from his chair and reached for
his coat and gun.
`Come on, lass,' he said to the dog. `We're best outside.'
It was a starry night, but moonless. He went on a slow, scrupulous,
soft-stepping and stealthy round. The only thing he had to contend with
was the colliers setting snares for rabbits, particularly the Stacks Gate
colliers, on the Marehay side. But it was breeding season, and even colliers
respected it a little. Nevertheless the stealthy beating of the round in
search of poachers soothed his nerves and took his mind off his thoughts.
But when he had done his slow, cautious beating of his bounds---it was
nearly a five-mile walk---he was tired. He went to the top of the knoll
and looked out. There was no sound save the noise, the faint shuffling noise
from Stacks Gate colliery, that never ceased working: and there were hardly
any lights, save the brilliant electric rows at the works. The world lay
darkly and fumily sleeping. It was half past two. But even in its sleep
it was an uneasy, cruel world, stirring with the noise of a train or some
great lorry on the road, and flashing with some rosy lightning flash from
the furnaces. It was a world of iron and coal, the cruelty of iron and the
smoke of coal, and the endless, endless greed that drove it all. Only greed,
greed stirring in its sleep.
It was cold, and he was coughing. A fine cold draught blew over the
knoll. He thought of the woman. Now he would have given all he had or ever
might have to hold her warm in his arms, both of them wrapped in one blanket,
and sleep. All hopes of eternity and all gain from the past he would have
given to have her there, to be wrapped warm with him in one blanket, and
sleep, only sleep. It seemed the sleep with the woman in his arms was the
only necessity.
He went to the hut, and wrapped himself in the blanket and lay on the
floor to sleep. But he could not, he was cold. And besides, he felt cruelly
his own unfinished nature. He felt his own unfinished condition of aloneness
cruelly. He wanted her, to touch her, to hold her fast against him in one
moment of completeness and sleep.
He got up again and went out, towards the park gates this time: then
slowly along the path towards the house. It was nearly four o'clock, still
clear and cold, but no sign of dawn. He was used to the dark, he could see
well.
Slowly, slowly the great house drew him, as a magnet. He wanted to be
near her. It was not desire, not that. It was the cruel sense of unfinished
aloneness, that needed a silent woman folded in his arms. Perhaps he could
find her. Perhaps he could even call her out to him: or find some way in
to her. For the need was imperious.
He slowly, silently climbed the incline to the hall. Then he came round
the great trees at the top of the knoll, on to the drive, which made a grand
sweep round a lozenge of grass in front of the entrance. He could already
see the two magnificent beeches which stood in this big level lozenge in
front of the house, detaching themselves darkly in the dark air.
There was the house, low and long and obscure, with one light burning
downstairs, in Sir Clifford's room. But which room she was in, the woman
who held the other end of the frail thread which drew him so mercilessly,
that he did not know.
He went a little nearer, gun in hand, and stood motionless on the drive,
watching the house. Perhaps even now he could find her, come at her in some
way. The house was not impregnable: he was as clever as burglars are. Why
not come to her?
He stood motionless, waiting, while the dawn faintly and imperceptibly
paled behind him. He saw the light in the house go out. But he did not see
Mrs Bolton come to the window and draw back the old curtain of dark-blue
silk, and stand herself in the dark room, looking out on the half-dark of
the approaching day, looking for the longed-for dawn, waiting, waiting for
Clifford to be really reassured that it was daybreak. For when he was sure
of daybreak, he would sleep almost at once.
She stood blind with sleep at the window, waiting. And as she stood,
she started, and almost cried out. For there was a man out there on the
drive, a black figure in the twilight. She woke up greyly, and watched,
but without making a sound to disturb Sir Clifford.
The daylight began to rustle into the world, and the dark figure seemed
to go smaller and more defined. She made out the gun and gaiters and baggy
jacket---it would be Oliver Mellors, the keeper. `Yes, for there was the
dog nosing around like a shadow, and waiting for him'!
And what did the man want? Did he want to rouse the house? What was
he standing there for, transfixed, looking up at the house like a love-sick
male dog outside the house where the bitch is?
Goodness! The knowledge went through Mrs Bolton like a shot. He was
Lady Chatterley's lover! He! He!
To think of it! Why, she, Ivy Bolton, had once been a tiny bit in love
with him herself. When he was a lad of sixteen and she a woman of twenty-six.
It was when she was studying, and he had helped her a lot with the anatomy
and things she had had to learn. He'd been a clever boy, had a scholarship
for Sheffield Grammar School, and learned French and things: and then after
all had become an overhead blacksmith shoeing horses, because he was fond
of horses, he said: but really because he was frightened to go out and face
the world, only he'd never admit it.
But he'd been a nice lad, a nice lad, had helped her a lot, so clever
at making things clear to you. He was quite as clever as Sir Clifford: and
always one for the women. More with women than men, they said.
Till he'd gone and married that Bertha Coutts, as if to spite himself.
Some people do marry to spite themselves, because they're disappointed of
something. And no wonder it had been a failure.---For years he was gone,
all the time of the war: and a lieutenant and all: quite the gentleman,
really quite the gentleman!--- Then to come back to Tevershall and go as
a game-keeper! Really, some people can't take their chances when they've
got them! And talking broad Derbyshire again like the worst, when she, Ivy
Bolton, knew he spoke like any gentleman, really.
Well, well! So her ladyship had fallen for him! Well her ladyship wasn't
the first: there was something about him. But fancy! A Tevershall lad born
and bred, and she her ladyship in Wragby Hall! My word, that was a slap
back at the high-and-mighty Chatterleys!
But he, the keeper, as the day grew, had realized: it's no good! It's
no good trying to get rid of your own aloneness. You've got to stick to
it all your life. Only at times, at times, the gap will be filled in. At
times! But you have to wait for the times. Accept your own aloneness and
stick to it, all your life. And then accept the times when the gap is filled
in, when they come. But they've got to come. You can't force them.
With a sudden snap the bleeding desire that had drawn him after her
broke. He had broken it, because it must be so. There must be a coming together
on both sides. And if she wasn't coming to him, he wouldn't track her down.
He mustn't. He must go away, till she came.
He turned slowly, ponderingly, accepting again the isolation. He knew
it was better so. She must come to him: it was no use his trailing after
her. No use!
Mrs Bolton saw him disappear, saw his dog run after him.
`Well, well!' she said. `He's the one man I never thought of; and the
one man I might have thought of. He was nice to me when he was a lad, after
I lost Ted. Well, well! Whatever would he say if he knew!'
And she glanced triumphantly at the already sleeping Clifford, as she
stepped softly from the room.
Chapter 11
Connie was sorting out one of the Wragby lumber rooms. There were several:
the house was a warren, and the family never sold anything. Sir Geoffery's
father had liked pictures and Sir Geoffery's mother had liked cinquecento
furniture. Sir Geoffery himself had liked old carved oak chests, vestry
chests. So it went on through the generations. Clifford collected very modern
pictures, at very moderate prices.
So in the lumber room there were bad Sir Edwin Landseers and pathetic
William Henry Hunt birds' nests: and other Academy stuff, enough to frighten
the daughter of an R.A. She determined to look through it one day, and clear
it all. And the grotesque furniture interested her.
Wrapped up carefully to preserve it from damage and dry-rot was the
old family cradle, of rosewood. She had to unwrap it, to look at it. It
had a certain charm: she looked at it a longtime.
`It's thousand pities it won't be called for,' sighed Mrs Bolton, who
was helping. `Though cradles like that are out of date nowadays.'
`It might be called for. I might have a child,' said Connie casually,
as if saying she might have a new hat.
`You mean if anything happened to Sir Clifford!' stammered Mrs Bolton.
`No! I mean as things are. It's only muscular paralysis with Sir Clifford---it
doesn't affect him,' said Connie, lying as naturally as breathing.
Clifford had put the idea into her head. He had said: `Of course I may
have a child yet. I'm not really mutilated at all. The potency may easily
come back, even if the muscles of the hips and legs are paralysed. And then
the seed may be transferred.'
He really felt, when he had his periods of energy and worked so hard
at the question of the mines, as if his sexual potency were returning. Connie
had looked at him in terror. But she was quite quick-witted enough to use
his suggestion for her own preservation. For she would have a child if she
could: but not his.
Mrs Bolton was for a moment breathless, flabbergasted. Then she didn't
believe it: she saw in it a ruse. Yet doctors could do such things nowadays.
They might sort of graft seed.
`Well, my Lady, I only hope and pray you may. It would be lovely for
you: and for everybody. My word, a child in Wragby, what a difference it
would make!'
`Wouldn't it!' said Connie.
And she chose three R. A. pictures of sixty years ago, to send to the
Duchess of Shortlands for that lady's next charitable bazaar. She was called
`the bazaar duchess', and she always asked all the county to send things
for her to sell. She would be delighted with three framed R. A.s. She might
even call, on the strength of them. How furious Clifford was when she called!
But oh my dear! Mrs Bolton was thinking to herself. Is it Oliver Mellors'
child you're preparing us for? Oh my dear, that would be a Tevershall
baby in the Wragby cradle, my word! Wouldn't shame it, neither!
Among other monstrosities in this lumber room was a largish blackjapanned
box, excellently and ingeniously made some sixty or seventy years ago, and
fitted with every imaginable object. On top was a concentrated toilet set:
brushes, bottles, mirrors, combs, boxes, even three beautiful little razors
in safety sheaths, shaving-bowl and all. Underneath came a sort of escritoire
outfit: blotters, pens, ink- bottles, paper, envelopes, memorandum books:
and then a perfect sewing-outfit, with three different sized scissors, thimbles,
needles, silks and cottons, darning egg, all of the very best quality and
perfectly finished. Then there was a little medicine store, with bottles
labelled Laudanum, Tincture of Myrrh, Ess. Cloves and so on: but empty.
Everything was perfectly new, and the whole thing, when shut up, was as
big as a small, but fat weekend bag. And inside, it fitted together like
a puzzle. The bottles could not possibly have spilled: there wasn't room.
The thing was wonderfully made and contrived, excellent craftsmanship
of the Victorian order. But somehow it was monstrous. Some Chatterley must
even have felt it, for the thing had never been used. It had a peculiar
soullessness.
Yet Mrs Bolton was thrilled.
`Look what beautiful brushes, so expensive, even the shaving brushes,
three perfect ones! No! and those scissors! They're the best that money
could buy. Oh, I call it lovely!'
`Do you?' said Connie. `Then you have it.'
`Oh no, my Lady!'
`Of course! It will only lie here till Doomsday. If you won't have it,
I'll send it to the Duchess as well as the pictures, and she doesn't deserve
so much. Do have it!'
`Oh, your Ladyship! Why, I shall never be able to thank you.'
`You needn't try,' laughed Connie.
And Mrs Bolton sailed down with the huge and very black box in her arms,
flushing bright pink in her excitement.
Mr Betts drove her in the trap to her house in the village, with the
box. And she had to have a few friends in, to show it: the school-mistress,
the chemist's wife, Mrs Weedon the undercashier's wife. They thought it
marvellous. And then started the whisper of Lady Chatterley's child.
`Wonders'll never cease!' said Mrs Weedon.
But Mrs Bolton was convinced, if it did come, it would be Sir
Clifford's child. So there!
Not long after, the rector said gently to Clifford:
`And may we really hope for an heir to Wragby? Ah, that would be the
hand of God in mercy, indeed!'
`Well! We may hope,' said Clifford, with a faint irony, and
at the same time, a certain conviction. He had begun to believe it really
possible it might even be his child.
Then one afternoon came Leslie Winter, Squire Winter, as everybody called
him: lean, immaculate, and seventy: and every inch a gentleman, as Mrs Bolton
said to Mrs Betts. Every millimetre indeed! And with his old-fashioned,
rather haw-haw! manner of speaking, he seemed more out of date than bag
wigs. Time, in her flight, drops these fine old feathers.
They discussed the collieries. Clifford's idea was, that his coal, even
the poor sort, could be made into hard concentrated fuel that would burn
at great heat if fed with certain damp, acidulated air at a fairly strong
pressure. It had long been observed that in a particularly strong, wet wind
the pit-bank burned very vivid, gave off hardly any fumes, and left a fine
powder of ash, instead of the slow pink gravel.
`But where will you find the proper engines for burning your fuel?'
asked Winter.
`I'll make them myself. And I'll use my fuel myself. And I'll sell electric
power. I'm certain I could do it.'
`If you can do it, then splendid, splendid, my dear boy. Haw! Splendid!
If I can be of any help, I shall be delighted. I'm afraid I am a little
out of date, and my collieries are like me. But who knows, when I'm gone,
there may be men like you. Splendid! It will employ all the men again, and
you won't have to sell your coal, or fail to sell it. A splendid idea, and
I hope it will be a success. If I had sons of my own, no doubt they would
have up-to-date ideas for Shipley: no doubt! By the way, dear boy, is there
any foundation to the rumour that we may entertain hopes of an heir to Wragby?'
`Is there a rumour?' asked Clifford.
`Well, my dear boy, Marshall from Fillingwood asked me, that's all I
can say about a rumour. Of course I wouldn't repeat it for the world, if
there were no foundation.'
`Well, Sir,' said Clifford uneasily, but with strange bright eyes. `There
is a hope. There is a hope.'
Winter came across the room and wrung Clifford's hand.
`My dear boy, my dear lad, can you believe what it means to me, to hear
that! And to hear you are working in the hopes of a son: and that you may
again employ every man at Tevershall. Ah, my boy! to keep up the level of
the race, and to have work waiting for any man who cares to work!---'
The old man was really moved.
Next day Connie was arranging tall yellow tulips in a glass vase.
`Connie,' said Clifford, `did you know there was a rumour that you are
going to supply Wragby with a son and heir?'
Connie felt dim with terror, yet she stood quite still, touching the
flowers.
`No!' she said. `Is it a joke? Or malice?'
He paused before he answered:
`Neither, I hope. I hope it may be a prophecy.'
Connie went on with her flowers.
`I had a letter from Father this morning,' She said. `He wants to know
if I am aware he has accepted Sir Alexander Cooper's Invitation for me for
July and August, to the Villa Esmeralda in Venice.'
`July and August?' said Clifford.
`Oh, I wouldn't stay all that time. Are you sure you wouldn't come?'
`I won't travel abroad,' said Clifford promptly. She took her flowers
to the window.
`Do you mind if I go?' she said. You know it was promised, for this
summer.
`For how long would you go?'
`Perhaps three weeks.'
There was silence for a time.
`Well,' said Clifford slowly, and a little gloomily. `I suppose I could
stand it for three weeks: if I were absolutely sure you'd want to come back.'
`I should want to come back,' she said, with a quiet simplicity, heavy
with conviction. She was thinking of the other man.
Clifford felt her conviction, and somehow he believed her, he believed
it was for him. He felt immensely relieved, joyful at once.
`In that case,' he said,
`I think it would be all right, don't you?'
`I think so,' she said.
`You'd enjoy the change?' She looked up at him with strange blue eyes.
`I should like to see Venice again,' she said, `and to bathe from one
of the shingle islands across the lagoon. But you know I loathe the Lido!
And I don't fancy I shall like Sir Alexander Cooper and Lady Cooper. But
if Hilda is there, and we have a gondola of our own: yes, it will be rather
lovely. I do wish you'd come.'
She said it sincerely. She would so love to make him happy, in these
ways.
`Ah, but think of me, though, at the Gare du Nord: at Calais quay!'
`But why not? I see other men carried in litter-chairs, who have been
wounded in the war. Besides, we'd motor all the way.'
`We should need to take two men.'
`Oh no! We'd manage with Field. There would always be another man there.'
But Clifford shook his head.
`Not this year, dear! Not this year! Next year probably I'll try.'
She went away gloomily. Next year! What would next year bring? She herself
did not really want to go to Venice: not now, now there was the other man.
But she was going as a sort of discipline: and also because, if she had
a child, Clifford could think she had a lover in Venice.
It was already May, and in June they were supposed to start. Always
these arrangements! Always one's life arranged for one! Wheels that worked
one and drove one, and over which one had no real control!
It was May, but cold and wet again. A cold wet May, good for corn and
hay! Much the corn and hay matter nowadays! Connie had to go into Uthwaite,
which was their little town, where the Chatterleys were still the
Chatterleys. She went alone, Field driving her.
In spite of May and a new greenness, the country was dismal. It was
rather chilly, and there was smoke on the rain, and a certain sense of exhaust
vapour in the air. One just had to live from one's resistance. No wonder
these people were ugly and tough.
The car ploughed uphill through the long squalid straggle of Tevershall,
the blackened brick dwellings, the black slate roofs glistening their sharp
edges, the mud black with coal-dust, the pavements wet and black. It was
as if dismalness had soaked through and through everything. The utter negation
of natural beauty, the utter negation of the gladness of life, the utter
absence of the instinct for shapely beauty which every bird and beast has,
the utter death of the human intuitive faculty was appalling. The stacks
of soap in the grocers' shops, the rhubarb and lemons in the greengrocers!
the awful hats in the milliners! all went by ugly, ugly, ugly, followed
by the plaster-and-gilt horror of the cinema with its wet picture announcements,
`A Woman's Love!', and the new big Primitive chapel, primitive enough in
its stark brick and big panes of greenish and raspberry glass in the windows.
The Wesleyan chapel, higher up, was of blackened brick and stood behind
iron railings and blackened shrubs. The Congregational chapel, which thought
itself superior, was built of rusticated sandstone and had a steeple, but
not a very high one. Just beyond were the new school buildings, expensivink
brick, and gravelled playground inside iron railings, all very imposing,
and fixing the suggestion of a chapel and a prison. Standard Five girls
were having a singing lesson, just finishing the la-me-doh-la exercises
and beginning a `sweet children's song'. Anything more unlike song, spontaneous
song, would be impossible to imagine: a strange bawling yell that followed
the outlines of a tune. It was not like savages: savages have subtle rhythms.
It was not like animals: animals mean something when they yell.
It was like nothing on earth, and it was called singing. Connie sat and
listened with her heart in her boots, as Field was filling petrol. What
could possibly become of such a people, a people in whom the living intuitive
faculty was dead as nails, and only queer mechanical yells and uncanny will-power
remained?
A coal-cart was coming downhill, clanking in the rain. Field started
upwards, past the big but weary- looking drapers and clothing shops, the
post-office, into the little market-place of forlorn space, where Sam Black
was peering out of the door of the Sun, that called itself an inn, not a
pub, and where the commercial travellers stayed, and was bowing to Lady
Chatterley's car.
The church was away to the left among black trees. The car slid on downhill,
past the Miners' Arms. It had already passed the Wellington, the Nelson,
the Three Tuns, and the Sun, now it passed the Miners' Arms, then the Mechanics'
Hall, then the new and almost gaudy Miners' Welfare and so, past a few new
`villas', out into the blackened road between dark hedges and dark green
fields, towards Stacks Gate.
Tevershall! That was Tevershall! Merrie England! Shakespeare's England!
No, but the England of today, as Connie had realized since she had come
to live in it. It was producing a new race of mankind, over-conscious in
the money and social and political side, on the spontaneous, intuitive side
dead, but dead. Half-corpses, all of them: but with a terrible insistent
consciousness in the other half. There was something uncanny and underground
about it all. It was an under-world. And quite incalculable. How shall we
understand the reactions in half-corpses? When Connie saw the great lorries
full of steel-workers from Sheffield, weird, distorted smallish beings like
men, off for an excursion to Matlock, her bowels fainted and she thought:
Ah God, what has man done to man? What have the leaders of men been doing
to their fellow men? They have reduced them to less than humanness; and
now there can be no fellowship any more! It is just a nightmare.
She felt again in a wave of terror the grey, gritty hopelessness of
it all. With such creatures for the industrial masses, and the upper classes
as she knew them, there was no hope, no hope any more. Yet she was wanting
a baby, and an heir to Wragby! An heir to Wragby! She shuddered with dread.
Yet Mellors had come out of all this!---Yes, but he was as apart from
it all as she was. Even in him there was no fellowship left. It was dead.
The fellowship was dead. There was only apartness and hopelessness, as far
as all this was concerned. And this was England, the vast bulk of England:
as Connie knew, since she had motored from the centre of it.
The car was rising towards Stacks Gate. The rain was holding off, and
in the air came a queer pellucid gleam of May. The country rolled away in
long undulations, south towards the Peak, east towards Mansfield and Nottingham.
Connie was travelling South.
As she rose on to the high country, she could see on her left, on a
height above the rolling land, the shadowy, powerful bulk of Warsop Castle,
dark grey, with below it the reddish plastering of miners' dwellings, newish,
and below those the plumes of dark smoke and white steam from the great
colliery which put so many thousand pounds per annum into the pockets of
the Duke and the other shareholders. The powerful old castle was a ruin,
yet it hung its bulk on the low sky-line, over the black plumes and the
white that waved on the damp air below.
A turn, and they ran on the high level to Stacks Gate. Stacks Gate,
as seen from the highroad, was just a huge and gorgeous new hotel, the Coningsby
Arms, standing red and white and gilt in barbarous isolation off the road.
But if you looked, you saw on the left rows of handsome `modern' dwellings,
set down like a game of dominoes, with spaces and gardens, a queer game
of dominoes that some weird `masters' were playing on the surprised earth.
And beyond these blocks of dwellings, at the back, rose all the astonishing
and frightening overhead erections of a really modern mine, chemical works
and long galleries, enormous, and of shapes not before known to man. The
head-stock and pit-bank of the mine itself were insignificant among the
huge new installations. And in front of this, the game of dominoes stood
forever in a sort of surprise, waiting to be played.
This was Stacks Gate, new on the face of the earth, since the war. But
as a matter of fact, though even Connie did not know it, downhill half a
mile below the `hotel' was old Stacks Gate, with a little old colliery and
blackish old brick dwellings, and a chapel or two and a shop or two and
a little pub or two.
But that didn't count any more. The vast plumes of smoke and vapour
rose from the new works up above, and this was now Stacks Gate: no chapels,
no pubs, even no shops. Only the great works', which are the modern Olympia
with temples to all the gods; then the model dwellings: then the hotel.
The hotel in actuality was nothing but a miners' pub though it looked first-classy.
Even since Connie's arrival at Wragby this new place had arisen on the
face of the earth, and the model dwellings had filled with riff-raff drifting
in from anywhere, to poach Clifford's rabbits among other occupations.
The car ran on along the uplands, seeing the rolling county spread out.
The county! It had once been a proud and lordly county. In front, looming
again and hanging on the brow of the sky-line, was the huge and splendid
bulk of Chadwick Hall, more window than wall, one of the most famous Elizabethan
houses. Noble it stood alone above a great park, but out of date, passed
over. It was still kept up, but as a show place. `Look how our ancestors
lorded it!'
That was the past. The present lay below. God alone knows where the
future lies. The car was already turning, between little old blackened miners'
cottages, to descend to Uthwaite. And Uthwaite, on a damp day, was sending
up a whole array of smoke plumes and steam, to whatever gods there be. Uthwaite
down in the valley, with all the steel threads of the railways to Sheffield
drawn through it, and the coal-mines and the steel-works sending up smoke
and glare from long tubes, and the pathetic little corkscrew spire of the
church, that is going to tumble down, still pricking the fumes, always affected
Connie strangely. It was an old market-town, centre of the dales. One of
the chief inns was the Chatterley Arms. There, in Uthwaite, Wragby was known
as Wragby, as if it were a whole place, not just a house, as it was to outsiders:
Wragby Hall, near Tevershall: Wragby, a `seat'.
The miners' cottages, blackened, stood flush on the pavement, with that
intimacy and smallness of colliers' dwellings over a hundred years old.
They lined all the way. The road had become a street, and as you sank, you
forgot instantly the open, rolling country where the castles and big houses
still dominated, but like ghosts. Now you were just above the tangle of
naked railway-lines, and foundries and other `works' rose about you, so
big you were only aware of walls. And iron clanked with a huge reverberating
clank, and huge lorries shook the earth, and whistles screamed.
Yet again, once you had got right down and into the twisted and crooked
heart of the town, behind the church, you were in the world of two centuries
ago, in the crooked streets where the Chatterley Arms stood, and the old
pharmacy, streets which used to lead Out to the wild open world of the castles
and stately couchant houses.
But at the corner a policeman held up his hand as three lorries loaded
with iron rolled past, shaking the poor old church. And not till the lorries
were past could he salute her ladyship.
So it was. Upon the old crooked burgess streets hordes of oldish blackened
miners' dwellings crowded, lining the roads out. And immediately after these
came the newer, pinker rows of rather larger houses, plastering the valley:
the homes of more modern workmen. And beyond that again, in the wide rolling
regions of the castles, smoke waved against steam, and patch after patch
of raw reddish brick showed the newer mining settlements, sometimes in the
hollows, sometimes gruesomely ugly along the sky-line of the slopes. And
between, in between, were the tattered remnants of the old coaching and
cottage England, even the England of Robin Hood, where the miners prowled
with the dismalness of suppressed sporting instincts, when they were not
at work.
England, my England! But which is my England? The stately homes
of England make good photographs, and create the illusion of a connexion
with the Elizabethans. The handsome old halls are there, from the days of
Good Queen Anne and Tom Jones. But smuts fall and blacken on the drab stucco,
that has long ceased to be golden. And one by one, like the stately homes,
they were abandoned. Now they are being pulled down. As for the cottages
of England---there they are---great plasterings of brick dwellings on the
hopeless countryside.
`Now they are pulling down the stately homes, the Georgian halls are
going. Fritchley, a perfect old Georgian mansion, was even now, as Connie
passed in the car, being demolished. It was in perfect repair: till the
war the Weatherleys had lived in style there. But now it was too big, too
expensive, and the country had become too uncongenial. The gentry were departing
to pleasanter places, where they could spend their money without having
to see how it was made.'
This is history. One England blots out another. The mines had made the
halls wealthy. Now they were blotting them out, as they had already blotted
out the cottages. The industrial England blots out the agricultural England.
One meaning blots out another. The new England blots out the old England.
And the continuity is not Organic, but mechanical.
Connie, belonging to the leisured classes, had clung to the remnants
of the old England. It had taken her years to realize that it was really
blotted out by this terrifying new and gruesome England, and that the blotting
out would go on till it was complete. Fritchley was gone, Eastwood was gone,
Shipley was going: Squire Winter's beloved Shipley.
Connie called for a moment at Shipley. The park gates, at the back,
opened just near the level crossing of the colliery railway; the Shipley
colliery itself stood just beyond the trees. The gates stood open, because
through the park was a right-of-way that the colliers used. They hung around
the park.
The car passed the ornamental ponds, in which the colliers threw their
newspapers, and took the private drive to the house. It stood above, aside,
a very pleasant stucco building from the middle of the eighteenth century.
It had a beautiful alley of yew trees, that had approached an older house,
and the hall stood serenely spread out, winking its Georgian panes as if
cheerfully. Behind, there were really beautiful gardens.
Connie liked the interior much better than Wragby. It was much lighter,
more alive, shapen and elegant. The rooms were panelled with creamy painted
panelling, the ceilings were touched with gilt, and everything was kept
in exquisite order, all the appointments were perfect, regardless of expense.
Even the corridors managed to be ample and lovely, softly curved and full
of life.
But Leslie Winter was alone. He had adored his house. But his park was
bordered by three of his own collieries. He had been a generous man in his
ideas. He had almost welcomed the colliers in his park. Had the miners not
made him rich! So, when he saw the gangs of unshapely men lounging by his
ornamental waters---not in the private part of the park, no, he
drew the line there---he would say: `the miners are perhaps not so ornamental
as deer, but they are far more profitable.'
But that was in the golden---monetarily---latter half of Queen Victoria's
reign. Miners were then `good working men'.
Winter had made this speech, half apologetic, to his guest, the then
Prince of Wales. And the Prince had replied, in his rather guttural English:
`You are quite right. If there were coal under Sandringham, I would
open a mine on the lawns, and think it first-rate landscape gardening. Oh,
I am quite willing to exchange roe-deer for colliers, at the price. Your
men are good men too, I hear.'
But then, the Prince had perhaps an exaggerated idea of the beauty of
money, and the blessings of industrialism.
However, the Prince had been a King, and the King had died, and now
there was another King, whose chief function seemed to be to open soup-kitchens.
And the good working men were somehow hemming Shipley in. New mining
villages crowded on the park, and the squire felt somehow that the population
was alien. He used to feel, in a good-natured but quite grand way, lord
of his own domain and of his own colliers. Now, by a subtle pervasion of
the new spirit, he had somehow been pushed out. It was he who did not belong
any more. There was no mistaking it. The mines, the industry, had a will
of its own, and this will was against the gentleman-owner. All the colliers
took part in the will, and it was hard to live up against it. It either
shoved you out of the place, or out of life altogether.
Squire Winter, a soldier, had stood it out. But he no longer cared to
walk in the park after dinner. He almost hid, indoors. Once he had walked,
bare-headed, and in his patent-leather shoes and purple silk socks, with
Connie down to the gate, talking to her in his well-bred rather haw-haw
fashion. But when it came to passing the little gangs of colliers who stood
and stared without either salute or anything else, Connie felt how the lean,
well-bred old man winced, winced as an elegant antelope stag in a cage winces
from the vulgar stare. The colliers were not personally hostile:
not at all. But their spirit was cold, and shoving him out. And, deep down,
there was a profound grudge. They `worked for him'. And in their ugliness,
they resented his elegant, well-groomed, well-bred existence. `Who's he!'
It was the difference they resented.
And somewhere, in his secret English heart, being a good deal of a soldier,
he believed they were right to resent the difference. He felt himself a
little in the wrong, for having all the advantages. Nevertheless he represented
a system, and he would not be shoved out.
Except by death. Which came on him soon after Connie's call, suddenly.
And he remembered Clifford handsomely in his will.
The heirs at once gave out the order for the demolishing of Shipley.
It cost too much to keep up. No one would live there. So it was broken up.
The avenue of yews was cut down. The park was denuded of its timber, and
divided into lots. It was near enough to Uthwaite. In the strange, bald
desert of this still-one- more no-man's-land, new little streets of semi-detacheds
were run up, very desirable! The Shipley Hall Estate!
Within a year of Connie's last call, it had happened. There stood Shipley
Hall Estate, an array of red- brick semi-detached `villas' in new streets.
No one would have dreamed that the stucco hall had stood there twelve months
before.
But this is a later stage of King Edward's landscape gardening, the
sort that has an ornamental coal-mine on the lawn.
One England blots out another. The England of the Squire Winters and
the Wragby Halls was gone, dead. The blotting out was only not yet complete.
What would come after? Connie could not imagine. She could only see
the new brick streets spreading into the fields, the new erections rising
at the collieries, the new girls in their silk stockings, the new collier
lads lounging into the Pally or the Welfare. The younger generation were
utterly unconscious of the old England. There was a gap in the continuity
of consciousness, almost American: but industrial really. What next?
Connie always felt there was no next. She wanted to hide her head in
the sand: or, at least, in the bosom of a living man.
The world was so complicated and weird and gruesome! The common people
were so many, and really so terrible. So she bought as she was going home,
and saw the colliers trailing from the pits, grey-black, distorted, one
shoulder higher than the other, slurring their heavy ironshod boots. Underground
grey faces, whites of eyes rolling, necks cringing from the pit roof, shoulders
Out of shape. Men! Men! Alas, in some ways patient and good men. In other
ways, non-existent. Something that men should have was bred and
killed out of them. Yet they were men. They begot children. One might bear
a child to them. Terrible, terrible thought! They were good and kindly.
But they were only half, Only the grey half of a human being. As yet, they
were `good'. But even that was the goodness of their halfness. Supposing
the dead in them ever rose up! But no, it was too terrible to think of.
Connie was absolutely afraid of the industrial masses. They seemed so weird
to her. A life with utterly no beauty in it, no intuition, always `in the
pit'.
Children from such men! Oh God, oh God!
Yet Mellors had come from such a father. Not quite. Forty years had
made a difference, an appalling difference in manhood. The iron and the
coal had eaten deep into the bodies and souls of the men.
Incarnate ugliness, and yet alive! What would become of them all? Perhaps
with the passing of the coal they would disappear again, off the face of
the earth. They had appeared out of nowhere in their thousands, when the
coal had called for them. Perhaps they were only weird fauna of the coal-seams.
Creatures of another reality, they were elementals, serving the elements
of coal, as the metal-workers were elementals, serving the element of iron.
Men not men, but animas of coal and iron and clay. Fauna of the elements,
carbon, iron, silicon: elementals. They had perhaps some of the weird, inhuman
beauty of minerals, the lustre of coal, the weight and blueness and resistance
of iron, the transparency of glass. Elemental creatures, weird and distorted,
of the mineral world! They belonged to the coal, the iron, the clay, as
fish belong to the sea and worms to dead wood. The anima of mineral disintegration!
Connie was glad to be home, to bury her head in the sand. She was glad
even to babble to Clifford. For her fear of the mining and iron Midlands
affected her with a queer feeling that went all over her, like influenza.
`Of course I had to have tea in Miss Bentley's shop,' she said.
`Really! Winter would have given you tea.'
`Oh yes, but I daren't disappoint Miss Bentley.' Miss Bentley was a
shallow old maid with a rather large nose and romantic disposition who served
tea with a careful intensity worthy of a sacrament.
`Did she ask after me?' said Clifford.
`Of course!---. May I ask your Ladyship how Sir Clifford is!---I
believe she ranks you even higher than Nurse Cavell!'
`And I suppose you said I was blooming.'
`Yes! And she looked as rapt as if I had said the heavens had opened
to you. I said if she ever came to Tevershall she was to come to see you.'
`Me! Whatever for! See me!'
`Why yes, Clifford. You can't be so adored without making some slight
return. Saint George of Cappadocia was nothing to you, in her eyes.'
`And do you think she'll come?'
`Oh, she blushed! and looked quite beautiful for a moment, poor thing!
Why don't men marry the women who would really adore them?'
`The women start adoring too late. But did she say she'd come?'
`Oh!' Connie imitated the breathless Miss Bentley, `your Ladyship, if
ever I should dare to presume!'
`Dare to presume! how absurd! But I hope to God she won't turn up. And
how was her tea?'
`Oh, Lipton's and very strong. But Clifford, do you realize
you are the Roman de la rose of Miss Bentley and lots like her?'
`I'm not flattered, even then.'
`They treasure up every one of your pictures in the illustrated papers,
and probably pray for you every night. It's rather wonderful.'
She went upstairs to change.
That evening he said to her:
`You do think, don't you, that there is something eternal in marriage?'
She looked at him.
`But Clifford, you make eternity sound like a lid or a long, long chain
that trailed after one, no matter how far one went.'
He looked at her, annoyed.
`What I mean,' he said, `is that if you go to Venice, you won't go in
the hopes of some love affair that you can take au grand sérieux,
will you?'
`A love affair in Venice au grand sérieux? No. I assure
you! No, I'd never take a love affair in Venice more than au très
petit sérieux.'
She spoke with a queer kind of contempt. He knitted his brows, looking
at her.
Coming downstairs in the morning, she found the keeper's dog Flossie
sitting in the corridor outside Clifford's room, and whimpering very faintly.
`Why, Flossie!' she said softly. `What are you doing here?'
And she quietly opened Clifford's door. Clifford was sitting up in bed,
with the bed-table and typewriter pushed aside, and the keeper was standing
at attention at the foot of the bed. Flossie ran in. With a faint gesture
of head and eyes, Mellors ordered her to the door again, and she slunk out.
`Oh, good morning, Clifford!' Connie said. `I didn't know you were busy.'
Then she looked at the keeper, saying good morning to him. He murmured his
reply, looking at her as if vaguely. But she felt a whiff of passion touch
her, from his mere presence.
`Did I interrupt you, Clifford? I'm sorry.'
`No, it's nothing of any importance.'
She slipped out of the room again, and up to the blue boudoir on the
first floor. She sat in the window, and saw him go down the drive, with
his curious, silent motion, effaced. He had a natural sort of quiet distinction,
an aloof pride, and also a certain look of frailty. A hireling! One of Clifford's
hirelings! `The fault, dear Brutus, is not in our stars, but in ourselves,
that we are underlings.'
Was he an underling? Was he? What did he think of her?
It was a sunny day, and Connie was working in the garden, and Mrs Bolton
was helping her. For some reason, the two women had drawn together, in one
of the unaccountable flows and ebbs of sympathy that exist between people.
They were pegging down carnations, and putting in small plants for the summer.
It was work they both liked. Connie especially felt a delight in putting
the soft roots of young plants into a soft black puddle, and cradling them
down. On this spring morning she felt a quiver in her womb too, as if the
sunshine had touched it and made it happy.
`It is many years since you lost your husband?' she said to Mrs Bolton
as she took up another little plant and laid it in its hole.
`Twenty-three!' said Mrs Bolton, as she carefully separated the young
columbines into single plants. `Twenty-three years since they brought him
home.'
Connie's heart gave a lurch, at the terrible finality of it. `Brought
him home!'
`Why did he get killed, do you think?' she asked. `He was happy with
you?'
It was a woman's question to a woman. Mrs Bolton put aside a strand
of hair from her face, with the back of her hand.
`I don't know, my Lady! He sort of wouldn't give in to things: he wouldn't
really go with the rest. And then he hated ducking his head for anything
on earth. A sort of obstinacy, that gets itself killed. You see he didn't
really care. I lay it down to the pit. He ought never to have been down
pit. But his dad made him go down, as a lad; and then, when you're over
twenty, it's not very easy to come out.'
`Did he say he hated it?'
`Oh no! Never! He never said he hated anything. He just made a funny
face. He was one of those who wouldn't take care: like some of the first
lads as went off so blithe to the war and got killed right away. He wasn't
really wezzle-brained. But he wouldn't care. I used to say to him: "You
care for nought nor nobody!" But he did! The way he sat when my first
baby was born, motionless, and the sort of fatal eyes he looked at me with,
when it was over! I had a bad time, but I had to comfort him. "It's
all right, lad, it's all right!" I said to him. And he gave me a look,
and that funny sort of smile. He never said anything. But I don't believe
he had any right pleasure with me at nights after; he'd never really let
himself go. I used to say to him: Oh, let thysen go, lad!---I'd talk broad
to him sometimes. And he said nothing. But he wouldn't let himself go, or
he couldn't. He didn't want me to have any more children. I always blamed
his mother, for letting him in th' room. He'd no right t'ave been there.
Men makes so much more of things than they should, once they start brooding.'
`Did he mind so much?' said Connie in wonder.
`Yes, he sort of couldn't take it for natural, all that pain. And it
spoilt his pleasure in his bit of married love. I said to him: If I don't
care, why should you? It's my look-out!---But all he'd ever say was: It's
not right!'
`Perhaps he was too sensitive,' said Connie.
`That's it! When you come to know men, that's how they are: too sensitive
in the wrong place. And I believe, unbeknown to himself he hated the pit,
just hated it. He looked so quiet when he was dead, as if he'd got free.
He was such a nice-looking lad. It just broke my heart to see him, so still
and pure looking, as if he'd wanted to die. Oh, it broke my heart,
that did. But it was the pit.'
She wept a few bitter tears, and Connie wept more. It was a warm spring
day, with a perfume of earth and of yellow flowers, many things rising to
bud, and the garden still with the very sap of sunshine.
`It must have been terrible for you!' said Connie.
`Oh, my Lady! I never realized at first. I could only say: Oh my lad,
what did you want to leave me for!- --That was all my cry. But somehow I
felt he'd come back.'
`But he didn't want to leave you,' said Connie.
`Oh no, my Lady! That was only my silly cry. And I kept expecting him
back. Especially at nights. I kept waking up thinking: Why he's not in bed
with me!---It was as if my feelings wouldn't believe he'd gone.
I just felt he'd have to come back and lie against me, so I could
feel him with me. That was all I wanted, to feel him there with me, warm.
And it took me a thousand shocks before I knew he wouldn't come back, it
took me years.'
`The touch of him,' said Connie.
`That's it, my Lady, the touch of him! I've never got over it to this
day, and never shall. And if there's a heaven above, he'll be there, and
will lie up against me so I can sleep.'
Connie glanced at the handsome, brooding face in fear. Another passionate
one out of Tevershall! The touch of him! For the bonds of love are ill to
loose!
`It's terrible, once you've got a man into your blood!' she said. `Oh,
my Lady! And that's what makes you feel so bitter. You feel folks wanted
him killed. You feel the pit fair wanted to kill him. Oh, I felt,
if it hadn't been for the pit, an' them as runs the pit, there'd have been
no leaving me. But they all want to separate a woman and a man,
if they're together.'
`If they're physically together,' said Connie.
`That's right, my Lady! There's a lot of hard-hearted folks in the world.
And every morning when he got up and went to th' pit, I felt it was wrong,
wrong. But what else could he do? What can a man do?'
A queer hate flared in the woman.
`But can a touch last so long?' Connie asked suddenly. `That you could
feel him so long?'
`Oh my Lady, what else is there to last? Children grows away from you.
But the man, well! But even that they'd like to kill in you, the
very thought of the touch of him. Even your own children! Ah well! We might
have drifted apart, who knows. But the feeling's something different. It's
'appen better never to care. But there, when I look at women who's never
really been warmed through by a man, well, they seem to me poor doolowls
after all, no matter how they may dress up and gad. No, I'll abide by my
own. I've not much respect for people.' Chapter 12
Connie went to the wood directly after lunch. It was really a lovely
day, the first dandelions making suns, the first daisies so white. The hazel
thicket was a lace-work, of half-open leaves, and the last dusty perpendicular
of the catkins. Yellow celandines now were in crowds, flat open, pressed
back in urgency, and the yellow glitter of themselves. It was the yellow,
the powerful yellow of early summer. And primroses were broad, and full
of pale abandon, thick-clustered primroses no longer shy. The lush, dark
green of hyacinths was a sea, with buds rising like pale corn, while in
the riding the forget-me-nots were fluffing up, and columbines were unfolding
their ink-purple ruches, and there were bits of blue bird's eggshell under
a bush. Everywhere the bud-knots and the leap of life!
The keeper was not at the hut. Everything was serene, brown chickens
running lustily. Connie walked on towards the cottage, because she wanted
to find him.
The cottage stood in the sun, off the wood's edge. In the little garden
the double daffodils rose in tufts, near the wide-open door, and red double
daisies made a border to the path. There was the bark of a dog, and Flossie
came running.
The wide-open door! so he was at home. And the sunlight falling on the
red-brick floor! As she went up the path, she saw him through the window,
sitting at the table in his shirt-sleeves, eating. The dog wuffed softly,
slowly wagging her tail.
He rose, and came to the door, wiping his mouth with a red handkerchief
still chewing.
`May I come in?' she said.
`Come in!'
The sun shone into the bare room, which still smelled of a mutton chop,
done in a dutch oven before the fire, because the dutch oven still stood
on the fender, with the black potato-saucepan on a piece of paper, beside
it on the white hearth. The fire was red, rather low, the bar dropped, the
kettle singing.
On the table was his plate, with potatoes and the remains of the chop;
also bread in a basket, salt, and a blue mug with beer. The table-cloth
was white oil-cloth, he stood in the shade.
`You are very late,' she said. `Do go on eating!'
She sat down on a wooden chair, in the sunlight by the door.
`I had to go to Uthwaite,' he said, sitting down at the table but not
eating.
`Do eat,' she said. But he did not touch the food.
`Shall y'ave something?' he asked her. `Shall y'ave a cup of tea? t'
kettle's on t' boil'---he half rose again from his chair.
`If you'll let me make it myself,' she said, rising. He seemed sad,
and she felt she was bothering him.
`Well, tea-pot's in there'---he pointed to a little, drab corner cupboard;
'an' cups. An' tea's on t' mantel ower yer 'ead,'
She got the black tea-pot, and the tin of tea from the mantel-shelf.
She rinsed the tea-pot with hot water, and stood a moment wondering where
to empty it.
`Throw it out,' he said, aware of her. `It's clean.'
She went to the door and threw the drop of water down the path. How
lovely it was here, so still, so really woodland. The oaks were putting
out ochre yellow leaves: in the garden the red daisies were like red plush
buttons. She glanced at the big, hollow sandstone slab of the threshold,
now crossed by so few feet.
`But it's lovely here,' she said. `Such a beautiful stillness, everything
alive and still.'
He was eating again, rather slowly and unwillingly, and she could feel
he was discouraged. She made the tea in silence, and set the tea-pot on
the hob, as she knew the people did. He pushed his plate aside and went
to the back place; she heard a latch click, then he came back with cheese
on a plate, and butter.
She set the two cups on the table; there were only two. `Will you have
a cup of tea?' she said.
`If you like. Sugar's in th' cupboard, an' there's a little cream jug.
Milk's in a jug in th' pantry.'
`Shall I take your plate away?' she asked him. He looked up at her with
a faint ironical smile.
`Why...if you like,' he said, slowly eating bread and cheese. She went
to the back, into the pent-house scullery, where the pump was. On the left
was a door, no doubt the pantry door. She unlatched it, and almost smiled
at the place he called a pantry; a long narrow white-washed slip of a cupboard.
But it managed to contain a little barrel of beer, as well as a few dishes
and bits of food. She took a little milk from the yellow jug.
`How do you get your milk?' she asked him, when she came back to the
table.
`Flints! They leave me a bottle at the warren end. You know, where I
met you!'
But he was discouraged. She poured out the tea, poising the cream-jug.
`No milk,' he said; then he seemed to hear a noise, and looked keenly
through the doorway.
`'Appen we'd better shut,' he said.
`It seems a pity,' she replied. `Nobody will come, will they?'
`Not unless it's one time in a thousand, but you never know.'
`And even then it's no matter,' she said. `It's only a cup of tea.'
`Where are the spoons?'
He reached over, and pulled open the table drawer. Connie sat at the
table in the sunshine of the doorway.
`Flossie!' he said to the dog, who was lying on a little mat at the
stair foot. `Go an' hark, hark!'
He lifted his finger, and his `hark!' was very vivid. The dog trotted
out to reconnoitre.
`Are you sad today?' she asked him.
He turned his blue eyes quickly, and gazed direct on her.
`Sad! no, bored! I had to go getting summonses for two poachers I caught,
and, oh well, I don't like people.'
He spoke cold, good English, and there was anger in his voice. `Do you
hate being a game-keeper?' she asked.
`Being a game-keeper, no! So long as I'm left alone. But when I have
to go messing around at the police-station, and various other places, and
waiting for a lot of fools to attend to me...oh well, I get mad...' and
he smiled, with a certain faint humour.
`Couldn't you be really independent?' she asked.
`Me? I suppose I could, if you mean manage to exist on my pension. I
could! But I've got to work, or I should die. That is, I've got to have
something that keeps me occupied. And I'm not in a good enough temper to
work for myself. It's got to be a sort of job for somebody else, or I should
throw it up in a month, out of bad temper. So altogether I'm very well off
here, especially lately...'
He laughed at her again, with mocking humour.
`But why are you in a bad temper?' she asked. `Do you mean you are always
in a bad temper?'
`Pretty well,' he said, laughing. `I don't quite digest my bile.'
`But what bile?' she said.
`Bile!' he said. `Don't you know what that is?' She was silent, and
disappointed. He was taking no notice of her.
`I'm going away for a while next month,' she said.
`You are! Where to?'
`Venice! With Sir Clifford? For how long?'
`For a month or so,' she replied. `Clifford won't go.'
`He'll stay here?' he asked.
`Yes! He hates to travel as he is.'
`Ay, poor devil!' he said, with sympathy. There was a pause.
`You won't forget me when I'm gone, will you?' she asked. Again he lifted
his eyes and looked full at her.
`Forget?' he said. `You know nobody forgets. It's not a question of
memory;'
She wanted to say: `When then?' but she didn't. Instead, she said in
a mute kind of voice: `I told Clifford I might have a child.'
Now he really looked at her, intense and searching.
`You did?' he said at last. `And what did he say?'
`Oh, he wouldn't mind. He'd be glad, really, so long as it seemed to
be his.' She dared not look up at him.
He was silent a long time, then he gazed again on her face.
`No mention of me, of course?' he said.
`No. No mention of you,' she said.
`No, he'd hardly swallow me as a substitute breeder. Then where are
you supposed to be getting the child?'
`I might have a love-affair in Venice,' she said.
`You might,' he replied slowly. `So that's why you're going?'
`Not to have the love-affair,' she said, looking up at him, pleading.
`Just the appearance of one,' he said.
There was silence. He sat staring out the window, with a faint grin,
half mockery, half bitterness, on his face. She hated his grin.
`You've not taken any precautions against having a child then?' he asked
her suddenly. `Because I haven't.'
`No,' she said faintly. `I should hate that.'
He looked at her, then again with the peculiar subtle grin out of the
window. There was a tense silence.
At last he turned his head and said satirically:
`That was why you wanted me, then, to get a child?'
She hung her head.
`No. Not really,' she said. `What then, really?' he asked rather
bitingly.
She looked up at him reproachfully, saying: `I don't know.'
He broke into a laugh.
`Then I'm damned if I do,' he said.
There was a long pause of silence, a cold silence.
`Well,' he said at last. `It's as your Ladyship likes. If you get the
baby, Sir Clifford's welcome to it. I shan't have lost anything. On the
contrary, I've had a very nice experience, very nice indeed!'---and he stretched
in a half-suppressed sort of yawn. `If you've made use of me,' he said,
`it's not the first time I've been made use of; and I don't suppose it's
ever been as pleasant as this time; though of course one can't feel tremendously
dignified about it.'---He stretched again, curiously, his muscles quivering,
and his jaw oddly set.
`But I didn't make use of you,' she said, pleading.
`At your Ladyship's service,' he replied.
`No,' she said. `I liked your body.'
`Did you?' he replied, and he laughed. `Well, then, we're quits, because
I liked yours.'
He looked at her with queer darkened eyes.
`Would you like to go upstairs now?' he asked her, in a strangled sort
of voice.
`No, not here. Not now!' she said heavily, though if he had used any
power over her, she would have gone, for she had no strength against him.
He turned his face away again, and seemed to forget her. `I want to
touch you like you touch me,' she said. `I've never really touched your
body.'
He looked at her, and smiled again. `Now?' he said. `No! No! Not here!
At the hut. Would you mind?'
`How do I touch you?' he asked.
`When you feel me.'
He looked at her, and met her heavy, anxious eyes.
`And do you like it when I feel you?' he asked, laughing at her still.
`Yes, do you?' she said.
`Oh, me!' Then he changed his tone. `Yes,' he said. `You know without
asking.' Which was true.
She rose and picked up her hat. `I must go,' she said.
`Will you go?' he replied politely.
She wanted him to touch her, to say something to her, but he said nothing,
only waited politely.
`Thank you for the tea,' she said.
`I haven't thanked your Ladyship for doing me the honours of my tea-pot,'
he said.
She went down the path, and he stood in the doorway, faintly grinning.
Flossie came running with her tail lifted. And Connie had to plod dumbly
across into the wood, knowing he was standing there watching her, with that
incomprehensible grin on his face.
She walked home very much downcast and annoyed. She didn't at all like
his saying he had been made use of because, in a sense, it was true. But
he oughtn't to have said it. Therefore, again, she was divided between two
feelings: resentment against him, and a desire to make it up with him.
She passed a very uneasy and irritated tea-time, and at once went up
to her room. But when she was there it was no good; she could neither sit
nor stand. She would have to do something about it. She would have to go
back to the hut; if he was not there, well and good.
She slipped out of the side door, and took her way direct and a little
sullen. When she came to the clearing she was terribly uneasy. But there
he was again, in his shirt-sleeves, stooping, letting the hens out of the
coops, among the chicks that were now growing a little gawky, but were much
more trim than hen- chickens.
She went straight across to him. `You see I've come!' she said.
`Ay, I see it!' he said, straightening his back, and looking at her
with a faint amusement.
`Do you let the hens out now?' she asked.
`Yes, they've sat themselves to skin and bone,' he said. `An' now they're
not all that anxious to come out an' feed. There's no self in a sitting
hen; she's all in the eggs or the chicks.'
The poor mother-hens; such blind devotion! even to eggs not their own!
Connie looked at them in compassion. A helpless silence fell between the
man and the woman.
`Shall us go i' th' 'ut?' he asked.
`Do you want me?' she asked, in a sort of mistrust.
`Ay, if you want to come.'
She was silent.
`Come then!' he said.
And she went with him to the hut. It was quite dark when he had shut
the door, so he made a small light in the lantern, as before.
`Have you left your underthings off?' he asked her.
`Yes!'
`Ay, well, then I'll take my things off too.'
He spread the blankets, putting one at the side for a coverlet. She
took off her hat, and shook her hair. He sat down, taking off his shoes
and gaiters, and undoing his cord breeches.
`Lie down then!' he said, when he stood in his shirt. She obeyed in
silence, and he lay beside her, and pulled the blanket over them both.
`There!' he said.
And he lifted her dress right back, till he came even to her breasts.
He kissed them softly, taking the nipples in his lips in tiny caresses.
`Eh, but tha'rt nice, tha'rt nice!' he said, suddenly rubbing his face
with a snuggling movement against her warm belly.
And she put her arms round him under his shirt, but she was afraid,
afraid of his thin, smooth, naked body, that seemed so powerful, afraid
of the violent muscles. She shrank, afraid.
And when he said, with a sort of little sigh: `Eh, tha'rt nice!' something
in her quivered, and something in her spirit stiffened in resistance: stiffened
from the terribly physical intimacy, and from the peculiar haste of his
possession. And this time the sharp ecstasy of her own passion did not overcome
her; she lay with her ends inert on his striving body, and do what she might,
her spirit seemed to look on from the top of her head, and the butting of
his haunches seemed ridiculous to her, and the sort of anxiety of his penis
to come to its little evacuating crisis seemed farcical. Yes, this was love,
this ridiculous bouncing of the buttocks, and the wilting of the poor, insignificant,
moist little penis. This was the divine love! After all, the moderns were
right when they felt contempt for the performance; for it was a performance.
It was quite true, as some poets said, that the God who created man must
have had a sinister sense of humour, creating him a reasonable being, yet
forcing him to take this ridiculous posture, and driving him with blind
craving for this ridiculous performance. Even a Maupassant found it a humiliating
anti-climax. Men despised the intercourse act, and yet did it.
Cold and derisive her queer female mind stood apart, and though she
lay perfectly still, her impulse was to heave her loins, and throw the man
out, escape his ugly grip, and the butting over-riding of his absurd haunches.
His body was a foolish, impudent, imperfect thing, a little disgusting in
its unfinished clumsiness. For surely a complete evolution would eliminate
this performance, this `function'.
And yet when he had finished, soon over, and lay very very still, receding
into silence, and a strange motionless distance, far, farther than the horizon
of her awareness, her heart began to weep. She could feel him ebbing away,
ebbing away, leaving her there like a stone on a shore. He was withdrawing,
his spirit was leaving her. He knew.
And in real grief, tormented by her own double consciousness and reaction,
she began to weep. He took no notice, or did not even know. The storm of
weeping swelled and shook her, and shook him.
`Ay!' he said. `It was no good that time. You wasn't there.'---So he
knew! Her sobs became violent.
`But what's amiss?' he said. `It's once in a while that way.'
`I...I can't love you,' she sobbed, suddenly feeling her heart breaking.
`Canna ter? Well, dunna fret! There's no law says as tha's got to. Ta'e
it for what it is.'
He still lay with his hand on her breast. But she had drawn both her
hands from him.
His words were small comfort. She sobbed aloud.
`Nay, nay!' he said. `Ta'e the thick wi' th' thin. This wor a bit o'
thin for once.'
She wept bitterly, sobbing. `But I want to love you, and I can't. It
only seems horrid.'
He laughed a little, half bitter, half amused.
`It isna horrid,' he said, `even if tha thinks it is. An' tha canna
ma'e it horrid. Dunna fret thysen about lovin' me. Tha'lt niver force thysen
to `t. There's sure to be a bad nut in a basketful. Tha mun ta'e th' rough
wi' th' smooth.'
He took his hand away from her breast, not touching her. And now she
was untouched she took an almost perverse satisfaction in it. She hated
the dialect: the thee and the tha and the thysen.
He could get up if he liked, and stand there, above her, buttoning down
those absurd corduroy breeches, straight in front of her. After all, Michaelis
had had the decency to turn away. This man was so assured in himself he
didn't know what a clown other people found him, a half-bred fellow.
Yet, as he was drawing away, to rise silently and leave her, she clung
to him in terror.
`Don't! Don't go! Don't leave me! Don't be cross with me! Hold me! Hold
me fast!' she whispered in blind frenzy, not even knowing what she said,
and clinging to him with uncanny force. It was from herself she wanted to
be saved, from her own inward anger and resistance. Yet how powerful was
that inward resistance that possessed her!
He took her in his arms again and drew her to him, and suddenly she
became small in his arms, small and nestling. It was gone, the resistance
was gone, and she began to melt in a marvellous peace. And as she melted
small and wonderful in his arms, she became infinitely desirable to him,
all his blood-vessels seemed to scald with intense yet tender desire, for
her, for her softness, for the penetrating beauty of her in his arms, passing
into his blood. And softly, with that marvellous swoon-like caress of his
hand in pure soft desire, softly he stroked the silky slope of her loins,
down, down between her soft warm buttocks, coming nearer and nearer to the
very quick of her. And she felt him like a flame of desire, yet tender,
and she felt herself melting in the flame. She let herself go. She felt
his penis risen against her with silent amazing force and assertion and
she let herself go to him She yielded with a quiver that was like death,
she went all open to him. And oh, if he were not tender to her now, how
cruel, for she was all open to him and helpless!
She quivered again at the potent inexorable entry inside her, so strange
and terrible. It might come with the thrust of a sword in her softly-opened
body, and that would be death. She clung in a sudden anguish of terror.
But it came with a strange slow thrust of peace, the dark thrust of peace
and a ponderous, primordial tenderness, such as made the world in the beginning.
And her terror subsided in her breast, her breast dared to be gone in peace,
she held nothing. She dared to let go everything, all herself and be gone
in the flood.
And it seemed she was like the sea, nothing but dark waves rising and
heaving, heaving with a great swell, so that slowly her whole darkness was
in motion, and she was Ocean rolling its dark, dumb mass. Oh, and far down
inside her the deeps parted and rolled asunder, in long, fair-travelling
billows, and ever, at the quick of her, the depths parted and rolled asunder,
from the centre of soft plunging, as the plunger went deeper and deeper,
touching lower, and she was deeper and deeper and deeper disclosed, the
heavier the billows of her rolled away to some shore, uncovering her, and
closer and closer plunged the palpable unknown, and further and further
rolled the waves of herself away from herself leaving her, till suddenly,
in a soft, shuddering convulsion, the quick of all her plasm was touched,
she knew herself touched, the consummation was upon her, and she was gone.
She was gone, she was not, and she was born: a woman.
Ah, too lovely, too lovely! In the ebbing she realized all the loveliness.
Now all her body clung with tender love to the unknown man, and blindly
to the wilting penis, as it so tenderly, frailly, unknowingly withdrew,
after the fierce thrust of its potency. As it drew out and left her body,
the secret, sensitive thing, she gave an unconscious cry of pure loss, and
she tried to put it back. It had been so perfect! And she loved it so!
And only now she became aware of the small, bud-like reticence and tenderness
of the penis, and a little cry of wonder and poignancy escaped her again,
her woman's heart crying out over the tender frailty of that which had been
the power.
`It was so lovely!' she moaned. `It was so lovely!' But he said nothing,
only softly kissed her, lying still above her. And she moaned with a sort
Of bliss, as a sacrifice, and a newborn thing.
And now in her heart the queer wonder of him was awakened.
A man! The strange potency of manhood upon her! Her hands strayed over
him, still a little afraid. Afraid of that strange, hostile, slightly repulsive
thing that he had been to her, a man. And now she touched him, and it was
the sons of god with the daughters of men. How beautiful he felt, how pure
in tissue! How lovely, how lovely, strong, and yet pure and delicate, such
stillness of the sensitive body! Such utter stillness of potency and delicate
flesh. How beautiful! How beautiful! Her hands came timorously down his
back, to the soft, smallish globes of the buttocks. Beauty! What beauty!
a sudden little flame of new awareness went through her. How was it possible,
this beauty here, where she had previously only been repelled? The unspeakable
beauty to the touch of the warm, living buttocks! The life within life,
the sheer warm, potent loveliness. And the strange weight of the balls between
his legs! What a mystery! What a strange heavy weight of mystery, that could
lie soft and heavy in one's hand! The roots, root of all that is lovely,
the primeval root of all full beauty.
She clung to him, with a hiss of wonder that was almost awe, terror.
He held her close, but he said nothing. He would never say anything. She
crept nearer to him, nearer, only to be near to the sensual wonder of him.
And out of his utter, incomprehensible stillness, she felt again the slow
momentous, surging rise of the phallus again, the other power. And her heart
melted out with a kind of awe.
And this time his being within her was all soft and iridescent, purely
soft and iridescent, such as no consciousness could seize. Her whole self
quivered unconscious and alive, like plasm. She could not know what it was.
She could not remember what it had been. Only that it had been more lovely
than anything ever could be. Only that. And afterwards she was utterly still,
utterly unknowing, she was not aware for how long. And he was still with
her, in an unfathomable silence along with her. And of this, they would
never speak.
When awareness of the outside began to come back, she clung to his breast,
murmuring `My love! My love!' And he held her silently. And she curled on
his breast, perfect.
But his silence was fathomless. His hands held her like flowers, so
still aid strange. `Where are you?' she whispered to him.
`Where are you? Speak to me! Say something to me!'
He kissed her softly, murmuring: `Ay, my lass!'
But she did not know what he meant, she did not know where he was. In
his silence he seemed lost to her.
`You love me, don't you?' she murmured.
`Ay, tha knows!' he said. `But tell me!' she pleaded.
`Ay! Ay! 'asn't ter felt it?' he said dimly, but softly and surely.
And she clung close to him, closer. He was so much more peaceful in love
than she was, and she wanted him to reassure her.
`You do love me!' she whispered, assertive. And his hands stroked her
softly, as if she were a flower, without the quiver of desire, but with
delicate nearness. And still there haunted her a restless necessity to get
a grip on love.
`Say you'll always love me!' she pleaded.
`Ay!' he said, abstractedly. And she felt her questions driving him
away from her.
`Mustn't we get up?' he said at last.
`No!' she said.
But she could feel his consciousness straying, listening to the noises
outside.
`It'll be nearly dark,' he said. And she heard the pressure of circumstances
in his voice. She kissed him, with a woman's grief at yielding up her hour.
He rose, and turned up the lantern, then began to pull on his clothes,
quickly disappearing inside them. Then he stood there, above her, fastening
his breeches and looking down at her with dark, wide-eyes, his face a little
flushed and his hair ruffled, curiously warm and still and beautiful in
the dim light of the lantern, so beautiful, she would never tell him how
beautiful. It made her want to cling fast to him, to hold him, for there
was a warm, half-sleepy remoteness in his beauty that made her want to cry
out and clutch him, to have him. She would never have him. So she lay on
the blanket with curved, soft naked haunches, and he had no idea what she
was thinking, but to him too she was beautiful, the soft, marvellous thing
he could go into, beyond everything.
`I love thee that I call go into thee,' he said.
`Do you like me?' she said, her heart beating.
`It heals it all up, that I can go into thee. I love thee that tha opened
to me. I love thee that I came into thee like that.'
He bent down and kissed her soft flank, rubbed his cheek against it,
then covered it up.
`And will you never leave me?' she said.
`Dunna ask them things,' he said.
`But you do believe I love you?' she said.
`Tha loved me just now, wider than iver tha thout tha would. But who
knows what'll 'appen, once tha starts thinkin' about it!'
`No, don't say those things!---And you don't really think that I wanted
to make use of you, do you?'
`How?'
`To have a child---?'
`Now anybody can 'ave any childt i' th' world,' he said, as he sat down
fastening on his leggings.
`Ah no!' she cried. `You don't mean it?'
`Eh well!' he said, looking at her under his brows. `This wor t' best.'
She lay still. He softly opened the door. The sky was dark blue, with
crystalline, turquoise rim. He went out, to shut up the hens, speaking softly
to his dog. And she lay and wondered at the wonder of life, and of being.
When he came back she was still lying there, glowing like a gipsy. He
sat on the stool by her.
`Tha mun come one naight ter th' cottage, afore tha goos; sholl ter?'
he asked, lifting his eyebrows as he looked at her, his hands dangling between
his knees.
`Sholl ter?' she echoed, teasing.
He smiled. `Ay, sholl ter?' he repeated.
`Ay!' she said, imitating the dialect sound.
`Yi!' he said.
`Yi!' she repeated.
`An' slaip wi' me,' he said. `It needs that. When sholt come?'
`When sholl I?' she said.
`Nay,' he said, `tha canna do't. When sholt come then?'
`'Appen Sunday,' she said.
`'Appen a' Sunday! Ay!'
He laughed at her quickly.
`Nay, tha canna,' he protested.
`Why canna I?' she said. Chapter 13
On Sunday Clifford wanted to go into the wood. It was a lovely morning,
the pear-blossom and plum had suddenly appeared in the world in a wonder
of white here and there.
It was cruel for Clifford, while the world bloomed, to have to be helped
from chair to bath-chair. But he had forgotten, and even seemed to have
a certain conceit of himself in his lameness. Connie still suffered, having
to lift his inert legs into place. Mrs Bolton did it now, or Field.
She waited for him at the top of the drive, at the edge of the screen
of beeches. His chair came puffing along with a sort of valetudinarian slow
importance. As he joined his wife he said:
`Sir Clifford on his roaming steed!'
`Snorting, at least!' she laughed.
He stopped and looked round at the facade of the long, low old brown
house.
`Wragby doesn't wink an eyelid!' he said. `But then why should it! I
ride upon the achievements of the mind of man, and that beats a horse.'
`I suppose it does. And the souls in Plato riding up to heaven in a
two-horse chariot would go in a Ford car now,' she said.
`Or a Rolls-Royce: Plato was an aristocrat!'
`Quite! No more black horse to thrash and maltreat. Plato never thought
we'd go one better than his black steed and his white steed, and have no
steeds at all, only an engine!'
`Only an engine and gas!' said Clifford.
`I hope I can have some repairs done to the old place next year. I think
I shall have about a thousand to spare for that: but work costs so much!'
he added.
`Oh, good!' said Connie. `If only there aren't more strikes!'
`What would be the use of their striking again! Merely ruin the industry,
what's left of it: and surely the owls are beginning to see it!'
`Perhaps they don't mind ruining the industry,' said Connie.
`Ah, don't talk like a woman! The industry fills their bellies, even
if it can't keep their pockets quite so flush,' he said, using turns of
speech that oddly had a twang of Mrs Bolton.
`But didn't you say the other day that you were a conservative-anarchist,'
she asked innocently.
`And did you understand what I meant?' he retorted. `All I meant is,
people can be what they like and feel what they like and do what they like,
strictly privately, so long as they keep the form of life intact,
and the apparatus.'
Connie walked on in silence a few paces. Then she said, obstinately:
`It sounds like saying an egg may go as addled as it likes, so long
as it keeps its shell on whole. But addled eggs do break of themselves.'
`I don't think people are eggs,' he said. `Not even angels' eggs, my
dear little evangelist.'
He was in rather high feather this bright morning. The larks were trilling
away over the park, the distant pit in the hollow was fuming silent steam.
It was almost like old days, before the war. Connie didn't really want to
argue. But then she did not really want to go to the wood with Clifford
either. So she walked beside his chair in a certain obstinacy of spirit.
`No,' he said. `There will be no more strikes, it. The thing is properly
managed.'
`Why not?'
`Because strikes will be made as good as impossible.'
`But will the men let you?' she asked.
`We shan't ask them. We shall do it while they aren't looking: for their
own good, to save the industry.'
`For your own good too,' she said.
`Naturally! For the good of everybody. But for their good even more
than mine. I can live without the pits. They can't. They'll starve if there
are no pits. I've got other provision.'
They looked up the shallow valley at the mine, and beyond it, at the
black-lidded houses of Tevershall crawling like some serpent up the hill.
From the old brown church the bells were ringing: Sunday, Sunday, Sunday!
`But will the men let you dictate terms?' she said. `My dear, they will
have to: if one does it gently.'
`But mightn't there be a mutual understanding?'
`Absolutely: when they realize that the industry comes before the individual.'
`But must you own the industry?' she said.
`I don't. But to the extent I do own it, yes, most decidedly. The ownership
of property has now become a religious question: as it has been since Jesus
and St Francis. The point is not: take all thou hast and give to
the poor, but use all thou hast to encourage the industry and give work
to the poor. It's the only way to feed all the mouths and clothe all the
bodies. Giving away all we have to the poor spells starvation for the poor
just as much as for us. And universal starvation is no high aim. Even general
poverty is no lovely thing. Poverty is ugly.'
`But the disparity?'
`That is fate. Why is the star Jupiter bigger than the star Neptune?
You can't start altering the make-up of things!'
`But when this envy and jealousy and discontent has once started,' she
began.
`Do, your best to stop it. Somebody's got to be boss of the
show.'
`But who is boss of the show?' she asked.
`The men who own and run the industries.'
There was a long silence.
`It seems to me they're a bad boss,' she said.
`Then you suggest what they should do.'
`They don't take their boss-ship seriously enough,' she said.
`They take it far more seriously than you take your ladyship,' he said.
`That's thrust upon me. I don't really want it,' she blurted out. He
stopped the chair and looked at her.
`Who's shirking their responsibility now!' he said. `Who is trying to
get away now from the responsibility of their own boss-ship, as
you call it?'
`But I don't want any boss-ship,' she protested.
`Ah! But that is funk. You've got it: fated to it. And you should live
up to it. Who has given the colliers all they have that's worth having:
all their political liberty, and their education, such as it is, their sanitation,
their health-conditions, their books, their music, everything. Who has given
it them? Have colliers given it to colliers? No! All the Wragbys and Shipleys
in England have given their part, and must go on giving. There's your responsibility.'
Connie listened, and flushed very red.
`I'd like to give something,' she said. `But I'm not allowed. Everything
is to be sold and paid for now; and all the things you mention now, Wragby
and Shipley sells them to the people, at a good prof it. Everything
is sold. You don't give one heart-beat of real sympathy. And besides, who
has taken away from the people their natural life and manhood, and given
them this industrial horror? Who has done that?'
`And what must I do?' he asked, green. `Ask them to come and pillage
me?'
`Why is Tevershall so ugly, so hideous? Why are their lives so hopeless?'
`They built their own Tevershall, that's part of their display of freedom.
They built themselves their pretty Tevershall, and they live their own pretty
lives. I can't live their lives for them. Every beetle must live its own
life.'
`But you make them work for you. They live the life of your coal-mine.'
`Not at all. Every beetle finds its own food. Not one man is forced
to work for me.
`Their lives are industrialized and hopeless, and so are ours,' she
cried.
`I don't think they are. That's just a romantic figure of speech, a
relic of the swooning and die-away romanticism. You don't look at all a
hopeless figure standing there, Connie my dear.'
Which was true. For her dark-blue eyes were flashing, her colour was
hot in her cheeks, she looked full of a rebellious passion far from the
dejection of hopelessness. She noticed, ill the tussocky places of the grass,
cottony young cowslips standing up still bleared in their down. And she
wondered with rage, why it was she felt Clifford was so wrong,
yet she couldn't say it to him, she could not say exactly where
he was wrong.
`No wonder the men hate you,' she said.
`They don't!' he replied. `And don't fall into errors: in your sense
of the word, they are not men. They are animals you don't understand,
and never could. Don't thrust your illusions on other people. The masses
were always the same, and will always be the same. Nero's slaves were extremely
little different from our colliers or the Ford motor-car workmen. I mean
Nero's mine slaves and his field slaves. It is the masses: they are the
unchangeable. An individual may emerge from the masses. But the emergence
doesn't alter the mass. The masses are unalterable. It is one of the most
momentous facts of social science. Panem et circenses! Only today
education is one of the bad substitutes for a circus. What is wrong today
is that we've made a profound hash of the circuses part of the programme,
and poisoned our masses with a little education.'
When Clifford became really roused in his feelings about the common
people, Connie was frightened. There was something devastatingly true in
what he said. But it was a truth that killed.
Seeing her pale and silent, Clifford started the chair again, and no
more was said till he halted again at the wood gate, which she opened.
`And what we need to take up now,' he said, `is whips, not swords. The
masses have been ruled since time began, and till time ends, ruled they
will have to be. It is sheer hypocrisy and farce to say they can rule themselves.'
`But can you rule them?' she asked.
`I? Oh yes! Neither my mind nor my will is crippled, and I don't rule
with my legs. I can do my share of ruling: absolutely, my share; and give
me a son, and he will be able to rule his portion after me.'
`But he wouldn't be your own son, of your own ruling class; or perhaps
not,' she stammered.
`I don't care who his father may be, so long as he is a healthy man
not below normal intelligence. Give me the child of any healthy, normally
intelligent man, and I will make a perfectly competent Chatterley of him.
It is not who begets us, that matters, but where fate places us. Place any
child among the ruling classes, and he will grow up, to his own extent,
a ruler. Put kings' and dukes' children among the masses, and they'll be
little plebeians, mass products. It is the overwhelming pressure of environment.'
`Then the common people aren't a race, and the aristocrats aren't blood,'
she said.
`No, my child! All that is romantic illusion. Aristocracy is a function,
a part of fate. And the masses are a functioning of another part of fate.
The individual hardly matters. It is a question of which function you are
brought up to and adapted to. It is not the individuals that make an aristocracy:
it is the functioning of the aristocratic whole. And it is the functioning
of the whole mass that makes the common man what he is.'
`Then there is no common humanity between us all!'
`Just as you like. We all need to fill our bellies. But when it comes
to expressive or executive functioning, I believe there is a gulf and an
absolute one, between the ruling and the serving classes. The two functions
are opposed. And the function determines the individual.'
Connie looked at him with dazed eyes.
`Won't you come on?' she said.
And he started his chair. He had said his say. Now he lapsed into his
peculiar and rather vacant apathy, that Connie found so trying. In the wood,
anyhow, she was determined not to argue.
In front of them ran the open cleft of the riding, between the hazel
walls and the gay grey trees. The chair puffed slowly on, slowly surging
into the forget-me-nots that rose up in the drive like milk froth, beyond
the hazel shadows. Clifford steered the middle course, where feet passing
had kept a channel through the flowers. But Connie, walking behind, had
watched the wheels jolt over the wood-ruff and the bugle, and squash the
little yellow cups of the creeping-jenny. Now they made a wake through the
forget- me-nots.
All the flowers were there, the first bluebells in blue pools, like
standing water.
`You are quite right about its being beautiful,' said Clifford. `It
is so amazingly. What is quite so lovely as an English spring!'
Connie thought it sounded as if even the spring bloomed by act of Parliament.
An English spring! Why not an Irish one? or Jewish? The chair moved slowly
ahead, past tufts of sturdy bluebells that stood up like wheat and over
grey burdock leaves. When they came to the open place where the trees had
been felled, the light flooded in rather stark. And the bluebells made sheets
of bright blue colour, here and there, sheering off into lilac and purple.
And between, the bracken was lifting its brown curled heads, like legions
of young snakes with a new secret to whisper to Eve. Clifford kept the chair
going till he came to the brow of the hill; Connie followed slowly behind.
The oak-buds were opening soft and brown. Everything came tenderly out of
the old hardness. Even the snaggy craggy oak-trees put out the softest young
leaves, spreading thin, brown little wings like young bat-wings in the light.
Why had men never any newness in them, any freshness to come forth with!
Stale men!
Clifford stopped the chair at the top of the rise and looked down. The
bluebells washed blue like flood- water over the broad riding, and lit up
the downhill with a warm blueness.
`It's a very fine colour in itself,' said Clifford, `but useless for
making a painting.'
`Quite!' said Connie, completely uninterested.
`Shall I venture as far as the spring?' said Clifford.
`Will the chair get up again?' she said.
`We'll try; nothing venture, nothing win!'
And the chair began to advance slowly, joltingly down the beautiful
broad riding washed over with blue encroaching hyacinths. O last of all
ships, through the hyacinthian shallows! O pinnace on the last wild waters,
sailing in the last voyage of our civilization! Whither, O weird wheeled
ship, your slow course steering. Quiet and complacent, Clifford sat at the
wheel of adventure: in his old black hat and tweed jacket, motionless and
cautious. O Captain, my Captain, our splendid trip is done! Not yet though!
Downhill, in the wake, came Constance in her grey dress, watching the chair
jolt downwards.
They passed the narrow track to the hut. Thank heaven it was not wide
enough for the chair: hardly wide enough for one person. The chair reached
the bottom of the slope, and swerved round, to disappear. And Connie heard
a low whistle behind her. She glanced sharply round: the keeper was striding
downhill towards her, his dog keeping behind him.
`Is Sir Clifford going to the cottage?' he asked, looking into her eyes.
`No, only to the well.'
`Ah! Good! Then I can keep out of sight. But I shall see you tonight.
I shall wait for you at the park-gate about ten.'
He looked again direct into her eyes.
`Yes,' she faltered.
They heard the Papp! Papp! of Clifford's horn, tooting for Connie. She
`Coo-eed!' in reply. The keeper's face flickered with a little grimace,
and with his hand he softly brushed her breast upwards, from underneath.
She looked at him, frightened, and started running down the hill, calling
Coo-ee! again to Clifford. The man above watched her, then turned, grinning
faintly, back into his path.
She found Clifford slowly mounting to the spring, which was halfway
up the slope of the dark larch- wood. He was there by the time she caught
him up.
`She did that all right,' he said, referring to the chair.
Connie looked at the great grey leaves of burdock that grew out ghostly
from the edge of the larch- wood. The people call it Robin Hood's Rhubarb.
How silent and gloomy it seemed by the well! Yet the water bubbled so bright,
wonderful! And there were bits of eye-bright and strong blue bugle...And
there, under the bank, the yellow earth was moving. A mole! It emerged,
rowing its pink hands, and waving its blind gimlet of a face, with the tiny
pink nose-tip uplifted.
`It seems to see with the end of its nose,' said Connie.
`Better than with its eyes!' he said. `Will you drink?'
`Will you?'
She took an enamel mug from a twig on a tree, and stooped to fill it
for him. He drank in sips. Then she stooped again, and drank a little herself.
`So icy!' she said gasping.
`Good, isn't it! Did you wish?'
`Did you?'
`Yes, I wished. But I won't tell.'
She was aware of the rapping of a woodpecker, then of the wind, soft
and eerie through the larches. She looked up. White clouds were crossing
the blue.
`Clouds!' she said.
`White lambs only,' he replied.
A shadow crossed the little clearing. The mole had swum out on to the
soft yellow earth.
`Unpleasant little beast, we ought to kill him,' said Clifford.
`Look! he's like a parson in a pulpit,' she said.
She gathered some sprigs of woodruff and brought them to him.
`New-mown hay!' he said. `Doesn't it smell like the romantic ladies
of the last century, who had their heads screwed on the right way after
all!'
She was looking at the white clouds.
`I wonder if it will rain,' she said.
`Rain! Why! Do you want it to?'
They started on the return journey, Clifford jolting cautiously downhill.
They came to the dark bottom of the hollow, turned to the right, and after
a hundred yards swerved up the foot of the long slope, where bluebells stood
in the light.
`Now, old girl!' said Clifford, putting the chair to it.
It was a steep and jolty climb. The chair pugged slowly, in a struggling
unwilling fashion. Still, she nosed her way up unevenly, till she came to
where the hyacinths were all around her, then she balked, struggled, jerked
a little way out of the flowers, then stopped
`We'd better sound the horn and see if the keeper will come,' said Connie.
`He could push her a bit. For that matter, I will push. It helps.'
`We'll let her breathe,' said Clifford. `Do you mind putting a scotch
under the wheel?'
Connie found a stone, and they waited. After a while Clifford started
his motor again, then set the chair in motion. It struggled and faltered
like a sick thing, with curious noises.
`Let me push!' said Connie, coming up behind.
`No! Don't push!' he said angrily. `What's the good of the damned thing,
if it has to be pushed! Put the stone under!'
There was another pause, then another start; but more ineffectual than
before.
`You must let me push,' said she. `Or sound the horn for the
keeper.'
`Wait!'
She waited; and he had another try, doing more harm than good.
`Sound the horn then, if you won't let me push,' she said. `Hell! Be
quiet a moment!'
She was quiet a moment: he made shattering efforts with the little motor.
`You'll only break the thing down altogether, Clifford,' she remonstrated;
`besides wasting your nervous energy.'
`If I could only get out and look at the damned thing!' he said, exasperated.
And he sounded the horn stridently. `Perhaps Mellors can see what's wrong.'
They waited, among the mashed flowers under a sky softly curdling with
cloud. In the silence a wood- pigeon began to coo roo-hoo hoo! roo-hoo hoo!
Clifford shut her up with a blast on the horn.
The keeper appeared directly, striding inquiringly round the corner.
He saluted.
`Do you know anything about motors?' asked Clifford sharply.
`I am afraid I don't. Has she gone wrong?'
`Apparently!' snapped Clifford.
The man crouched solicitously by the wheel, and peered at the little
engine.
`I'm afraid I know nothing at all about these mechanical things, Sir
Clifford,' he said calmly. `If she has enough petrol and oil---'
`Just look carefully and see if you can see anything broken,' snapped
Clifford.
The man laid his gun against a tree, took oil his coat, and threw it
beside it. The brown dog sat guard. Then he sat down on his heels and peered
under the chair, poking with his finger at the greasy little engine, and
resenting the grease-marks on his clean Sunday shirt.
`Doesn't seem anything broken,' he said. And he stood up, pushing back
his hat from his forehead, rubbing his brow and apparently studying.
`Have you looked at the rods underneath?' asked Clifford. `See if they
are all right!'
The man lay flat on his stomach on the floor, his neck pressed back,
wriggling under the engine and poking with his finger. Connie thought what
a pathetic sort of thing a man was, feeble and small-looking, when he was
lying on his belly on the big earth.
`Seems all right as far as I can see,' came his muffled voice.
`I don't suppose you can do anything,' said Clifford.
`Seems as if I can't!' And he scrambled up and sat on his heels, collier
fashion. `There's certainly nothing obviously broken.'
Clifford started his engine, then put her in gear. She would not move.
`Run her a bit hard, like,' suggested the keeper.
Clifford resented the interference: but he made his engine buzz like
a blue-bottle. Then she coughed and snarled and seemed to go better.
`Sounds as if she'd come clear,' said Mellors.
But Clifford had already jerked her into gear. She gave a sick lurch
and ebbed weakly forwards.
`If I give her a push, she'll do it,' said the keeper, going behind.
`Keep off!' snapped Clifford. `She'll do it by herself.'
`But Clifford!' put in Connie from the bank, `you know it's too much
for her. Why are you so obstinate!'
Clifford was pale with anger. He jabbed at his levers. The chair gave
a sort of scurry, reeled on a few more yards, and came to her end amid a
particularly promising patch of bluebells.
`She's done!' said the keeper. `Not power enough.'
`She's been up here before,' said Clifford coldly.
`She won't do it this time,' said the keeper.
Clifford did not reply. He began doing things with his engine, running
her fast and slow as if to get some sort of tune out of her. The wood re-echoed
with weird noises. Then he put her in gear with a jerk, having jerked off
his brake.
`You'll rip her inside out,' murmured the keeper.
The chair charged in a sick lurch sideways at the ditch.
`Clifford!' cried Connie, rushing forward.
But the keeper had got the chair by the rail. Clifford, however, putting
on all his pressure, managed to steer into the riding, and with a strange
noise the chair was fighting the hill. Mellors pushed steadily behind, and
up she went, as if to retrieve herself.
`You see, she's doing it!' said Clifford, victorious, glancing over
his shoulder. There he saw the keeper's face.
`Are you pushing her?'
`She won't do it without.'
`Leave her alone. I asked you not.
`She won't do it.'
`Let her try!' snarled Clifford, with all his emphasis.
The keeper stood back: then turned to fetch his coat and gun. The chair
seemed to strange immediately. She stood inert. Clifford, seated a prisoner,
was white with vexation. He jerked at the levers with his hand, his feet
were no good. He got queer noises out of her. In savage impatience he moved
little handles and got more noises out of her. But she would not budge.
No, she would not budge. He stopped the engine and sat rigid with anger.
Constance sat on the bank arid looked at the wretched and trampled bluebells.
`Nothing quite so lovely as an English spring.' `I can do my share of ruling.'
`What we need to take up now is whips, not swords.' `The ruling classes!'
The keeper strode up with his coat and gun, Flossie cautiously at his
heels. Clifford asked the man to do something or other to the engine. Connie,
who understood nothing at all of the technicalities of motors, and who had
had experience of breakdowns, sat patiently on the bank as if she were a
cipher. The keeper lay on his stomach again. The ruling classes and the
serving classes!
He got to his feet and said patiently:
`Try her again, then.'
He spoke in a quiet voice, almost as if to a child.
Clifford tried her, and Mellors stepped quickly behind and began to
push. She was going, the engine doing about half the work, the man the rest.
Clifford glanced round, yellow with anger.
`Will you get off there!'
The keeper dropped his hold at once, and Clifford added: `How shall
I know what she is doing!'
The man put his gun down and began to pull on his coat. He'd done.
The chair began slowly to run backwards.
`Clifford, your brake!' cried Connie.
She, Mellors, and Clifford moved at once, Connie and the keeper jostling
lightly. The chair stood. There was a moment of dead silence.
`It's obvious I'm at everybody's mercy!' said Clifford. He was yellow
with anger.
No one answered. Mellors was slinging his gun over his shoulder, his
face queer and expressionless, save for an abstracted look of patience.
The dog Flossie, standing on guard almost between her master's legs, moved
uneasily, eyeing the chair with great suspicion and dislike, and very much
perplexed between the three human beings. The tableau vivant remained
set among the squashed bluebells, nobody proffering a word.
`I expect she'll have to be pushed,' said Clifford at last, with an
affectation of sang froid.
No answer. Mellors' abstracted face looked as if he had heard nothing.
Connie glanced anxiously at him. Clifford too glanced round.
`Do you mind pushing her home, Mellors!' he said in a cool superior
tone. `I hope I have said nothing to offend you,' he added, in a tone of
dislike.
`Nothing at all, Sir Clifford! Do you want me to push that chair?'
`If you please.'
The man stepped up to it: but this time it was without effect. The brake
was jammed. They poked and pulled, and the keeper took off his gun and his
coat once more. And now Clifford said never a word. At last the keeper heaved
the back of the chair off the ground and, with an instantaneous push of
his foot, tried to loosen the wheels. He failed, the chair sank. Clifford
was clutching the sides. The man gasped with the weight.
`Don't do it!' cried Connie to him.
`If you'll pull the wheel that way, so!' he said to her, showing her
how.
`No! You mustn't lift it! You'll strain yourself,' she said, flushed
now with anger.
But he looked into her eyes and nodded. And she had to go and take hold
of the wheel, ready. He heaved and she tugged, and the chair reeled.
`For God's sake!' cried Clifford in terror.
But it was all right, and the brake was off. The keeper put a stone
under the wheel, and went to sit on the bank, his heart beat and his face
white with the effort, semi-conscious.
Connie looked at him, and almost cried with anger. There was a pause
and a dead silence. She saw his hands trembling on his thighs.
`Have you hurt yourself?' she asked, going to him.
`No. No!' He turned away almost angrily.
There was dead silence. The back of Clifford's fair head did not move.
Even the dog stood motionless. The sky had clouded over.
At last he sighed, and blew his nose on his red handkerchief.
`That pneumonia took a lot out of me,' he said.
No one answered. Connie calculated the amount of strength it must have
taken to heave up that chair and the bulky Clifford: too much, far too much!
If it hadn't killed him!
He rose, and again picked up his coat, slinging it through the handle
of the chair.
`Are you ready, then, Sir Clifford?'
`When you are!'
He stooped and took out the scotch, then put his weight against the
chair. He was paler than Connie had ever seen him: and more absent. Clifford
was a heavy man: and the hill was steep. Connie stepped to the keeper's
side.
`I'm going to push too!' she said.
And she began to shove with a woman's turbulent energy of anger. The
chair went faster. Clifford looked round.
`Is that necessary?' he said.
`Very! Do you want to kill the man! If you'd let the motor work while
it would---'
But she did not finish. She was already panting. She slackened off a
little, for it was surprisingly hard work.
`Ay! slower!' said the man at her side, with a faint smile of his eyes.
`Are you sure you've not hurt yourself?' she said fiercely.
He shook his head. She looked at his smallish, short, alive hand, browned
by the weather. It was the hand that caressed her. She had never even looked
at it before. It seemed so still, like him, with a curious inward stillness
that made her want to clutch it, as if she could not reach it. All her soul
suddenly swept towards him: he was so silent, and out of reach! And he felt
his limbs revive. Shoving with his left hand, he laid his right on her round
white wrist, softly enfolding her wrist, with a caress. And the flame of
strength went down his back and his loins, reviving him. And she bent suddenly
and kissed his hand. Meanwhile the back of Clifford's head was held sleek
and motionless, just in front of them.
At the top of the hill they rested, and Connie was glad to let go. She
had had fugitive dreams of friendship between these two men: one her husband,
the other the father of her child. Now she saw the screaming absurdity of
her dreams. The two males were as hostile as fire and water. They mutually
exterminated one another. And she realized for the first time what a queer
subtle thing hate is. For the first time, she had consciously and definitely
hated Clifford, with vivid hate: as if he ought to be obliterated from the
face of the earth. And it was strange, how free and full of life it made
her feel, to hate him and to admit it fully to herself.---`Now I've hated
him, I shall never be able to go on living with him,' came the thought into
her mind.
On the level the keeper could push the chair alone. Clifford made a
little conversation with her, to show his complete composure: about Aunt
Eva, who was at Dieppe, and about Sir Malcolm, who had written to ask would
Connie drive with him in his small car, to Venice, or would she and Hilda
go by train.
`I'd much rather go by train,' said Connie. `I don't like long motor
drives, especially when there's dust. But I shall see what Hilda wants.'
`She will want to drive her own car, and take you with her,' he said.
`Probably!---I must help up here. You've no idea how heavy this chair
is.'
She went to the back of the chair, and plodded side by side with the
keeper, shoving up the pink path. She did not care who saw.
`Why not let me wait, and fetch Field? He is strong enough for the job,'
said Clifford.
`It's so near,' she panted.
But both she and Mellors wiped the sweat from their faces when they
came to the top. It was curious, but this bit of work together had brought
them much closer than they had been before.
`Thanks so much, Mellors,' said Clifford, when they were at the house
door. `I must get a different sort of motor, that's all. Won't you go to
the kitchen and have a meal? It must be about time.'
`Thank you, Sir Clifford. I was going to my mother for dinner today,
Sunday.'
`As you like.'
Mellors slung into his coat, looked at Connie, saluted, and was gone.
Connie, furious, went upstairs.
At lunch she could not contain her feeling.
`Why are you so abominably inconsiderate, Clifford?' she said to him.
`Of whom?'
`Of the keeper! If that is what you call ruling classes, I'm sorry for
you.'
`Why?'
`A man who's been ill, and isn't strong! My word, if I were the serving
classes, I'd let you wait for service. I'd let you whistle.'
`I quite believe it.'
`If he'd been sitting in a chair with paralysed legs, and behaved as
you behaved, what would you have done for him?'
`My dear evangelist, this confusing of persons and personalities is
in bad taste.'
`And your nasty, sterile want of common sympathy is in the worst taste
imaginable. Noblesse oblige! You and your ruling class!'
`And to what should it oblige me? To have a lot of unnecessary emotions
about my game-keeper? I refuse. I leave it all to my evangelist.'
`As if he weren't a man as much as you are, my word!'
`My game-keeper to boot, and I pay him two pounds a week and give him
a house.'
`Pay him! What do you think you pay for, with two pounds a week and
a house?'
`His services.'
`Bah! I would tell you to keep your two pounds a week and your house.'
`Probably he would like to: but can't afford the luxury!'
`You, and rule!' she said. `You don't rule, don't flatter yourself.
You have only got more than your share of the money, and make people work
for you for two pounds a week, or threaten them with starvation. Rule! What
do you give forth of rule? Why, you re dried up! You only bully with your
money, like any Jew or any Schieber!'
`You are very elegant in your speech, Lady Chatterley!'
`I assure you, you were very elegant altogether out there in the wood.
I was utterly ashamed of you. Why, my father is ten times the human being
you are: you gentleman!'
He reached and rang the bell for Mrs Bolton. But he was yellow at the
gills.
She went up to her room, furious, saying to herself: `Him and buying
people! Well, he doesn't buy me, and therefore there's no need for me to
stay with him. Dead fish of a gentleman, with his celluloid soul! And how
they take one in, with their manners and their mock wistfulness and gentleness.
They've got about as much feeling as celluloid has.'
She made her plans for the night, and determined to get Clifford off
her mind. She didn't want to hate him. She didn't want to be mixed up very
intimately with him in any sort of feeling. She wanted him not to know anything
at all about herself: and especially, not to know anything about her feeling
for the keeper. This squabble of her attitude to the servants was an old
one. He found her too familiar, she found him stupidly insentient, tough
and indiarubbery where other people were concerned.
She went downstairs calmly, with her old demure bearing, at dinner-time.
He was still yellow at the gills: in for one of his liver bouts, when he
was really very queer.---He was reading a French book.
`Have you ever read Proust?' he asked her.
`I've tried, but he bores me.'
`He's really very extraordinary.'
`Possibly! But he bores me: all that sophistication! He doesn't have
feelings, he only has streams of words about feelings. I'm tired of self-important
mentalities.'
`Would you prefer self-important animalities?'
`Perhaps! But one might possibly get something that wasn't self-important.'
`Well, I like Proust's subtlety and his well-bred anarchy.'
`It makes you very dead, really.'
`There speaks my evangelical little wife.'
They were at it again, at it again! But she couldn't help fighting him.
He seemed to sit there like a skeleton, sending out a skeleton's cold grizzly
will against her. Almost she could feel the skeleton clutching
her and pressing her to its cage of ribs. He too was really up in arms:
and she was a little afraid of him.
She went upstairs as soon as possible, and went to bed quite early.
But at half past nine she got up, and went outside to listen. There was
no sound. She slipped on a dressing-gown and went downstairs. Clifford and
Mrs Bolton were playing cards, gambling. They would probably go on until
midnight.
Connie returned to her room, threw her pyjamas on the tossed bed, put
on a thin tennis-dress and over that a woollen day-dress, put on rubber
tennis-shoes, and then a light coat. And she was ready. If she met anybody,
she was just going out for a few minutes. And in the morning, when she came
in again, she would just have been for a little walk in the dew, as she
fairly often did before breakfast. For the rest, the only danger was that
someone should go into her room during the night. But that was most unlikely:
not one chance in a hundred.
Betts had not locked up. He fastened up the house at ten o'clock, and
unfastened it again at seven in the morning. She slipped out silently and
unseen. There was a half-moon shining, enough to make a little light in
the world, not enough to show her up in her dark-grey coat. She walked quickly
across the park, not really in the thrill of the assignation, but with a
certain anger and rebellion burning in her heart. It was not the right sort
of heart to take to a love-meeting. But à la guerre comme à
la guerre! Chapter 14 When she got near the park-gate, she heard
the click of the latch. He was there, then, in the darkness of the wood,
and had seen her! `You are good and early,' he said out of the dark. `Was
everything all right?' `Perfectly easy.' He shut the gate quietly after
her, and made a spot of light on the dark ground, showing the pallid flowers
still standing there open in the night. They went on apart, in silence.
`Are you sure you didn't hurt yourself this morning with that chair?' she
asked. `No, no!' `When you had that pneumonia, what did it do to you?' `Oh
nothing! it left my heart not so strong and the lungs not so elastic. But
it always does that.' `And you ought not to make violent physical efforts?'
`Not often.' She plodded on in an angry silence. `Did you hate Clifford?'
she said at last. `Hate him, no! I've met too many like him to upset myself
hating him. I know beforehand I don't care for his sort, and I let it go
at that.' `What is his sort?' `Nay, you know better than I do. The sort
of youngish gentleman a bit like a lady, and no balls.' `What balls?' `Balls!
A man's balls!' She pondered this. `But is it a question of that?' she said,
a little annoyed. `You say a man's got no brain, when he's a fool: and no
heart, when he's mean; and no stomach when he's a funker. And when he's
got none of that spunky wild bit of a man in him, you say he's got no balls.
When he's a sort of tame.' She pondered this. `And is Clifford tame?' she
asked. `Tame, and nasty with it: like most such fellows, when you come up
against 'em.' `And do you think you're not tame?' `Maybe not quite!' At
length she saw in the distance a yellow light. She stood still. `There is
a light!' she said. `I always leave a light in the house,' he said. She
went on again at his side, but not touching him, wondering why she was going
with him at all. He unlocked, and they went in, he bolting the door behind
them. As if it were a prison, she thought! The kettle was singing by the
red fire, there were cups on the table. She sat in the wooden arm-chair
by the fire. It was warm after the chill outside. `I'll take off my shoes,
they are wet,' she said. She sat with her stockinged feet on the bright
steel fender. He went to the pantry, bringing food: bread and butter and
pressed tongue. She was warm: she took off her coat. He hung it on the door.
`Shall you have cocoa or tea or coffee to drink?' he asked. `I don't think
I want anything,' she said, looking at the table. `But you eat.' `Nay, I
don't care about it. I'll just feed the dog.' He tramped with a quiet inevitability
over the brick floor, putting food for the dog in a brown bowl. The spaniel
looked up at him anxiously. `Ay, this is thy supper, tha nedna look as if
tha wouldna get it!' he said. He set the bowl on the stairfoot mat, and
sat himself on a chair by the wall, to take off his leggings and boots.
The dog instead of eating, came to him again, and sat looking up at him,
troubled. He slowly unbuckled his leggings. The dog edged a little nearer.
`What's amiss wi' thee then? Art upset because there's somebody else here?
Tha'rt a female, tha art! Go an' eat thy supper.' He put his hand on her
head, and the bitch leaned her head sideways against him. He slowly, softly
pulled the long silky ear. `There!' he said. `There! Go an' eat thy supper!
Go!' He tilted his chair towards the pot on the mat, and the dog meekly
went, and fell to eating. `Do you like dogs?' Connie asked him. `No, not
really. They're too tame and clinging.' He had taken off his leggings and
was unlacing his heavy boots. Connie had turned from the fire. How bare
the little room was! Yet over his head on the wall hung a hideous enlarged
photograph of a young married couple, apparently him and a bold-faced young
woman, no doubt his wife. `Is that you?' Connie asked him. He twisted and
looked at the enlargement above his head. `Ay! Taken just afore we was married,
when I was twenty-one.' He looked at it impassively. `Do you like it?' Connie
asked him. `Like it? No! I never liked the thing. But she fixed it all up
to have it done, like.' He returned to pulling off his boots. `If you don't
like it, why do you keep it hanging there? Perhaps your wife would like
to have it,' she said. He looked up at her with a sudden grin. `She carted
off iverything as was worth taking from th' 'ouse,' he said. `But she left
that!' `Then why do you keep it? for sentimental reasons?' `Nay,
I niver look at it. I hardly knowed it wor theer. It's bin theer sin' we
come to this place.' `Why don't you burn it?' she said. He twisted round
again and looked at the enlarged photograph. It was framed in a brown-and-gilt
frame, hideous. It showed a clean-shaven, alert, very young-looking man
in a rather high collar, and a somewhat plump, bold young woman with hair
fluffed out and crimped, and wearing a dark satin blouse. `It wouldn't be
a bad idea, would it?' he said. He had pulled off his boots, and put on
a pair of slippers. He stood up on the chair, and lifted down the photograph.
It left a big pale place on the greenish wall-paper. `No use dusting it
now,' he said, setting the thing against the wall. He went to the scullery,
and returned with hammer and pincers. Sitting where he had sat before, he
started to tear off the back-paper from the big frame, and to pull out the
sprigs that held the backboard in position, working with the immediate quiet
absorption that was characteristic of him. He soon had the nails out: then
he pulled out the backboards, then the enlargement itself, in its solid
white mount. He looked at the photograph with amusement. `Shows me for what
I was, a young curate, and her for what she was, a bully,' he said. `The
prig and the bully!' `Let me look!' said Connie. He did look indeed very
clean-shaven and very clean altogether, one of the clean young men of twenty
years ago. But even in the photograph his eyes were alert and dauntless.
And the woman was not altogether a bully, though her jowl was heavy. There
was a touch of appeal in her. `One never should keep these things,' said
Connie. `That one shouldn't! One should never have them made!' He broke
the cardboard photograph and mount over his knee, and when it was small
enough, put it on the fire. `It'll spoil the fire though,' he said. The
glass and the backboard he carefully took upstairs. The frame he knocked
asunder with a few blows of the hammer, making the stucco fly. Then he took
the pieces into the scullery. `We'll burn that tomorrow,' he said. `There's
too much plaster-moulding on it.' Having cleared away, he sat down. `Did
you love your wife?' she asked him. `Love?' he said. `Did you love Sir Clifford?'
But she was not going to be put off. `But you cared for her?' she insisted.
`Cared?' He grinned. `Perhaps you care for her now,' she said. `Me!' His
eyes widened. `Ah no, I can't think of her,' he said quietly. `Why?' But
he shook his head. `Then why don't you get a divorce? She'll come back to
you one day,' said Connie. He looked up at her sharply. `She wouldn't come
within a mile of me. She hates me a lot worse than I hate her.' `You'll
see she'll come back to you.' `That she never will. That's done! It would
make me sick to see her.' `You will see her. And you're not even legally
separated, are you?' `No.' `Ah well, then she'll come back, and you'll have
to take her in.' He gazed at Connie fixedly. Then he gave the queer toss
of his head. `You might be right. I was a fool ever to come back here. But
I felt stranded and had to go somewhere. A man's a poor bit of a wastrel
blown about. But you're right. I'll get a divorce and get clear. I hate
those things like death, officials and courts and judges. But I've got to
get through with it. I'll get a divorce.' And she saw his jaw set. Inwardly
she exulted. `I think I will have a cup of tea now,' she said. He rose to
make it. But his face was set. As they sat at table she asked him: `Why
did you marry her? She was commoner than yourself. Mrs Bolton told me about
her. She could never understand why you married her.' He looked at her fixedly.
`I'll tell you,' he said. `The first girl I had, I began with when I was
sixteen. She was a school-master's daughter over at Ollerton, pretty, beautiful
really. I was supposed to be a clever sort of young fellow from Sheffield
Grammar School, with a bit of French and German, very much up aloft. She
was the romantic sort that hated commonness. She egged me on to poetry and
reading: in a way, she made a man of me. I read and I thought like a house
on fire, for her. And I was a clerk in Butterley offices, thin, white-faced
fellow fuming with all the things I read. And about everything
I talked to her: but everything. We talked ourselves into Persepolis and
Timbuctoo. We were the most literary-cultured couple in ten counties. I
held forth with rapture to her, positively with rapture. I simply went up
in smoke. And she adored me. The serpent in the grass was sex. She somehow
didn't have any; at least, not where it's supposed to be. I got thinner
and crazier. Then I said we'd got to be lovers. I talked her into it, as
usual. So she let me. I was excited, and she never wanted it. She just didn't
want it. She adored me, she loved me to talk to her and kiss her: in that
way she had a passion for me. But the other, she just didn't want. And there
are lots of women like her. And it was just the other that I did want. So
there we split. I was cruel, and left her. Then I took on with another girl,
a teacher, who had made a scandal by carrying on with a married man and
driving him nearly out of his mind. She was a soft, white-skinned, soft
sort of a woman, older than me, and played the fiddle. And she was a demon.
She loved everything about love, except the sex. Clinging, caressing, creeping
into you in every way: but if you forced her to the sex itself, she just
ground her teeth and sent out hate. I forced her to it, and she could simply
numb me with hate because of it. So I was balked again. I loathed all that.
I wanted a woman who wanted me, and wanted it. `Then came Bertha
Coutts. They'd lived next door to us when I was a little lad, so I knew
'em all right. And they were common. Well, Bertha went away to some place
or other in Birmingham; she said, as a lady's companion; everybody else
said, as a waitress or something in a hotel. Anyhow just when I was more
than fed up with that other girl, when I was twenty-one, back comes Bertha,
with airs and graces and smart clothes and a sort of bloom on her: a sort
of sensual bloom that you'd see sometimes on a woman, or on a trolly. Well,
I was in a state of murder. I chucked up my job at Butterley because I thought
I was a weed, clerking there: and I got on as overhead blacksmith at Tevershall:
shoeing horses mostly. It had been my dad's job, and I'd always been with
him. It was a job I liked: handling horses: and it came natural to me. So
I stopped talking "fine", as they call it, talking proper English,
and went back to talking broad. I still read books, at home: but I blacksmithed
and had a pony-trap of my own, and was My Lord Duckfoot. My dad left me
three hundred pounds when he died. So I took on with Bertha, and I was glad
she was common. I wanted her to be common. I wanted to be common myself.
Well, I married her, and she wasn't bad. Those other "pure" women
had nearly taken all the balls out of me, but she was all right that way.
She wanted me, and made no bones about it. And I was as pleased as punch.
That was what I wanted: a woman who wanted me to fuck her. So I
fucked her like a good un. And I think she despised me a bit, for being
so pleased about it, and bringin' her her breakfast in bed sometimes. She
sort of let things go, didn't get me a proper dinner when I came home from
work, and if I said anything, flew out at me. And I flew back, hammer and
tongs. She flung a cup at me and I took her by the scruff of the neck and
squeezed the life out of her. That sort of thing! But she treated me with
insolence. And she got so's she'd never have me when I wanted her: never.
Always put me off, brutal as you like. And then when she'd put me right
off, and I didn't want her, she'd come all lovey-dovey, and get me. And
I always went. But when I had her, she'd never come off when I did. Never!
She'd just wait. If I kept back for half an hour, she'd keep back longer.
And when I'd come and really finished, then she'd start on her own account,
and I had to stop inside her till she brought herself off, wriggling and
shouting, she'd clutch clutch with herself down there, an' then she'd come
off, fair in ecstasy. And then she'd say: That was lovely! Gradually I got
sick of it: and she got worse. She sort of got harder and harder to bring
off, and she'd sort of tear at me down there, as if it was a beak tearing
at me. By God, you think a woman's soft down there, like a fig. But I tell
you the old rampers have beaks between their legs, and they tear at you
with it till you're sick. Self! Self! Self! all self! tearing and shouting!
They talk about men's selfishness, but I doubt if it can ever touch a woman's
blind beakishness, once she's gone that way. Like an old trull! And she
couldn't help it. I told her about it, I told her how I hated it. And she'd
even try. She'd try to lie still and let me work the business.
She'd try. But it was no good. She got no feeling off it, from my working.
She had to work the thing herself, grind her own coffee. And it came back
on her like a raving necessity, she had to let herself go, and tear, tear,
tear, as if she had no sensation in her except in the top of her beak, the
very outside top tip, that rubbed and tore. That's how old whores used to
be, so men used to say. It was a low kind of self-will in her, a raving
sort of self-will: like in a woman who drinks. Well in the end I couldn't
stand it. We slept apart. She herself had started it, in her bouts when
she wanted to be clear of me, when she said I bossed her. She had started
having a room for herself. But the time came when I wouldn't have her coming
to my room. I wouldn't. `I hated it. And she hated me. My God, how she hated
me before that child was born! I often think she conceived it out of hate.
Anyhow, after the child was born I left her alone. And then came the war,
and I joined up. And I didn't come back till I knew she was with that fellow
at Stacks Gate. He broke off, pale in the face. `And what is the man at
Stacks Gate like?' asked Connie. `A big baby sort of fellow, very low-mouthed.
She bullies him, and they both drink.' `My word, if she came back!' `My
God, yes! I should just go, disappear again.' There was a silence. The pasteboard
in the fire had turned to grey ash. `So when you did get a woman who wanted
you,' said Connie, `you got a bit too much of a good thing.' `Ay! Seems
so! Yet even then I'd rather have her than the never-never ones: the white
love of my youth, and that other poison-smelling lily, and the rest.' `What
about the rest?' said Connie. `The rest? There is no rest. Only to my experience
the mass of women are like this: most of them want a man, but don't want
the sex, but they put up with it, as part of the bargain. The more old-fashioned
sort just lie there like nothing and let you go ahead. They don't mind afterwards:
then they like you. But the actual thing itself is nothing to them, a bit
distasteful. Add most men like it that way. I hate it. But the sly sort
of women who are like that pretend they're not. They pretend they're passionate
and have thrills. But it's all cockaloopy. They make it up. Then there's
the ones that love everything, every kind of feeling and cuddling and going
off, every kind except the natural one. They always make you go off when
you're not in the only place you should be, when you go off.---Then
there's the hard sort, that are the devil to bring off at all, and bring
themselves off, like my wife. They want to be the active party.---Then there's
the sort that's just dead inside: but dead: and they know it. Then there's
the sort that puts you out before you really "come", and go on
writhing their loins till they bring themselves off against your thighs.
But they're mostly the Lesbian sort. It's astonishing how Lesbian women
are, consciously or unconsciously. Seems to me they're nearly all Lesbian.'
`And do you mind?' asked Connie. `I could kill them. When I'm with a woman
who's really Lesbian, I fairly howl in my soul, wanting to kill her.' `And
what do you do?' `Just go away as fast as I can.' `But do you think Lesbian
women any worse than homosexual men?' `I do! Because I've suffered
more from them. In the abstract, I've no idea. When I get with a Lesbian
woman, whether she knows she's one or not, I see red. No, no! But I wanted
to have nothing to do with any woman any more. I wanted to keep to myself:
keep my privacy and my decency.' He looked pale, and his brows were sombre.
`And were you sorry when I came along?' she asked. `I was sorry and I was
glad.' `And what are you now?' `I'm sorry, from the outside: all the complications
and the ugliness and recrimination that's bound to come, sooner or later.
That's when my blood sinks, and I'm low. But when my blood comes up, I'm
glad. I'm even triumphant. I was really getting bitter. I thought there
was no real sex left: never a woman who'd really "come" naturally
with a man: except black women, and somehow, well, we're white men: and
they're a bit like mud.' `And now, are you glad of me?' she asked. `Yes!
When I can forget the rest. When I can't forget the rest, I want to get
under the table and die.' `Why under the table?' `Why?' he laughed. `Hide,
I suppose. Baby!' `You do seem to have had awful experiences of women,'
she said. `You see, I couldn't fool myself. That's where most men manage.
They take an attitude, and accept a lie. I could never fool myself. I knew
what I wanted with a woman, and I could never say I'd got it when I hadn't.'
`But have you got it now?' `Looks as if I might have.' `Then why are you
so pale and gloomy?' `Bellyful of remembering: and perhaps afraid of myself.'
She sat in silence. It was growing late. `And do you think it's important,
a man and a woman?' she asked him. `For me it is. For me it's the core of
my life: if I have a right relation with a woman.' `And if you didn't get
it?' `Then I'd have to do without.' Again she pondered, before she asked:
`And do you think you've always been right with women?' `God, no! I let
my wife get to what she was: my fault a good deal. I spoilt her. And I'm
very mistrustful. You'll have to expect it. It takes a lot to make me trust
anybody, inwardly. So perhaps I'm a fraud too. I mistrust. And tenderness
is not to be mistaken.' She looked at him. `You don't mistrust with your
body, when your blood comes up,' she said. `You don't mistrust then, do
you?' `No, alas! That's how I've got into all the trouble. And that's why
my mind mistrusts so thoroughly.' `Let your mind mistrust. What does it
matter!' The dog sighed with discomfort on the mat. The ash-clogged fire
sank. `We are a couple of battered warriors,' said Connie. `Are
you battered too?' he laughed. `And here we are returning to the fray!'
`Yes! I feel really frightened.' `Ay!' He got up, and put her shoes to dry,
and wiped his own and set them near the fire. In the morning he would grease
them. He poked the ash of pasteboard as much as possible out of the fire.
`Even burnt, it's filthy,' he said. Then he brought sticks and put them
on the hob for the morning. Then he went out awhile with the dog. When he
came back, Connie said: `I want to go out too, for a minute.' She went alone
into the darkness. There were stars overhead. She could smell flowers on
the night air. And she could feel her wet shoes getting wetter again. But
she felt like going away, right away from him and everybody. It was chilly.
She shuddered, and returned to the house. He was sitting in front of the
low fire. `Ugh! Cold!' she shuddered. He put the sticks on the fire, and
fetched more, till they had a good crackling chimneyful of blaze. The rippling
running yellow flame made them both happy, warmed their faces and their
souls. `Never mind!' she said, taking his hand as he sat silent and remote.
`One does one's best.' `Ay!' He sighed, with a twist of a smile. She slipped
over to him, and into his arms, as he sat there before the fire. `Forget
then!' she whispered. `Forget!' He held her close, in the running warmth
of the fire. The flame itself was like a forgetting. And her soft, warm,
ripe weight! Slowly his blood turned, and began to ebb back into strength
and reckless vigour again. `And perhaps the women really wanted
to be there and love you properly, only perhaps they couldn't. Perhaps it
wasn't all their fault,' she said. `I know it. Do you think I don't know
what a broken-backed snake that's been trodden on I was myself!' She clung
to him suddenly. She had not wanted to start all this again. Yet some perversity
had made her. `But you're not now,' she said. `You're not that now: a broken-backed
snake that's been trodden on.' `I don't know what I am. There's black days
ahead.' `No!' she protested, clinging to him. `Why? Why?' `There's black
days coming for us all and for everybody,' he repeated with a prophetic
gloom. `No! You're not to say it!' He was silent. But she could feel the
black void of despair inside him. That was the death of all desire, the
death of all love: this despair that was like the dark cave inside the men,
in which their spirit was lost. `And you talk so coldly about sex,' she
said. `You talk as if you had only wanted your own pleasure and satisfaction.'
She was protesting nervously against him. `Nay!' he said. `I wanted to have
my pleasure and satisfaction of a woman, and I never got it: because I could
never get my pleasure and satisfaction of her unless she got hers
of me at the same time. And it never happened. It takes two.' `But you never
believed in your women. You don't even believe really in me,' she said.
`I don't know what believing in a woman means.' `That's it, you see!' She
still was curled on his lap. But his spirit was grey and absent, he was
not there for her. And everything she said drove him further. `But what
do you believe in?' she insisted. `I don't know.' `Nothing, like
all the men I've ever known,' she said. They were both silent. Then he roused
himself and said: `Yes, I do believe in something. I believe in being warmhearted.
I believe especially in being warm-hearted in love, in fucking with a warm
heart. I believe if men could fuck with warm hearts, and the women take
it warm-heartedly, everything would come all right. It's all this cold-hearted
fucking that is death and idiocy.' `But you don't fuck me cold-heartedly,'
she protested. `I don't want to fuck you at all. My heart's as cold as cold
potatoes just now.' `Oh!' she said, kissing him mockingly. `Let's have them
sautées.' He laughed, and sat erect. `It's a fact!' he said.
`Anything for a bit of warm-heartedness. But the women don't like it. Even
you don't really like it. You like good, sharp, piercing cold-hearted fucking,
and then pretending it's all sugar. Where's your tenderness for me? You're
as suspicious of me as a cat is of a dog. I tell you it takes two even to
be tender and warm-hearted. You love fucking all right: but you want it
to be called something grand and mysterious, just to flatter your own self-importance.
Your own self-importance is more to you, fifty times more, than any man,
or being together with a man.' `But that's what I'd say of you. Your own
self-importance is everything to you.' `Ay! Very well then!' he said, moving
as if he wanted to rise. `Let's keep apart then. I'd rather die than do
any more cold-hearted fucking.' She slid away from him, and he stood up.
`And do you think I want it?' she said. `I hope you don't,' he replied.
`But anyhow, you go to bed an' I'll sleep down here.' She looked at him.
He was pale, his brows were sullen, he was as distant in recoil as the cold
pole. Men were all alike. `I can't go home till morning,' she said. `No!
Go to bed. It's a quarter to one.' `I certainly won't,' she said. He went
across and picked up his boots. `Then I'll go out!' he said. He began to
put on his boots. She stared at him. `Wait!' she faltered. `Wait! What's
come between us?' He was bent over, lacing his boot, and did not reply.
The moments passed. A dimness came over her, like a swoon. All her consciousness
died, and she stood there wide-eyed, looking at him from the unknown, knowing
nothing any more. He looked up, because of the silence, and saw her wide-eyed
and lost. And as if a wind tossed him he got up and hobbled over to her,
one shoe off and one shoe on, and took her in his arms, pressing her against
his body, which somehow felt hurt right through. And there he held her,
and there she remained. Till his hands reached blindly down and felt for
her, and felt under the clothing to where she was smooth and warm. `Ma lass!'
he murmured. `Ma little lass! Dunna let's light! Dunna let's niver light!
I love thee an' th' touch on thee. Dunna argue wi' me! Dunna! Dunna! Dunna!
Let's be together.' She lifted her face and looked at him. `Don't be upset,'
she said steadily. `It's no good being upset. Do you really want to be together
with me?' She looked with wide, steady eyes into his face. He stopped, and
went suddenly still, turning his face aside. All his body went perfectly
still, but did not withdraw. Then he lifted his head and looked into her
eyes, with his odd, faintly mocking grin, saying: `Ay-ay! Let's be together
on oath.' `But really?' she said, her eyes filling with tears. `Ay really!
Heart an' belly an' cock.' He still smiled faintly down at her, with the
flicker of irony in his eyes, and a touch of bitterness. She was silently
weeping, and he lay with her and went into her there on the hearthrug, and
so they gained a measure of equanimity. And then they went quickly to bed,
for it was growing chill, and they had tired each other out. And she nestled
up to him, feeling small and enfolded, and they both went to sleep at once,
fast in one sleep. And so they lay and never moved, till the sun rose over
the wood and day was beginning. Then he woke up and looked at the light.
The curtains were drawn. He listened to the loud wild calling of blackbirds
and thrushes in the wood. It would be a brilliant morning, about half past
five, his hour for rising. He had slept so fast! It was such a new day!
The woman was still curled asleep and tender. His hand moved on her, and
she opened her blue wondering eyes, smiling unconsciously into his face.
`Are you awake?' she said to him. He was looking into her eyes. He smiled,
and kissed her. And suddenly she roused and sat up. `Fancy that I am here!'
she said. She looked round the whitewashed little bedroom with its sloping
ceiling and gable window where the white curtains were closed. The room
was bare save for a little yellow-painted chest of drawers, and a chair:
and the smallish white bed in which she lay with him. `Fancy that we are
here!' she said, looking down at him. He was lying watching her, stroking
her breasts with his fingers, under the thin nightdress. When he was warm
and smoothed out, he looked young and handsome. His eyes could look so warm.
And she was fresh and young like a flower. `I want to take this off!' she
said, gathering the thin batiste nightdress and pulling it over her head.
She sat there with bare shoulders and longish breasts faintly golden. He
loved to make her breasts swing softly, like bells. `You must take off your
pyjamas too,' she said. `Eh, nay!' `Yes! Yes!' she commanded. And he took
off his old cotton pyjama-jacket, and pushed down the trousers. Save for
his hands and wrists and face and neck he was white as milk, with fine slender
muscular flesh. To Connie he was suddenly piercingly beautiful again, as
when she had seen him that afternoon washing himself. Gold of sunshine touched
the closed white curtain. She felt it wanted to come in. `Oh, do let's draw
the curtains! The birds are singing so! Do let the sun in,' she said. He
slipped out of bed with his back to her, naked and white and thin, and went
to the window, stooping a little, drawing the curtains and looking out for
a moment. The back was white and fine, the small buttocks beautiful with
an exquisite, delicate manliness, the back of the neck ruddy and delicate
and yet strong. There was an inward, not an outward strength in the delicate
fine body. `But you are beautiful!' she said. `So pure and fine! Come!'
She held her arms out. He was ashamed to turn to her, because of his aroused
nakedness. He caught his shirt off the floor, and held it to him, coming
to her. `No!' she said still holding out her beautiful slim arms from her
dropping breasts. `Let me see you!' He dropped the shirt and stood still
looking towards her. The sun through the low window sent in a beam that
lit up his thighs and slim belly and the erect phallos rising darkish and
hot-looking from the little cloud of vivid gold-red hair. She was startled
and afraid. `How strange!' she said slowly. `How strange he stands there!
So big! and so dark and cock-sure! Is he like that?' The man looked down
the front of his slender white body, and laughed. Between the slim breasts
the hair was dark, almost black. But at the root of the belly, where the
phallos rose thick and arching, it was gold- red, vivid in a little cloud.
`So proud!' she murmured, uneasy. `And so lordly! Now I know why men are
so overbearing! But he's lovely, really. Like another being! A
bit terrifying! But lovely really! And he comes to me!---' She
caught her lower lip between her teeth, in fear and excitement. The man
looked down in silence at the tense phallos, that did not change.---`Ay!'
he said at last, in a little voice. `Ay ma lad! tha're theer right enough.
Yi, tha mun rear thy head! Theer on thy own, eh? an' ta'es no count O' nob'dy!
Tha ma'es nowt O' me, John Thomas. Art boss? of me? Eh well, tha're more
cocky than me, an' tha says less. John Thomas! Dost want her? Dost
want my lady Jane? Tha's dipped me in again, tha hast. Ay, an' tha comes
up smilin'.---Ax 'er then! Ax lady Jane! Say: Lift up your heads, O ye gates,
that the king of glory may come in. Ay, th' cheek on thee! Cunt, that's
what tha're after. Tell lady Jane tha wants cunt. John Thomas, an' th' cunt
O' lady Jane!---' `Oh, don't tease him,' said Connie, crawling on her knees
on the bed towards him and putting her arms round his white slender loins,
and drawing him to her so that her hanging, swinging breasts touched the
tip of the stirring, erect phallos, and caught the drop of moisture. She
held the man fast. `Lie down!' he said. `Lie down! Let me come!' He was
in a hurry now. And afterwards, when they had been quite still, the woman
had to uncover the man again, to look at the mystery of the phallos. `And
now he's tiny, and soft like a little bud of life!' she said, taking the
soft small penis in her hand. `Isn't he somehow lovely! so on his own, so
strange! And so innocent! And he comes so far into me! You must never
insult him, you know. He's mine too. He's not only yours. He's mine! And
so lovely and innocent!' And she held the penis soft in her hand. He laughed.
`Blest be the tie that binds our hearts in kindred love,' he said. `Of course!'
she said. `Even when he's soft and little I feel my heart simply tied to
him. And how lovely your hair is here! quite, quite different!' `That's
John Thomas's hair, not mine!' he said. `John Thomas! John Thomas!' and
she quickly kissed the soft penis, that was beginning to stir again. `Ay!'
said the man, stretching his body almost painfully. `He's got his root in
my soul, has that gentleman! An' sometimes I don' know what ter do wi' him.
Ay, he's got a will of his own, an' it's hard to suit him. Yet I wouldn't
have him killed.' `No wonder men have always been afraid of him!' she said.
`He's rather terrible.' The quiver was going through the man's body, as
the stream of consciousness again changed its direction, turning downwards.
And he was helpless, as the penis in slow soft undulations filled and surged
and rose up, and grew hard, standing there hard and overweening, in its
curious towering fashion. The woman too trembled a little as she watched.
`There! Take him then! He's thine,' said the man. And she quivered, and
her own mind melted out. Sharp soft waves of unspeakable pleasure washed
over her as he entered her, and started the curious molten thrilling that
spread and spread till she was carried away with the last, blind flush of
extremity. He heard the distant hooters of Stacks Gate for seven o'clock.
It was Monday morning. He shivered a little, and with his face between her
breasts pressed her soft breasts up over his ears, to deafen him. She had
not even heard the hooters. She lay perfectly still, her soul washed transparent.
`You must get up, mustn't you?' he muttered. `What time?' came her colourless
voice. `Seven-o'clock blowers a bit sin'.' `I suppose I must.' She was resenting
as she always did, the compulsion from outside. He sat up and looked blankly
out of the window. `You do love me, don't you?' she asked calmly. He looked
down at her. `Tha knows what tha knows. What dost ax for!' he said, a little
fretfully. `I want you to keep me, not to let me go,' she said. His eyes
seemed full of a warm, soft darkness that could not think. `When? Now?'
`Now in your heart. Then I want to come and live with you, always, soon.'
He sat naked on the bed, with his head dropped, unable to think. `Don't
you want it?' she asked. `Ay!' he said. Then with the same eyes darkened
with another flame of consciousness, almost like sleep, he looked at her.
`Dunna ax me nowt now,' he said. `Let me be. I like thee. I luv thee when
tha lies theer. A woman's a lovely thing when 'er's deep ter fuck, and cunt's
good. Ah luv thee, thy legs, an' th' shape on thee, an' th' womanness on
thee. Ah luv th' womanness on thee. Ah luv thee wi' my bas an' wi' my heart.
But dunna ax me nowt. Dunna ma'e me say nowt. Let me stop as I am while
I can. Tha can ax me iverything after. Now let me be, let me be!' And softly,
he laid his hand over her mound of Venus, on the soft brown maiden-hair,
and himself-sat still and naked on the bed, his face motionless in physical
abstraction, almost like the face of Buddha. Motionless, and in the invisible
flame of another consciousness, he sat with his hand on her, and waited
for the turn. After a while, he reached for his shirt and put it on, dressed
himself swiftly in silence, looked at her once as she still lay naked and
faintly golden like a Gloire de Dijon rose on the bed, and was gone. She
heard him downstairs opening the door. And still she lay musing, musing.
It was very hard to go: to go out of his arms. He called from the foot of
the stairs: `Half past seven!' She sighed, and got out of bed. The bare
little room! Nothing in it at all but the small chest of drawers and the
smallish bed. But the board floor was scrubbed clean. And in the corner
by the window gable was a shelf with some books, and some from a circulating
library. She looked. There were books about Bolshevist Russia, books of
travel, a volume about the atom and the electron, another about the composition
of the earth's core, and the causes of earthquakes: then a few novels: then
three books on India. So! He was a reader after all. The sun fell on her
naked limbs through the gable window. Outside she saw the dog Flossie roaming
round. The hazel-brake was misted with green, and dark-green dogs-mercury
under. It was a clear clean morning with birds flying and triumphantly singing.
If only she could stay! If only there weren't the other ghastly world of
smoke and iron! If only he would make her a world. She came downstairs,
down the steep, narrow wooden stairs. Still she would be content with this
little house, if only it were in a world of its own. He was washed and fresh,
and the fire was burning. `Will you eat anything?' he said. `No! Only lend
me a comb.' She followed him into the scullery, and combed her hair before
the handbreadth of mirror by the back door. Then she was ready to go. She
stood in the little front garden, looking at the dewy flowers, the grey
bed of pinks in bud already. `I would like to have all the rest of the world
disappear,' she said, `and live with you here.' `It won't disappear,' he
said. They went almost in silence through the lovely dewy wood. But they
were together in a world of their own. It was bitter to her to go on to
Wragby. `I want soon to come and live with you altogether,' she said as
she left him. He smiled, unanswering. She got home quietly and unremarked,
and went up to her room. Chapter 15
There was a letter from Hilda on the breakfast-tray. `Father is going
to London this week, and I shall call for you on Thursday week, June 17th.
You must be ready so that we can go at once. I don't want to waste time
at Wragby, it's an awful place. I shall probably stay the night at Retford
with the Colemans, so I should be with you for lunch, Thursday. Then we
could start at teatime, and sleep perhaps in Grantham. It is no use our
spending an evening with Clifford. If he hates your going, it would be no
pleasure to him.'
So! She was being pushed round on the chess-board again.
Clifford hated her going, but it was only because he didn't feel safe
in her absence. Her presence, for some reason, made him feel safe, and free
to do the things he was occupied with. He was a great deal at the pits,
and wrestling in spirit with the almost hopeless problems of getting out
his coal in the most economical fashion and then selling it when he'd got
it out. He knew he ought to find some way of using it, or converting
it, so that he needn't sell it, or needn't have the chagrin of failing to
sell it. But if he made electric power, could he sell that or use it? And
to convert into oil was as yet too costly and too elaborate. To keep industry
alive there must be more industry, like a madness.
It was a madness, and it required a madman to succeed in it. Well, he
was a little mad. Connie thought so. His very intensity and acumen in the
affairs of the pits seemed like a manifestation of madness to her, his very
inspirations were the inspirations of insanity.
He talked to her of all his serious schemes, and she listened in a kind
of wonder, and let him talk. Then the flow ceased, and he turned on the
loudspeaker, and became a blank, while apparently his schemes coiled on
inside him like a kind of dream.
And every night now he played pontoon, that game of the Tommies, with
Mrs Bolton, gambling with sixpences. And again, in the gambling he was gone
in a kind of unconsciousness, or blank intoxication, or intoxication of
blankness, whatever it was. Connie could not bear to see him. But when she
had gone to bed, he and Mrs Bolton would gamble on till two and three in
the morning, safely, and with strange lust. Mrs Bolton was caught in the
lust as much as Clifford: the more so, as she nearly always lost.
She told Connie one day: `I lost twenty-three shillings to Sir Clifford
last night.'
`And did he take the money from you?' asked Connie aghast.
`Why of course, my Lady! Debt of honour!'
Connie expostulated roundly, and was angry with both of them. The upshot
was, Sir Clifford raised Mrs Bolton's wages a hundred a year, and she could
gamble on that. Meanwhile, it seemed to Connie, Clifford was really going
deader.
She told him at length she was leaving on the seventeenth.
`Seventeenth!' he said. `And when will you be back?'
`By the twentieth of July at the latest.'
`Yes! the twentieth of July.'
Strangely and blankly he looked at her, with the vagueness of a child,
but with the queer blank cunning of an old man.
`You won't let me down, now, will you?' he said.
`How?'
`While you're away, I mean, you're sure to come back?'
`I'm as sure as I can be of anything, that I shall come back.'
`Yes! Well! Twentieth of July!'
He looked at her so strangely.
Yet he really wanted her to go. That was so curious. He wanted her to
go, positively, to have her little adventures and perhaps come home pregnant,
and all that. At the same time, he was afraid of her going.
She was quivering, watching her real opportunity for leaving him altogether,
waiting till the time, herself himself should be ripe.
She sat and talked to the keeper of her going abroad.
`And then when I come back,' she said, `I can tell Clifford I must leave
him. And you and I can go away. They never need even know it is you. We
can go to another country, shall we? To Africa or Australia. Shall we?'
She was quite thrilled by her plan.
`You've never been to the Colonies, have you?' he asked her.
`No! Have you?'
`I've been in India, and South Africa, and Egypt.'
`Why shouldn't we go to South Africa?'
`We might!' he said slowly.
`Or don't you want to?' she asked.
`I don't care. I don't much care what I do.'
`Doesn't it make you happy? Why not? We shan't be poor. I have about
six hundred a year, I wrote and asked. It's not much, but it's enough, isn't
it?'
`It's riches to me.'
`Oh, how lovely it will be!'
`But I ought to get divorced, and so ought you, unless we're going to
have complications.'
There was plenty to think about.
Another day she asked him about himself. They were in the hut, and there
was a thunderstorm.
`And weren't you happy, when you were a lieutenant and an officer and
a gentleman?'
`Happy? All right. I liked my Colonel.'
`Did you love him?'
`Yes! I loved him.'
`And did he love you?'
`Yes! In a way, he loved me.'
`Tell me about him.'
`What is there to tell? He had risen from the ranks. He loved the army.
And he had never married. He was twenty years older than me. He was a very
intelligent man: and alone in the army, as such a man is: a passionate man
in his way: and a very clever officer. I lived under his spell while I was
with him. I sort of let him run my life. And I never regret it.'
`And did you mind very much when he died?'
`I was as near death myself. But when I came to, I knew another part
of me was finished. But then I had always known it would finish in death.
All things do, as far as that goes.'
She sat and ruminated. The thunder crashed outside. It was like being
in a little ark in the Flood.
`You seem to have such a lot behind you,' she said.
`Do I? It seems to me I've died once or twice already. Yet here I am,
pegging on, and in for more trouble.'
She was thinking hard, yet listening to the storm.
`And weren't you happy as an officer and a gentleman, when your Colonel
was dead?'
`No! They were a mingy lot.' He laughed suddenly. `The Colonel used
to say: Lad, the English middle classes have to chew every mouthful thirty
times because their guts are so narrow, a bit as big as a pea would give
them a stoppage. They're the mingiest set of ladylike snipe ever invented:
full of conceit of themselves, frightened even if their boot-laces aren't
correct, rotten as high game, and always in the right. That's what finishes
me up. Kow-tow, kow-tow, arse-licking till their tongues are tough: yet
they're always in the right. Prigs on top of everything. Prigs! A generation
of ladylike prigs with half a ball each---'
Connie laughed. The rain was rushing down.
`He hated them!'
`No,' said he. `He didn't bother. He just disliked them. There's a difference.
Because, as he said, the Tommies are getting just as priggish and half-balled
and narrow-gutted. It's the fate of mankind, to go that way.'
`The common people too, the working people?'
`All the lot. Their spunk is gone dead. Motor-cars and cinemas and aeroplanes
suck that last bit out of them. I tell you, every generation breeds a more
rabbity generation, with india rubber tubing for guts and tin legs and tin
faces. Tin people! It's all a steady sort of bolshevism just killing off
the human thing, and worshipping the mechanical thing. Money, money, money!
All the modern lot get their real kick out of killing the old human feeling
out of man, making mincemeat of the old Adam and the old Eve. They're all
alike. The world is all alike: kill off the human reality, a quid for every
foreskin, two quid for each pair of balls. What is cunt but machine-fucking!---It's
all alike. Pay 'em money to cut off the world's cock. Pay money, money,
money to them that will take spunk out of mankind, and leave 'em all little
twiddling machines.'
He sat there in the hut, his face pulled to mocking irony. Yet even
then, he had one ear set backwards, listening to the storm over the wood.
It made him feel so alone.
`But won't it ever come to an end?' she said.
`Ay, it will. It'll achieve its own salvation. When the last real man
is killed, and they're all tame: white, black, yellow, all colours
of tame ones: then they'll all be insane. Because the root of sanity
is in the balls. Then they'll all be insane, and they'll make their
grand ~auto da fe. You know auto da fe means act of faith? Ay,
well, they'll make their own grand little act of faith. They'll offer one
another up.'
`You mean kill one another?'
`I do, duckie! If we go on at our present rate then in a hundred years'
time there won't be ten thousand people in this island: there may not be
ten. They'll have lovingly wiped each other out. The thunder was rolling
further away.
`How nice!' she said.
`Quite nice! To contemplate the extermination of the human species and
the long pause that follows before some other species crops up, it calms
you more than anything else. And if we go on in this way, with everybody,
intellectuals, artists, government, industrialists and workers all frantically
killing off the last human feeling, the last bit of their intuition, the
last healthy instinct; if it goes on in algebraical progression, as it is
going on: then ta-tah! to the human species! Goodbye! darling! the serpent
swallows itself and leaves a void, considerably messed up, but not hopeless.
Very nice! When savage wild dogs bark in Wragby, and savage wild pit-ponies
stamp on Tevershall pit-bank! te deum laudamus!'
Connie laughed, but not very happily.
`Then you ought to be pleased that they are all bolshevists,' she said.
`You ought to be pleased that they hurry on towards the end.'
`So I am. I don't stop 'em. Because I couldn't if I would.'
`Then why are you so bitter?'
`I'm not! If my cock gives its last crow, I don't mind.'
`But if you have a child?' she said.
He dropped his head.
`Why,' he said at last. `It seems to me a wrong and bitter thing to
do, to bring a child into this world.'
`No! Don't say it! Don't say it!' she pleaded. `I think I'm going to
have one. Say you'll he pleased.' She laid her hand on his.
`I'm pleased for you to be pleased,' he said. `But for me it seems a
ghastly treachery to the unborn creature.
`Ah no!' she said, shocked. `Then you can't ever really want
me! You can't want me, if you feel that!'
Again he was silent, his face sullen. Outside there was only the threshing
of the rain.
`It's not quite true!' she whispered. `It's not quite true! There's
another truth.' She felt he was bitter now partly because she was leaving
him, deliberately going away to Venice. And this half pleased her.
She pulled open his clothing and uncovered his belly, and kissed his
navel. Then she laid her cheek on his belly and pressed her arm round his
warm, silent loins. They were alone in the flood.
`Tell me you want a child, in hope!' she murmured, pressing her face
against his belly. `Tell me you do!'
`Why!' he said at last: and she felt the curious quiver of changing
consciousness and relaxation going through his body. `Why I've thought sometimes
if one but tried, here among th' colliers even! They're workin' bad now,
an' not earnin' much. If a man could say to 'em: Dunna think o' nowt but
th' money. When it comes ter wants, we want but little. Let's not
live for money---'
She softly rubbed her cheek on his belly, and gathered his balls in
her hand. The penis stirred softly, with strange life, but did not rise
up. The rain beat bruisingly outside.
`Let's live for summat else. Let's not live ter make money, neither
for us-selves nor for anybody else. Now we're forced to. We're forced to
make a bit for us-selves, an' a fair lot for th' bosses. Let's stop it!
Bit by bit, let's stop it. We needn't rant an' rave. Bit by bit, let's drop
the whole industrial life an' go back. The least little bit o' money'll
do. For everybody, me an' you, bosses an' masters, even th' king. The least
little bit o' money'll really do. Just make up your mind to it, an' you've
got out o' th' mess.' He paused, then went on:
`An' I'd tell 'em: Look! Look at Joe! He moves lovely! Look how he moves,
alive and aware. He's beautiful! An' look at Jonah! He's clumsy, he's ugly,
because he's niver willin' to rouse himself I'd tell 'em: Look! look at
yourselves! one shoulder higher than t'other, legs twisted, feet all lumps!
What have yer done ter yerselves, wi' the blasted work? Spoilt yerselves.
No need to work that much. Take yer clothes off an' look at yourselves.
Yer ought ter be alive an' beautiful, an' yer ugly an' half dead. So I'd
tell 'em. An' I'd get my men to wear different clothes: appen close red
trousers, bright red, an' little short white jackets. Why, if men had red,
fine legs, that alone would change them in a month. They'd begin to be men
again, to be men! An' the women could dress as they liked. Because if once
the men walked with legs close bright scarlet, and buttocks nice and showing
scarlet under a little white jacket: then the women 'ud begin to be women.
It's because th' men aren't men, that th' women have to be.---An'
in time pull down Tevershall and build a few beautiful buildings, that would
hold us all. An' clean the country up again. An' not have many children,
because the world is overcrowded.
`But I wouldn't preach to the men: only strip 'em an' say: Look at yourselves!
That's workin' for money!- --Hark at yourselves! That's working for money.
You've been working for money! Look at Tevershall! It's horrible. That's
because it was built while you was working for money. Look at your girls!
They don't care about you, you don't care about them. It's because you've
spent your time working an' caring for money. You can't talk nor move nor
live, you can't properly be with a woman. You're not alive. Look at yourselves!'
There fell a complete silence. Connie was half listening, and threading
in the hair at the root of his belly a few forget-me-nots that she had gathered
on the way to the hut. Outside, the world had gone still, and a little icy.
`You've got four kinds of hair,' she said to him. `On your chest it's
nearly black, and your hair isn't dark on your head: but your moustache
is hard and dark red, and your hair here, your love-hair, is like a little
brush of bright red-gold mistletoe. It's the loveliest of all!'
He looked down and saw the milky bits of forget-me-nots in the hair
on his groin.
`Ay! That's where to put forget-me-nots, in the man-hair, or the maiden-hair.
But don't you care about the future?'
She looked up at him.
`Oh, I do, terribly!' she said.
`Because when I feel the human world is doomed, has doomed itself by
its own mingy beastliness, then I feel the Colonies aren't far enough. The
moon wouldn't be far enough, because even there you could look back and
see the earth, dirty, beastly, unsavoury among all the stars: made foul
by men. Then I feel I've swallowed gall, and it's eating my inside out,
and nowhere's far enough away to get away. But when I get a turn, I forget
it all again. Though it's a shame, what's been done to people these last
hundred years: men turned into nothing but labour-insects, and all their
manhood taken away, and all their real life. I'd wipe the machines off the
face of the earth again, and end the industrial epoch absolutely, like a
black mistake. But since I can't, an' nobody can, I'd better hold my peace,
an' try an' live my own life: if I've got one to live, which I rather doubt.'
The thunder had ceased outside, but the rain which had abated, suddenly
came striking down, with a last blench of lightning and mutter of departing
storm. Connie was uneasy. He had talked so long now, and he was really talking
to himself not to her. Despair seemed to come down on him completely, and
she was feeling happy, she hated despair. She knew her leaving him, which
he had only just realized inside himself had plunged him back into this
mood. And she triumphed a little.
She opened the door and looked at the straight heavy rain, like a steel
curtain, and had a sudden desire to rush out into it, to rush away. She
got up, and began swiftly pulling off her stockings, then her dress and
underclothing, and he held his breath. Her pointed keen animal breasts tipped
and stirred as she moved. She was ivory-coloured in the greenish light.
She slipped on her rubber shoes again and ran out with a wild little laugh,
holding up her breasts to the heavy rain and spreading her arms, and running
blurred in the rain with the eurhythmic dance movements she had learned
so long ago in Dresden. It was a strange pallid figure lifting and falling,
bending so the rain beat and glistened on the full haunches, swaying up
again and coming belly-forward through the rain, then stooping again so
that only the full loins and buttocks were offered in a kind of homage towards
him, repeating a wild obeisance.
He laughed wryly, and threw off his clothes. It was too much. He jumped
out, naked and white, with a little shiver, into the hard slanting rain.
Flossie sprang before him with a frantic little bark. Connie, her hair all
wet and sticking to her head, turned her hot face and saw him. Her blue
eyes blazed with excitement as she turned and ran fast, with a strange charging
movement, out of the clearing and down the path, the wet boughs whipping
her. She ran, and he saw nothing but the round wet head, the wet back leaning
forward in flight, the rounded buttocks twinkling: a wonderful cowering
female nakedness in flight.
She was nearly at the wide riding when he came up and flung his naked
arm round her soft, naked-wet middle. She gave a shriek and straightened
herself and the heap of her soft, chill flesh came up against his body.
He pressed it all up against him, madly, the heap of soft, chilled female
flesh that became quickly warm as flame, in contact. The rain streamed on
them till they smoked. He gathered her lovely, heavy posteriors one in each
hand and pressed them in towards him in a frenzy, quivering motionless in
the rain. Then suddenly he tipped her up and fell with her on the path,
in the roaring silence of the rain, and short and sharp, he took her, short
and sharp and finished, like an animal.
He got up in an instant, wiping the rain from his eyes.
`Come in,' he said, and they started running back to the hut. He ran
straight and swift: he didn't like the rain. But she came slower, gathering
forget-me-nots and campion and bluebells, running a few steps and watching
him fleeing away from her.
When she came with her flowers, panting to the hut, he had already started
a fire, and the twigs were crackling. Her sharp breasts rose and fell, her
hair was plastered down with rain, her face was flushed ruddy and her body
glistened and trickled. Wide-eyed and breathless, with a small wet head
and full, trickling, naïve haunches, she looked another creature.
He took the old sheet and rubbed her down, she standing like a child.
Then he rubbed himself having shut the door of the hut. The fire was blazing
up. She ducked her head in the other end of the sheet, and rubbed her wet
hair.
`We're drying ourselves together on the same towel, we shall quarrel!'
he said.
She looked up for a moment, her hair all odds and ends.
`No!' she said, her eyes wide. `It's not a towel, it's a sheet.' And
she went on busily rubbing her head, while he busily rubbed his.
Still panting with their exertions, each wrapped in an army blanket,
but the front of the body open to the fire, they sat on a log side by side
before the blaze, to get quiet. Connie hated the feel of the blanket against
her skin. But now the sheet was all wet.
She dropped her blanket and kneeled on the clay hearth, holding her
head to the fire, and shaking her hair to dry it. He watched the beautiful
curving drop of her haunches. That fascinated him today. How it sloped with
a rich down-slope to the heavy roundness of her buttocks! And in between,
folded in the secret warmth, the secret entrances!
He stroked her tail with his hand, long and subtly taking in the curves
and the globe-fullness.
`Tha's got such a nice tail on thee,' he said, in the throaty caressive
dialect. `Tha's got the nicest arse of anybody. It's the nicest, nicest
woman's arse as is! An' ivery bit of it is woman, woman sure as nuts. Tha'rt
not one o' them button-arsed lasses as should be lads, are ter! Tha's got
a real soft sloping bottom on thee, as a man loves in 'is guts. It's a bottom
as could hold the world up, it is!'
All the while he spoke he exquisitely stroked the rounded tail, till
it seemed as if a slippery sort of fire came from it into his hands. And
his finger-tips touched the two secret openings to her body, time after
time, with a soft little brush of fire.
`An' if tha shits an' if tha pisses, I'm glad. I don't want a woman
as couldna shit nor piss.'
Connie could not help a sudden snort of astonished laughter, but he
went on unmoved.
`Tha'rt real, tha art! Tha'art real, even a bit of a bitch. Here tha
shits an' here tha pisses: an' I lay my hand on 'em both an' like thee for
it. I like thee for it. Tha's got a proper, woman's arse, proud of itself.
It's none ashamed of itself this isna.'
He laid his hand close and firm over her secret places, in a kind of
close greeting.
`I like it,' he said. `I like it! An' if I only lived ten minutes, an'
stroked thy arse an' got to know it, I should reckon I'd lived one
life, see ter! Industrial system or not! Here's one o' my lifetimes.'
She turned round and climbed into his lap, clinging to him. `Kiss me!'
she whispered.
And she knew the thought of their separation was latent in both their
minds, and at last she was sad.
She sat on his thighs, her head against his breast, and her ivory-gleaming
legs loosely apart, the fire glowing unequally upon them. Sitting with his
head dropped, he looked at the folds of her body in the fire- glow, and
at the fleece of soft brown hair that hung down to a point between her open
thighs. He reached to the table behind, and took up her bunch of flowers,
still so wet that drops of rain fell on to her.
`Flowers stops out of doors all weathers,' he said. `They have no houses.'
`Not even a hut!' she murmured.
With quiet fingers he threaded a few forget-me-not flowers in the fine
brown fleece of the mound of Venus.
`There!' he said. `There's forget-me-nots in the right place!'
She looked down at the milky odd little flowers among the brown maiden-hair
at the lower tip of her body.
`Doesn't it look pretty!' she said.
`Pretty as life,' he replied.
And he stuck a pink campion-bud among the hair.
`There! That's me where you won't forget me! That's Moses in the bull-rushes.'
`You don't mind, do you, that I'm going away?' she asked wistfully,
looking up into his face.
But his face was inscrutable, under the heavy brows. He kept it quite
blank.
`You do as you wish,' he said.
And he spoke in good English.
`But I won't go if you don't wish it,' she said, clinging to him.
There was silence. He leaned and put another piece of wood on the fire.
The flame glowed on his silent, abstracted face. She waited, but he said
nothing.
`Only I thought it would be a good way to begin a break with Clifford.
I do want a child. And it would give me a chance to, to---,' she resumed.
`To let them think a few lies,' he said.
`Yes, that among other things. Do you want them to think the truth?'
`I don't care what they think.'
`I do! I don't want them handling me with their unpleasant cold minds,
not while I'm still at Wragby. They can think what they like when I'm finally
gone.'
He was silent.
`But Sir Clifford expects you to come back to him?'
`Oh, I must come back,' she said: and there was silence.
`And would you have a child in Wragby?' he asked.
She closed her arm round his neck.
`If you wouldn't take me away, I should have to,' she said.
`Take you where to?'
`Anywhere! away! But right away from Wragby.'
`When?'
`Why, when I come back.'
`But what's the good of coming back, doing the thing twice, if you're
once gone?' he said.
`Oh, I must come back. I've promised! I've promised so faithfully. Besides,
I come back to you, really.'
`To your husband's game-keeper?'
`I don't see that that matters,' she said.
`No?' He mused a while. `And when would you think of going away again,
then; finally? When exactly?'
`Oh, I don't know. I'd come back from Venice. And then we'd prepare
everything.'
`How prepare?'
`Oh, I'd tell Clifford. I'd have to tell him.'
`Would you!'
He remained silent. She put her arms round his neck.
`Don't make it difficult for me,' she pleaded.
`Make what difficult?'
`For me to go to Venice and arrange things.'
A little smile, half a grin, flickered on his face.
`I don't make it difficult,' he said. `I only want to find out just
what you are after. But you don't really know yourself. You want to take
time: get away and look at it. I don't blame you. I think you're wise. You
may prefer to stay mistress of Wragby. I don't blame you. I've no Wragbys
to offer. In fact, you know what you'll get out of me. No, no, I think you're
right! I really do! And I'm not keen on coming to live on you, being kept
by you. There's that too.'
She felt somehow as if he were giving her tit for tat.
`But you want me, don't you?' she asked.
`Do you want me?'
`You know I do. That's evident.'
`Quite! And when do you want me?'
`You know we can arrange it all when I come back. Now I'm out of breath
with you. I must get calm and clear.'
`Quite! Get calm and clear!'
She was a little offended.
`But you trust me, don't you?' she said.
`Oh, absolutely!'
She heard the mockery in his tone.
`Tell me then,' she said flatly; `do you think it would be better if
I don't go to Venice?'
`I'm sure it's better if you do go to Venice,' he replied in the cool,
slightly mocking voice.
`You know it's next Thursday?' she said.
`Yes!'
She now began to muse. At last she said:
`And we shall know better where we are when I come back, shan't
we?'
`Oh surely!'
The curious gulf of silence between them!
`I've been to the lawyer about my divorce,' he said, a little constrainedly.
She gave a slight shudder.
`Have you!' she said. `And what did he say?'
`He said I ought to have done it before; that may be a difficulty. But
since I was in the army, he thinks it will go through all right. If only
it doesn't bring her down on my head!'
`Will she have to know?'
`Yes! she is served with a notice: so is the man she lives with, the
co-respondent.'
`Isn't it hateful, all the performances! I suppose I'd have to go through
it with Clifford.'
There was a silence.
`And of course,' he said, `I have to live an exemplary life for the
next six or eight months. So if you go to Venice, there's temptation removed
for a week or two, at least.'
`Am I temptation!' she said, stroking his face. `I'm so glad I'm temptation
to you! Don't let's think about it! You frighten me when you start thinking:
you roll me out flat. Don't let's think about it. We can think so much when
we are apart. That's the whole point! I've been thinking, I must come to
you for another night before I go. I must come once more to the
cottage. Shall I come on Thursday night?'
`Isn't that when your sister will be there?'
`Yes! But she said we would start at tea-time. So we could start at
tea-time. But she could sleep somewhere else and I could sleep with you.
`But then she'd have to know.'
`Oh, I shall tell her. I've more or less told her already. I must talk
it all over with Hilda. She's a great help, so sensible.'
He was thinking of her plan.
`So you'd start off from Wragby at tea-time, as if you were going to
London? Which way were you going?'
`By Nottingham and Grantham.'
`And then your sister would drop you somewhere and you'd walk or drive
back here? Sounds very risky, to me.'
`Does it? Well, then, Hilda could bring me back. She could sleep at
Mansfield, and bring me back here in the evening, and fetch me again in
the morning. It's quite easy.'
`And the people who see you?'
`I'll wear goggles and a veil.'
He pondered for some time.
`Well,' he said. `You please yourself as usual.'
`But wouldn't it please you?'
`Oh yes! It'd please me all right,' he said a little grimly. `I might
as well smite while the iron's hot.'
`Do you know what I thought?' she said suddenly. `It suddenly came to
me. You are the "Knight of the Burning Pestle"!'
`Ay! And you? Are you the Lady of the Red-Hot Mortar?'
`Yes!' she said. `Yes! You're Sir Pestle and I'm Lady Mortar.'
`All right, then I'm knighted. John Thomas is Sir John, to your Lady
Jane.'
`Yes! John Thomas is knighted! I'm my-lady-maiden-hair, and you must
have flowers too. Yes!'
She threaded two pink campions in the bush of red-gold hair above his
penis.
`There!' she said. `Charming! Charming! Sir John!'
And she pushed a bit of forget-me-not in the dark hair of his breast.
`And you won't forget me there, will you?' She kissed him on the breast,
and made two bits of forget- me-not lodge one over each nipple, kissing
him again.
`Make a calendar of me!' he said. He laughed, and the flowers shook
from his breast.
`Wait a bit!' he said.
He rose, and opened the door of the hut. Flossie, lying in the porch,
got up and looked at him.
`Ay, it's me!' he said.
The rain had ceased. There was a wet, heavy, perfumed stillness. Evening
was approaching.
He went out and down the little path in the opposite direction from
the riding. Connie watched his thin, white figure, and it looked to her
like a ghost, an apparition moving away from her.
When she could see it no more, her heart sank. She stood in the door
of the hut, with a blanket round her, looking into the drenched, motionless
silence.
But he was coming back, trotting strangely, and carrying flowers. She
was a little afraid of him, as if he were not quite human. And when he came
near, his eyes looked into hers, but she could not understand the meaning.
He had brought columbines and campions, and new-mown hay, and oak-tufts
and honeysuckle in small bud. He fastened fluffy young oak-sprays round
her breasts, sticking in tufts of bluebells and campion: and in her navel
he poised a pink campion flower, and in her maiden-hair were forget-me-nots
and woodruff.
`That's you in all your glory!' he said. `Lady Jane, at her wedding
with John Thomas.'
And he stuck flowers in the hair of his own body, and wound a bit of
creeping-jenny round his penis, and stuck a single bell of a hyacinth in
his navel. She watched him with amusement, his odd intentness. And she pushed
a campion flower in his moustache, where it stuck, dangling under his nose.
`This is John Thomas marryin' Lady Jane,' he said. `An' we mun let Constance
an' Oliver go their ways. Maybe---'
He spread out his hand with a gesture, and then he sneezed, sneezing
away the flowers from his nose and his navel. He sneezed again.
`Maybe what?' she said, waiting for him to go on.
He looked at her a little bewildered.
`Eh?' he said.
`Maybe what? Go on with what you were going to say,' she insisted.
`Ay, what was I going to say?'
He had forgotten. And it was one of the disappointments of her life,
that he never finished.
A yellow ray of sun shone over the trees.
`Sun!' he said. `And time you went. Time, my Lady, time! What's that
as flies without wings, your Ladyship? Time! Time!'
He reached for his shirt.
`Say goodnight! to John Thomas,' he said, looking down at his penis.
`He's safe in the arms of creeping Jenny! Not much burning pestle about
him just now.'
And he put his flannel shirt over his head.
`A man's most dangerous moment,' he said, when his head had emerged,
`is when he's getting into his shirt. Then he puts his head in a bag. That's
why I prefer those American shirts, that you put on like a jacket.' She
still stood watching him. He stepped into his short drawers, and buttoned
them round the waist.
`Look at Jane!' he said. `In all her blossoms! Who'll put blossoms on
you next year, Jinny? Me, or somebody else? "Good-bye, my bluebell,
farewell to you!" I hate that song, it's early war days.' He then sat
down, and was pulling on his stockings. She still stood unmoving. He laid
his hand on the slope of her buttocks. `Pretty little Lady Jane!' he said.
`Perhaps in Venice you'll find a man who'll put jasmine in your maiden-hair,
and a pomegranate flower in your navel. Poor little lady Jane!'
`Don't say those things!' she said. `You only say them to hurt me.'
He dropped his head. Then he said, in dialect:
`Ay, maybe I do, maybe I do! Well then, I'll say nowt, an' ha' done
wi't. But tha mun dress thysen, all' go back to thy stately homes of England,
how beautiful they stand. Time's up! Time's up for Sir John, an' for little
Lady Jane! Put thy shimmy on, Lady Chatterley! Tha might be anybody, standin'
there be-out even a shimmy, an' a few rags o' flowers. There then, there
then, I'll undress thee, tha bob-tailed young throstle.' And he took the
leaves from her hair, kissing her damp hair, and the flowers from her breasts,
and kissed her breasts, and kissed her navel, and kissed her maiden-hair,
where he left the flowers threaded. `They mun stop while they will,' he
said. `So! There tha'rt bare again, nowt but a bare-arsed lass an' a bit
of a Lady Jane! Now put thy shimmy on, for tha mun go, or else Lady Chatterley's
goin' to be late for dinner, an' where 'ave yer been to my pretty maid!'
She never knew how to answer him when he was in this condition of the
vernacular. So she dressed herself and prepared to go a little ignominiously
home to Wragby. Or so she felt it: a little ignominiously home.
He would accompany her to the broad riding. His young pheasants were
all right under the shelter.
When he and she came out on to the riding, there was Mrs Bolton faltering
palely towards them.
`Oh, my Lady, we wondered if anything had happened!'
`No! Nothing has happened.'
Mrs Bolton looked into the man's face, that was smooth and new-looking
with love. She met his half- laughing, half-mocking eyes. He always laughed
at mischance. But he looked at her kindly.
`Evening, Mrs Bolton! Your Ladyship will be all right now, so I can
leave you. Good-night to your Ladyship! Good-night, Mrs Bolton!'
He saluted and turned away. Chapter 16
Connie arrived home to an ordeal of cross-questioning. Clifford had
been out at tea-time, had come in just before the storm, and where was her
ladyship? Nobody knew, only Mrs Bolton suggested she had gone for a walk
into the wood. Into the wood, in such a storm! Clifford for once let himself
get into a state of nervous frenzy. He started at every flash of lightning,
and blenched at every roll of thunder. He looked at the icy thunder-rain
as if it dare the end of the world. He got more and more worked up.
Mrs Bolton tried to soothe him.
`She'll be sheltering in the hut, till it's over. Don't worry, her Ladyship
is all right.'
`I don't like her being in the wood in a storm like this! I don't like
her being in the wood at all! She's been gone now more than two hours. When
did she go out?'
`A little while before you came in.'
`I didn't see her in the park. God knows where she is and what has happened
to her.'
`Oh, nothing's happened to her. You'll see, she'll be home directly
after the rain stops. It's just the rain that's keeping her.'
But her ladyship did not come home directly the rain stopped. In fact
time went by, the sun came out for his last yellow glimpse, and there still
was no sign of her. The sun was set, it was growing dark, and the first
dinner-gong had rung.
`It's no good!' said Clifford in a frenzy. `I'm going to send out Field
and Betts to find her.'
`Oh don't do that!' cried Mrs Bolton. `They'll think there's a suicide
or something. Oh don't start a lot of talk going. Let me slip over to the
hut and see if she's not there. I'll find her all right.'
So, after some persuasion, Clifford allowed her to go.
And so Connie had come upon her in the drive, alone and palely loitering.
`You mustn't mind me coming to look for you, my Lady! But Sir Clifford
worked himself up into such a state. He made sure you were struck by lightning,
or killed by a falling tree. And he was determined to send Field and Betts
to the wood to find the body. So I thought I'd better come, rather than
set all the servants agog.
She spoke nervously. She could still see on Connie's face the smoothness
and the half-dream of passion, and she could feel the irritation against
herself.
`Quite!' said Connie. And she could say no more.
The two women plodded on through the wet world, in silence, while great
drops splashed like explosions in the wood. Ben they came to the park, Connie
strode ahead, and Mrs Bolton panted a little. She was getting plumper.
`How foolish of Clifford to make a fuss!' said Connie at length, angrily,
really speaking to herself.
`Oh, you know what men are! They like working themselves up. But he'll
be all right as soon as he sees your Ladyship.'
Connie was very angry that Mrs Bolton knew her secret: for certainly
she knew it.
Suddenly Constance stood still on the path.
`It's monstrous that I should have to be followed!' she said, her eyes
flashing.
`Oh! your Ladyship, don't say that! He'd certainly have sent the two
men, and they'd have come straight to the hut. I didn't know where it was,
really.'
Connie flushed darker with rage, at the suggestion. Yet, while her passion
was on her, she could not lie. She could not even pretend there was nothing
between herself and the keeper. She looked at the other woman, who stood
so sly, with her head dropped: yet somehow, in her femaleness, an ally.
`Oh well!' she said. `I fit is so it is so. I don't mind!'
`Why, you're all right, my Lady! You've only been sheltering in the
hut. It's absolutely nothing.'
They went on to the house. Connie marched in to Clifford's room, furious
with him, furious with his pale, over-wrought fee and prominent eyes.
`I must say, I don't think you need send the servants after me,' she
burst out.
`My God!' he exploded. `Where have you been, woman, You've been gone
hours, hours, and in a storm like this! What the hell do you go to that-bloody
wood for? What have you been up to? It's hours even since the rain stopped,
hours! Do you know what time it is? You're enough to drive anybody mad.
Where have you been? What in the name of hell have you been doing?'
`And what if I don't choose to tell you?' She pulled her hat from her
head and shook her hair.
He lied at her with his eyes bulging, and yellow coming into the whites.
It was very bad for him to get into these rages: Mrs Bolton had a weary
time with him, for days after. Connie felt a sudden qualm.
But really!' she said, milder. `Anyone would think I'd been I don't
know where! I just sat in the hut during all the storm, and made myself
a little fire, and was happy.'
She spoke now easily. After all, why work him up any more!
He looked at her suspiciously.
And look at your hair!' he said; `look at yourself!'
`Yes!' she replied calmly. `I ran out in the rain with no clothes on.'
He stared at her speechless.
`You must be mad!' he said.
`Why? To like a shower bath from the rain?'
`And how did you dry yourself?'
`On an old towel and at the fire.'
He still stared at her in a dumbfounded way.
`And supposing anybody came,' he said.
`Who would come?'
`Who? Why, anybody! And Mellors. Does he come? He must come in the evenings.'
`Yes, he came later, when it had cleared up, to feed the pheasants with
corn.'
She spoke with amazing nonchalance. Mrs Bolton, who was listening in
the next room, heard in sheer admiration. To think a woman could carry it
off so naturally!
`And suppose he'd come while you were running about in the rain with
nothing on, like a maniac?'
`I suppose he'd have had the fright of his life, and cleared out as
fast as he could.'
Clifford still stared at her transfixed. What he thought in his under-consciousness
he would never know. And he was too much taken aback to form one clear thought
in his upper consciousness. He just simply accepted what she said, in a
sort of blank. And he admired her. He could not help admiring her. She looked
so flushed and handsome and smooth: love smooth.
`At least,' he said, subsiding, `you'll be lucky if you've got off without
a severe cold.'
`Oh, I haven't got a cold,' she replied. She was thinking to herself
of the other man's words: Tha's got the nicest woman's arse of anybody!
She wished, she dearly wished she could tell Clifford that this had been
said her, during the famous thunderstorm. However! She bore herself rather
like an offended queen, and went upstairs to change.
That evening, Clifford wanted to be nice to her. He was reading one
of the latest scientific-religious books: he had a streak of a spurious
sort of religion in him, and was egocentrically concerned with the future
of his own ego. It was like his habit to make conversation to Connie about
some book, since the conversation between them had to be made, almost chemically.
They had almost chemically to concoct it in their heads.
`What do you think of this, by the way?' he said, reaching for his book.
`You'd have no need to cool your ardent body by running out in the rain,
if only we have a few more aeons of evolution behind us. Ah, here it is!---"The
universe shows us two aspects: on one side it is physically wasting, on
the other it is spiritually ascending."'
Connie listened, expecting more. But Clifford was waiting. She looked
at him in surprise.
`And if it spiritually ascends,' she said, `what does it leave down
below, in the place where its tail used to be?'
`Ah!' he said. `Take the man for what he means. Ascending is
the opposite of his wasting, I presume.'
`Spiritually blown out, so to speak!'
`No, but seriously, without joking: do you think there is anything in
it?'
She looked at him again.
`Physically wasting?' she said. `I see you getting fatter, and I'm sot
wasting myself. Do you think the sun is smaller than he used to be? He's
not to me. And I suppose the apple Adam offered Eve wasn't really much bigger,
if any, than one of our orange pippins. Do you think it was?'
`Well, hear how he goes on: "It is thus slowly passing, with a
slowness inconceivable in our measures of time, to new creative conditions,
amid which the physical world, as we at present know it, will he represented
by a ripple barely to be distinguished from nonentity."'
She listened with a glisten of amusement. All sorts of improper things
suggested themselves. But she only said:
`What silly hocus-pocus! As if his little conceited consciousness could
know what was happening as slowly as all that! It only means he's
a physical failure on the earth, so he wants to make the whole universe
a physical failure. Priggish little impertinence!'
`Oh, but listen! Don't interrupt the great man's solemn words!---"The
present type of order in the world has risen from an unimaginable part,
and will find its grave in an unimaginable future. There remains the inexhaustive
realm of abstract forms, and creativity with its shifting character ever
determined afresh by its own creatures, and God, upon whose wisdom all forms
of order depend."---There, that's how he winds up!'
Connie sat listening contemptuously.
`He's spiritually blown out,' she said. `What a lot of stuff! Unnimaginables,
and types of order in graves, and realms of abstract forms, and creativity
with a shifty character, and God mixed up with forms of order! Why, it's
idiotic!'
`I must say, it is a little vaguely conglomerate, a mixture of gases,
so to speak,' said Clifford. `Still, I think there is something in the idea
that the universe is physically wasting and spiritually ascending.'
`Do you? Then let it ascend, so long as it leaves me safely and solidly
physically here below.'
`Do you like your physique?' he asked.
`I love it!' And through her mind went the words: It's the nicest, nicest
woman's arse as is!
`But that is really rather extraordinary, because there's no denying
it's an encumbrance. But then I suppose a woman doesn't take a supreme pleasure
in the life of the mind.'
`Supreme pleasure?' she said, looking up at him. `Is that sort of idiocy
the supreme pleasure of the life of the mind? No thank you! Give me the
body. I believe the life of the body is a greater reality than the life
of the mind: when the body is really wakened to life. But so many people,
like your famous wind-machine, have only got minds tacked on to their physical
corpses.'
He looked at her in wonder.
`The life of the body,' he said, `is just the life of the animals.'
`And that's better than the life of professional corpses. But it's not
true! the human body is only just coming to real life. With the Greeks it
gave a lovely flicker, then Plato and Aristotle killed it, and Jesus finished
it off. But now the body is coming really to life, it is really rising from
the tomb. And It will be a lovely, lovely life in the lovely universe, the
life of the human body.'
`My dear, you speak as if you were ushering it all in! True, you am
going away on a holiday: but don't please be quite so indecently elated
about it. Believe me, whatever God there is is slowly eliminating the guts
and alimentary system from the human being, to evolve a higher, more spiritual
being.'
`Why should I believe you, Clifford, when I feel that whatever God there
is has at last wakened up in my guts, as you call them, and is rippling
so happily there, like dawn. Why should I believe you, when I feel so very
much the contrary?'
`Oh, exactly! And what has caused this extraordinary change in you?
running out stark naked in the rain, and playing Bacchante? desire for sensation,
or the anticipation of going to Venice?'
`Both! Do you think it is horrid of me to be so thrilled at going off?'
she said.
`Rather horrid to show it so plainly.'
`Then I'll hide it.'
`Oh, don't trouble! You almost communicate a thrill to me. I almost
feel that it is I who am going off.'
`Well, why don't you come?'
`We've gone over all that. And as a matter of fact, I suppose your greatest
thrill comes from being able to say a temporary farewell to all this. Nothing
so thrilling, for the moment, as Good-bye-to-all!---But every parting means
a meeting elsewhere. And every meeting is a new bondage.'
`I'm not going to enter any new bondages.'
`Don't boast, while the gods are listening,' he said.
She pulled up short.
`No! I won't boast!' she said.
But she was thrilled, none the less, to be going off: to feel bonds
snap. She couldn't help it.
Clifford, who couldn't sleep, gambled all night with Mrs Bolton, till
she was too sleepy almost to live.
And the day came round for Hilda to arrive. Connie had arranged with
Mellors that if everything promised well for their night together, she would
hang a green shawl out of the window. If there were frustration, a red one.
Mrs Bolton helped Connie to pack.
`It will be so good for your Ladyship to have a change.'
`I think it will. You don't mind having Sir Clifford on your hands alone
for a time, do you?'
`Oh no! I can manage him quite all right. I mean, I can do all he needs
me to do. Don't you think he's better than he used to be?'
`Oh much! You do wonders with him.'
`Do I though! But men are all alike: just babies, and you have to flatter
them and wheedle them and let them think they're having their own way. Don't
you find it so, my Lady?'
`I'm afraid I haven't much experience.'
Connie paused in her occupation.
`Even your husband, did you have to manage him, and wheedle him like
a baby?' she asked, looking at the other woman.
Mrs Bolton paused too.
`Well!' she said. `I had to do a good bit of coaxing, with him too.
But he always knew what I was after, I must say that. But he generally gave
in to me.'
`He was never the lord and master thing?'
`No! At least there'd be a look in his eyes sometimes, and then I knew
I'd got to give in. But usually he gave in to me. No, he was never
lord and master. But neither was I. I knew when I could go no further with
him, and then I gave in: though it cost me a good bit, sometimes.'
`And what if you had held out against him?'
`Oh, I don't know, I never did. Even when he was in the wrong, if he
was fixed, I gave in. You see, I never wanted to break what was between
us. And if you really set your will against a man, that finishes it. If
you care for a man, you have to give in to him once he's really determined;
whether you're in the right or not, you have to give in. Else you break
something. But I must say, Ted 'ud give in to me sometimes, when I was set
on a thing, and in the wrong. So I suppose it cuts both ways.'
`And that's how you are with all your patients?' asked Connie.
`Oh, That's different. I don't care at all, in the same way. I know
what's good for them, or I try to, and then I just contrive to manage them
for their own good. It's not like anybody as you're really fond of. It's
quite different. Once you've been really fond of a man, you can be affectionate
to almost any man, if he needs you at all. But it's not the same thing.
You don't really care. I doubt, once you've really cared,
if you can ever really care again.'
These words frightened Connie.
`Do you think one can only care once?' she asked.
`Or never. Most women never care, never begin to. They don't know what
it means. Nor men either. But when I see a woman as cares, my heart stands
still for her.'
`And do you think men easily take offence?'
`Yes! If you wound them on their pride. But aren't women the same? Only
our two prides are a bit different.'
Connie pondered this. She began again to have some misgiving about her
gag away. After all, was she not giving her man the go-by, if only for a
short time? And he knew it. That's why he was so queer and sarcastic.
Still! the human existence is a good deal controlled by the machine
of external circumstance. She was in the power of this machine. She couldn't
extricate herself all in five minutes. She didn't even want to.
Hilda arrived in good time on Thursday morning, in a nimble two-seater
car, with her suit-case strapped firmly behind. She looked as demure and
maidenly as ever, but she had the same will of her own. She had the very
hell of a will of her own, as her husband had found out. But the husband
was now divorcing her.
Yes, she even made it easy for him to do that, though she had no lover.
For the time being, she was `off' men. She was very well content to be quite
her own mistress: and mistress of her two children, whom she was going to
bring up `properly', whatever that may mean.
Connie was only allowed a suit-case, also. But she had sent on a trunk
to her father, who was going by train. No use taking a car to Venice. And
Italy much too hot to motor in, in July. He was going comfortably by train.
He had just come down from Scotland.
So, like a demure arcadian field-marshal, Hilda arranged the material
part of the journey. She and Connie sat in the upstairs room, chatting.
`But Hilda!' said Connie, a little frightened. `I want to stay near
here tonight. Not here: near here!'
Hilda fixed her sister with grey, inscrutable eyes. She seemed so calm:
and she was so often furious.
`Where, near here?' she asked softly.
`Well, you know I love somebody, don't you?'
`I gathered there was something.'
`Well he lives near here, and I want to spend this last night with him
must! I've promised.'
Connie became insistent.
Hilda bent her Minerva-like head in silence. Then she looked up.
`Do you want to tell me who he is?' she said.
`He's our game-keeper,' faltered Connie, and she flushed vividly, like
a shamed child.
`Connie!' said Hilda, lifting her nose slightly with disgust: a she
had from her mother.
`I know: but he's lovely really. He really understands tenderness,'
said Connie, trying to apologize for him.
Hilda, like a ruddy, rich-coloured Athena, bowed her head and pondered
She was really violently angry. But she dared not show it, because Connie,
taking after her father, would straight away become obstreperous and unmanageable.
It was true, Hilda did not like Clifford: his cool assurance that he
was somebody! She thought he made use of Connie shamefully and impudently.
She had hoped her sister would leave him. But, being solid Scotch
middle class, she loathed any `lowering' of oneself or the family. She looked
up at last.
`You'll regret it,' she said,
`I shan't,' cried Connie, flushed red. `He's quite the exception. I
really love him. He's lovely as a lover.'
Hilda still pondered.
`You'll get over him quite soon,' she said, `and live to be ashamed
of yourself because of him.'
`I shan't! I hope I'm going to have a child of his.'
`Connie!' said Hilda, hard as a hammer-stroke, and pale with
anger.
`I shall if I possibly can. I should be fearfully proud if I had a child
by him.'
It was no use talking to her. Hilda pondered.
`And doesn't Clifford suspect?' she said.
`Oh no! Why should he?'
`I've no doubt you've given him plenty of occasion for suspicion,' said
Hilda.
`Not it all.'
`And tonight's business seems quite gratuitous folly. Where does the
man live?'
`In the cottage at the other end of the wood.'
`Is he a bachelor?'
`No! His wife left him.'
`How old?'
`I don't know. Older than me.'
Hilda became more angry at every reply, angry as her mother used to
be, in a kind of paroxysm. But still she hid it.
`I would give up tonight's escapade if I were you,' she advised calmly.
`I can't! I must stay with him tonight, or I can't go to Venice
at all. I just can't.'
Hilda heard her father over again, and she gave way, out of mere diplomacy.
And she consented to drive to Mansfield, both of them, to dinner, to bring
Connie back to the lane-end after dark, and to fetch her from the lane-end
the next morning, herself sleeping in Mansfield, only half an hour away,
good going.
But she was furious. She stored it up against her sister, this balk
in her plans.
Connie flung an emerald-green shawl over her window-sill.
On the strength of her anger, Hilda warmed toward Clifford.
After all, he had a mind. And if he had no sex, functionally, all the
better: so much the less to quarrel about! Hilda wanted no more of that
sex business, where men became nasty, selfish little horrors. Connie really
had less to put up with than many women if she did but know it.
And Clifford decided that Hilda, after all, was a decidedly intelligent
woman, and would make a man a first-rate helpmate, if he were going in for
politics for example. Yes, she had none of Connie's silliness, Connie was
more a child: you had to make excuses for her, because she was not altogether
dependable.
There was an early cup of tea in the hall, where doors were open to
let in the sun. Everybody seemed to be panting a little.
`Good-bye, Connie girl! Come back to me safely.'
`Good-bye, Clifford! Yes, I shan't be long.' Connie was almost tender.
`Good-bye, Hilda! You will keep an eye on her, won't you?'
`I'll even keep two!' said Hilda. `She shan't go very far astray.'
`It's a promise!'
`Good-bye, Mrs Bolton! I know you'll look after Sir Clifford nobly.'
`I'll do what I can, your Ladyship.'
`And write to me if there is any news, and tell me about Sir Clifford,
how he is.'
`Very good, your Ladyship, I will. And have a good time, and come back
and cheer us up.'
Everybody waved. The car went off Connie looked back and saw Clifford,
sitting at the top of the steps in his house-chair. After all, he was her
husband: Wragby was her home: circumstance had done it.
Mrs Chambers held the gate and wished her ladyship a happy holiday.
The car slipped out of the dark spinney that masked the park, on to the
highroad where the colliers were trailing home. Hilda turned to the Crosshill
Road, that was not a main road, but ran to Mansfield. Connie put on goggles.
They ran beside the railway, which was in a cutting below them. Then they
crossed the cutting on a bridge.
`That's the lane to the cottage!' said Connie.
Hilda glanced at it impatiently.
`It's a frightful pity we can't go straight off!' she said. We could
have been in Pall Mall by nine o'clock.'
`I'm sorry for your sake,' said Connie, from behind her goggles.
They were soon at Mansfield, that once-romantic, now utterly disheartening
colliery town. Hilda stopped at the hotel named in the motor-car book, and
took a room. The whole thing was utterly uninteresting, and she was almost
too angry to talk. However, Connie had to tell her something of
the man's history.
`He! He! What name do you call him by? You only say
he,' said Hilda.
`I've never called him by any name: nor he me: which is curious, when
you come to think of it. Unless we say Lady Jane and John Thomas. But his
name is Oliver Mellors.'
`And how would you like to be Mrs Oliver Mellors, instead of Lady Chatterley?'
`I'd love it.'
There was nothing to be done with Connie. And anyhow, if the man had
been a lieutenant in the army in India for four or five years, he must be
more or less presentable. Apparently he had character. Hilda began to relent
a little.
`But you'll be through with him in awhile,' she said, `and then you'll
be ashamed of having been connected with him. One can't mix up
with the working people.'
`But you are such a socialist! you're always on the side of the working
classes.'
`I may be on their side in a political crisis, but being on their side
makes me know how impossible it is to mix one's life with theirs. Not out
of snobbery, but just because the whole rhythm is different.'
Hilda had lived among the real political intellectuals, so she was disastrously
unanswerable.
The nondescript evening in the hotel dragged out, and at last they had
a nondescript dinner. Then Connie slipped a few things into a little silk
bag, and combed her hair once more.
`After all, Hilda,' she said, `love can be wonderful: when you feel
you live, and are in the very middle of creation.' It was almost
like bragging on her part.
`I suppose every mosquito feels the same,' said Hilda. `Do you think
it does? How nice for it!'
The evening was wonderfully clear and long-lingering, even in the small
town. It would be half-light all night. With a face like a mask, from resentment,
Hilda started her car again, and the two sped back on their traces, taking
the other road, through Bolsover.
Connie wore her goggles and disguising cap, and she sat in silence.
Because of Hilda's Opposition, she was fiercely on the sidle of the man,
she would stand by him through thick and thin.
They had their head-lights on, by the time they passed Crosshill, and
the small lit-up train that chuffed past in the cutting made it seem like
real night. Hilda had calculated the turn into the lane at the bridge-end.
She slowed up rather suddenly and swerved off the road, the lights glaring
white into the grassy, overgrown lane. Connie looked out. She saw a shadowy
figure, and she opened the door.
`Here we are!' she said softly.
But Hilda had switched off the lights, and was absorbed backing, making
the turn.
`Nothing on the bridge?' she asked shortly. `You're all right,' said
the mall's voice. She backed on to the bridge, reversed, let the car run
forwards a few yards along the road, then backed into the lane, under a
wych-elm tree, crushing the grass and bracken. Then all the lights went
out. Connie stepped down. The man stood under the trees.
`Did you wait long?' Connie asked.
`Not so very,' he replied.
They both waited for Hilda to get out. But Hilda shut the door of the
car and sat tight.
`This is my sister Hilda. Won't you come and speak to her? Hilda! This
is Mr Mellors.'
The keeper lifted his hat, but went no nearer.
`Do walk down to the cottage with us, Hilda,' Connie pleaded. `It's
not far.'
`What about the car?'
`People do leave them on the lanes. You have the key.'
Hilda was silent, deliberating. Then she looked backwards down the lane.
`Can I back round the bush?' she said.
`Oh yes!' said the keeper.
She backed slowly round the curve, out of sight of the road, locked
the car, and got down. It was night, but luminous dark. The hedges rose
high and wild, by the unused lane, and very dark seeming. There was a fresh
sweet scent on the air. The keeper went ahead, then came Connie, then Hilda,
and in silence. He lit up the difficult places with a flash-light torch,
and they went on again, while an owl softly hooted over the oaks, and Flossie
padded silently around. Nobody could speak. There was nothing to say.
At length Connie saw the yellow light of the house, and her heart beat
fast. She was a little frightened. They trailed on, still in Indian file.
He unlocked the door and preceded them into the warm but bare little
room. The fire burned low and red in the grate. The table was set with two
plates and two glasses on a proper white table-cloth for Once. Hilda shook
her hair and looked round the bare, cheerless room. Then she summoned her
courage and looked at the man.
He was moderately tall, and thin, and she thought him good-looking.
He kept a quiet distance of his own, and seemed absolutely unwilling to
speak.
`Do sit down, Hilda,' said Connie.
`Do!' he said. `Can I make you tea or anything, or will you drink a
glass of beer? It's moderately cool.'
`Beer!' said Connie.
`Beer for me, please!' said Hilda, with a mock sort of shyness. He looked
at her and blinked.
He took a blue jug and tramped to the scullery. When he came back with
the beer, his face had changed again.
Connie sat down by the door, and Hilda sat in his seat, with the back
to the wall, against the window corner.
`That is his chair,' said Connie softly.' And Hilda rose as if it had
burnt her.
`Sit yer still, sit yer still! Ta'e ony cheer as yo'n a mind to, none
of us is th' big bear,' he said, with complete equanimity.
And he brought Hilda a glass, and poured her beer first from the blue
jug.
`As for cigarettes,' he said, `I've got none, but 'appen you've got
your own. I dunna smoke, mysen. Shall y' eat summat?' He turned direct to
Connie. `Shall t'eat a smite o' summat, if I bring it thee? Tha can usually
do wi' a bite.' He spoke the vernacular with a curious calm assurance, as
if he were the landlord of the Inn.
`What is there?' asked Connie, flushing.
`Boiled ham, cheese, pickled wa'nuts, if yer like.---Nowt much.'
`Yes,' said Connie. `Won't you, Hilda?'
Hilda looked up at him.
`Why do you speak Yorkshire?' she said softly.
`That! That's non Yorkshire, that's Derby.'
He looked back at her with that faint, distant grin.
`Derby, then! Why do you speak Derby? You spoke natural English at first.'
`Did Ah though? An' canna Ah change if Ah'm a mind to 't? Nay, nay,
let me talk Derby if it suits me. If yo'n nowt against it.'
`It sounds a little affected,' said Hilda.
`Ay, 'appen so! An' up i' Tevershall yo'd sound affected.' He looked
again at her, with a queer calculating distance, along his cheek-bone: as
if to say: Yi, an' who are you?
He tramped away to the pantry for the food.
The sisters sat in silence. He brought another plate, and knife and
fork. The he said:
`An' if it's the same to you, I s'll ta'e my coat off like I allers
do.'
And he took off his coat, and hung it on the peg, then sat down to table
in his shirt-sleeves: a shirt of thin, cream-coloured flannel.
`'Elp yerselves!' he said. `'Elp yerselves! Dunna wait f'r axin'!' He
cut the bread, then sat motionless. Hilda felt, as Connie once used to,
his power of silence and distance. She saw his smallish, sensitive, loose
hand on the table. He was no simple working man, not he: he was acting!
acting!
`Still!' she said, as she took a little cheese. `It would be more natural
if you spoke to us in normal English, not in vernacular.'
He looked at her, feeling her devil of a will.
`Would it?' he said in the normal English. `Would it? Would anything
that was said between you and me be quite natural, unless you said you wished
me to hell before your sister ever saw me again: and unless I said something
almost as unpleasant back again? Would anything else be natural?'
`Oh yes!' said Hilda. `Just good manners would be quite natural.'
`Second nature, so to speak!' he said: then he began to laugh. `Nay,'
he said. `I'm weary o' manners. Let me be!'
Hilda was frankly baffled and furiously annoyed. After all, he might
show that he realized he was being honoured. Instead of which, with his
play-acting and lordly airs, he seemed to think it was he who was conferring
the honour. Just impudence! Poor misguided Connie, in the man's clutches!
The three ate in silence. Hilda looked to see what his table-manners
were like. She could not help realizing that he was instinctively much more
delicate and well-bred than herself. She had a certain Scottish clumsiness.
And moreover, he had all the quiet self-contained assurance of the English,
no loose edges. It would be very difficult to get the better of him.
But neither would he get the better of her.
`And do you really think,' she said, a little more humanly, `it's worth
the risk.'
`Is what worth what risk?'
`This escapade with my sister.'
He flickered his irritating grin.
`Yo' maun ax 'er!' Then he looked at Connie.
`Tha comes o' thine own accord, lass, doesn't ter? It's non me as forces
thee?'
Connie looked at Hilda.
`I wish you wouldn't cavil, Hilda.'
`Naturally I don't want to. But someone has to think about things. You've
got to have some sort of continuity in your life. You can't just go making
a mess.'
There was a moment's pause.
`Eh, continuity!' he said. `An' what by that? What continuity ave yer
got i' your life? I thought you was gettin' divorced. What continuity's
that? Continuity o' yer own stubbornness. I can see that much. An' what
good's it goin' to do yer? You'll be sick o' yer continuity afore yer a
fat sight older. A stubborn woman an er own self-will: ay, they make a fast
continuity, they do. Thank heaven, it isn't me as `as got th' 'andlin' of
yer!'
`What right have you to speak like that to me?' said Hilda.
`Right! What right ha' yo' ter start harnessin' other folks i' your
continuity? Leave folks to their own continuities.'
`My dear man, do you think I am concerned with you?' said Hilda softly.
`Ay,' he said. `Yo' are. For it's a force-put. Yo' more or less my sister-in-law.'
`Still far from it, I assure you.
`Not a' that far, I assure you. I've got my own sort o' continuity,
back your life! Good as yours, any day. An' if your sister there comes ter
me for a bit o' cunt an' tenderness, she knows what she's after. She's been
in my bed afore: which you 'aven't, thank the Lord, with your continuity.'
There was a dead pause, before he added: `---Eh, I don't wear me breeches
arse-forrards. An' if I get a windfall, I thank my stars. A man gets a lot
of enjoyment out o' that lass theer, which is more than anybody gets out
o' th' likes o' you. Which is a pity, for you might appen a' bin a good
apple, 'stead of a handsome crab. Women like you needs proper graftin'.'
He was looking at her with an odd, flickering smile, faintly sensual
and appreciative.
`And men like you,' she said, `ought to be segregated: justifying their
own vulgarity and selfish lust.'
`Ay, ma'am! It's a mercy there's a few men left like me. But you deserve
what you get: to be left severely alone.'
Hilda had risen and gone to the door. He rose and took his coat from
the peg.
`I can find my way quite well alone,' she said.
`I doubt you can't,' he replied easily.
They tramped in ridiculous file down the lane again, in silence. An
owl still hooted. He knew he ought to shoot it.
The car stood untouched, a little dewy. Hilda got in and started the
engine. The other two waited.
`All I mean,' she said from her entrenchment, `is that I doubt if you'll
find it's been worth it, either of you!'
`One man's meat is another man's poison,' he said, out of the darkness.
`But it's meat an' drink to me.
The lights flared out.
`Don't make me wait in the morning,'
`No, I won't. Goodnight!'
The car rose slowly on to the highroad, then slid swiftly away, leaving
the night silent.
Connie timidly took his arm, and they went down the lane. He did not
speak. At length she drew him to a standstill.
`Kiss me!' she murmured.
`Nay, wait a bit! Let me simmer down,' he said.
That amused her. She still kept hold of his arm, and they went quickly
down the lane, in silence. She was so glad to be with him, just now. She
shivered, knowing that Hilda might have snatched her away. He was inscrutably
silent.
When they were in the cottage again, she almost jumped with pleasure,
that she should be free of her sister.
`But you were horrid to Hilda,' she said to him.
`She should ha' been slapped in time.'
`But why? and she's so nice.'
He didn't answer, went round doing the evening chores, with a quiet,
inevitable sort of motion. He was outwardly angry, but not with her. So
Connie felt. And his anger gave him a peculiar handsomeness, an inwardness
and glisten that thrilled her and made her limbs go molten.
Still he took no notice of her.
Till he sat down and began to unlace his boots. Then he looked up at
her from under his brows, on which the anger still sat firm.
`Shan't you go up?' he said. `There's a candle!'
He jerked his head swiftly to indicate the candle burning on the table.
She took it obediently, and he watched the full curve of her hips as she
went up the first stairs.
It was a night of sensual passion, in which she was a little startled
and almost unwilling: yet pierced again with piercing thrills of sensuality,
different, sharper, more terrible than the thrills of tenderness, but, at
the moment, more desirable. Though a little frightened, she let him have
his way, and the reckless, shameless sensuality shook her to her foundations,
stripped her to the very last, and made a different woman of her. It was
not really love. It was not voluptuousness. It was sensuality sharp and
searing as fire, burning the soul to tinder.
Burning out the shames, the deepest, oldest shames, in the most secret
places. It cost her an effort to let him have his way and his will of her.
She had to be a passive, consenting thing, like a slave, a physical slave.
Yet the passion licked round her, consuming, and when the sensual flame
of it pressed through her bowels and breast, she really thought she was
dying: yet a poignant, marvellous death.
She had often wondered what Abélard meant, when he said that
in their year of love he and Héloïse had passed through all
the stages and refinements of passion. The same thing, a thousand years
ago: ten thousand years ago! The same on the Greek vases, everywhere! The
refinements of passion, the extravagances of sensuality! And necessary,
forever necessary, to burn out false shames and smelt out the heaviest ore
of the body into purity. With the fire of sheer sensuality.
In the short summer night she learnt so much. She would have thought
a woman would have died of shame. Instead of which, the shame died. Shame,
which is fear: the deep Organic shame, the old, old physical fear which
crouches in the bodily roots of us, and can only be chased away by the sensual
fire, at last it was roused up and routed by the phallic hunt of the man,
and she came to the very heart of the jungle of herself. She felt, now,
she had come to the real bed-rock of her nature, and was essentially shameless.
She was her sensual self, naked and unashamed. She felt a triumph, almost
a vainglory. So! That was how it was! That was life! That was how oneself
really was! There was nothing left to disguise or be ashamed of. She shared
her ultimate nakedness with a man, another being.
And what a reckless devil the man was! really like a devil! One had
to be strong to bear him. But it took some getting at, the core of the physical
jungle, the last and deepest recess of organic shame. The phallos alone
could explore it. And how he had pressed in on her!
And how, in fear, she had hated it. But how she had really wanted it!
She knew now. At the bottom of her soul, fundamentally, she had needed this
phallic hunting Out, she had secretly wanted it, and she had believed that
she would never get it. Now suddenly there it was, and a man was sharing
her last and final nakedness, she was shameless.
What liars poets and everybody were! They made one think one wanted
sentiment. When what one supremely wanted was this piercing, consuming,
rather awful sensuality. To find a man who dared do it, without shame or
sin or final misgiving! If he had been ashamed afterwards, and made one
feel ashamed, how awful! What a pity most men are so doggy, a bit shameful,
like Clifford! Like Michaelis even! Both sensually a bit doggy and humiliating.
The supreme pleasure of the mind! And what is that to a woman? What is it,
really, to the man either! He becomes merely messy and doggy, even in his
mind. It needs sheer sensuality even to purify and quicken the mind. Sheer
fiery sensuality, not messiness.
Ah, God, how rare a thing a man is! They are all dogs that trot and
sniff and copulate. To have found a man who was not afraid and not ashamed!
She looked at him now, sleeping so like a wild animal asleep, gone, gone
in the remoteness of it. She nestled down, not to be away from him.
Till his rousing waked her completely. He was sitting up in bed, looking
down at her. She saw her own nakedness in his eyes, immediate knowledge
of her. And the fluid, male knowledge of herself seemed to flow to her from
his eyes and wrap her voluptuously. Oh, how voluptuous and lovely it was
to have limbs and body half-asleep, heavy and suffused with passion.
`Is it time to wake up?' she said.
`Half past six.'
She had to be at the lane-end at eight. Always, always, always this
compulsion on one!
`I might make the breakfast and bring it up here; should I?' he said.
`Oh yes!'
Flossie whimpered gently below. He got up and threw off his pyjamas,
and rubbed himself with a towel. When the human being is full of courage
and full of life, how beautiful it is! So she thought, as she watched him
in silence.
`Draw the curtain, will you?'
The sun was shining already on the tender green leaves of morning, and
the wood stood bluey-fresh, in the nearness. She sat up in bed, looking
dreamily out through the dormer window, her naked arms pushing her naked
breasts together. He was dressing himself. She was half-dreaming of life,
a life together with him: just a life.
He was going, fleeing from her dangerous, crouching nakedness.
`Have I lost my nightie altogether?' she said.
He pushed his hand down in the bed, and pulled out the bit of flimsy
silk.
`I knowed I felt silk at my ankles,' he said.
But the night-dress was slit almost in two.
`Never mind!' she said. `It belongs here, really. I'll leave it.'
`Ay, leave it, I can put it between my legs at night, for company. There's
no name nor mark on it, is there?'
She slipped on the torn thing, and sat dreamily looking out of the window.
The window was Open, the air of morning drifted in, and the sound of birds.
Birds flew continuously past. Then she saw Flossie roaming out. It was morning.
Downstairs she heard him making the fire, pumping water, going out at
the back door. By and by came the smell of bacon, and at length he came
upstairs with a huge black tray that would only just go through the door.
He set the tray on the bed, and poured out the tea. Connie squatted in her
torn nightdress, and fell on her food hungrily. He sat on the one chair,
with his plate on his knees.
`How good it is!' she said. `How nice to have breakfast together.'
He ate in silence, his mind on the time that was quickly passing. That
made her remember.
`Oh, how I wish I could stay here with you, and Wragby were a million
miles away! It's Wragby I'm going away from really. You know that, don't
you?'
`Ay!'
`And you promise we will live together and have a life together, you
and me! You promise me, don't you?'
`Ay! When we can.'
`Yes! And we will! we will, won't we?' she leaned
over, making the tea spill, catching his wrist.
`Ay!' he said, tidying up the tea.
`We can't possibly not live together now, can we?' she said
appealingly.
He looked up at her with his flickering grin.
`No!' he said. `Only you've got to start in twenty-five minutes.'
`Have I?' she cried. Suddenly he held up a warning finger, and rose
to his feet.
Flossie had given a short bark, then three loud sharp yaps of warning.
Silent, he put his plate on the tray and went downstairs. Constance
heard him go down the garden path. A bicycle bell tinkled outside there.
`Morning, Mr Mellors! Registered letter!'
`Oh ay! Got a pencil?'
`Here y'are!'
There was a pause.
`Canada!' said the stranger's voice.
`Ay! That's a mate o' mine out there in British Columbia. Dunno what
he's got to register.'
`'Appen sent y'a fortune, like.'
`More like wants summat.'
Pause.
`Well! Lovely day again!'
`Ay!'
`Morning!'
`Morning!'
After a time he came upstairs again, looking a little angry.
`Postman,' he said.
`Very early!' she replied.
`Rural round; he's mostly here by seven, when he does come.
`Did your mate send you a fortune?'
`No! Only some photographs and papers about a place out there in British
Columbia.'
`Would you go there?'
`I thought perhaps we might.'
`Oh yes! I believe it's lovely!' But he was put out by the postman's
coming.
`Them damn bikes, they're on you afore you know where you are. I hope
he twigged nothing.'
`After all, what could he twig!'
`You must get up now, and get ready. I'm just goin' ter look round outside.'
She saw him go reconnoitring into the lane, with dog and gun. She went
downstairs and washed, and was ready by the time he came back, with the
few things in the little silk bag.
He locked up, and they set off, but through the wood, not down the lane.
He was being wary.
`Don't you think one lives for times like last night?' she said to him.
`Ay! But there's the rest o'times to think on,' he replied, rather short.
They plodded on down the overgrown path, he in front, in silence.
`And we will live together and make a life together, won't
we?' she pleaded.
`Ay!' he replied, striding on without looking round. `When t' time comes!
Just now you're off to Venice or somewhere.'
She followed him dumbly, with sinking heart. Oh, now she was wae
to go!
At last he stopped.
`I'll just strike across here,' he said, pointing to the right.
But she flung her arms round his neck, and clung to him.
`But you'll keep the tenderness for me, won't you?' she whispered. `I
loved last night. But you'll keep the tenderness for me, won't you?'
He kissed her and held her close for a moment. Then he sighed, and kissed
her again.
`I must go an' look if th' car's there.'
He strode over the low brambles and bracken, leaving a trail through
the fern. For a minute or two he was gone. Then he came striding back.
`Car's not there yet,' he said. `But there's the baker's cart on t'
road.'
He seemed anxious and troubled.
`Hark!'
They heard a car softly hoot as it came nearer. It slowed up on the
bridge.
She plunged with utter mournfulness in his track through the fern, and
came to a huge holly hedge. He was just behind her.
`Here! Go through there!' he said, pointing to a gap. `I shan't come
out.
She looked at him in despair. But he kissed her and made her go. She
crept in sheer misery through the holly and through the wooden fence, stumbled
down the little ditch and up into the lane, where Hilda was just getting
out of the car in vexation.
`Why you're there!' said Hilda. `Where's he?'
`He's not coming.'
Connie's face was running with tears as she got into the car with her
little bag. Hilda snatched up the motoring helmet with the disfiguring goggles.
`Put it on!' she said. And Connie pulled on the disguise, then the long
motoring coat, and she sat down, a goggling inhuman, unrecognizable creature.
Hilda started the car with a businesslike motion. They heaved out of the
lane, and were away down the road. Connie had looked round, but there was
no sight of him. Away! Away! She sat in bitter tears. The parting had come
so suddenly, so unexpectedly. It was like death.
`Thank goodness you'll be away from him for some time!' said Hilda,
turning to avoid Crosshill village. Chapter 17
`You see, Hilda,' said Connie after lunch, when they were nearing London,
`you have never known either real tenderness or real sensuality: and if
you do know them, with the same person, it makes a great difference.'
`For mercy's sake don't brag about your experiences!' said Hilda. `I've
never met the man yet who was capable of intimacy with a woman, giving himself
up to her. That was what I wanted. I'm not keen on their self-satisfied
tenderness, and their sensuality. I'm not content to be any man's little
petsy-wetsy, nor his chair à plaisir either. I wanted a
complete intimacy, and I didn't get it. That's enough for me.
Connie pondered this. Complete intimacy! She supposed that meant revealing
everything concerning yourself to the other person, and his revealing everything
concerning himself. But that was a bore. And all that weary self-consciousness
between a man and a woman! a disease!
`I think you're too conscious of yourself all the time, with everybody,'
she said to her sister.
`I hope at least I haven't a slave nature,' said Hilda.
`But perhaps you have! Perhaps you are a slave to your own idea of yourself.'
Hilda drove in silence for some time after this piece of unheard of
insolence from that chit Connie.
`At least I'm not a slave to somebody else's idea of me: and the somebody
else a servant of my husband's,' she retorted at last, in crude anger.
`You see, it's not so,' said Connie calmly.
She had always let herself be dominated by her elder sister. Now, though
somewhere inside herself she was weeping, she was free of the dominion of
other women. Ah! that in itself was a relief, like being given
another life: to be free of the strange dominion and obsession of other
women. How awful they were, women!
She was glad to be with her father, whose favourite she had always been.
She and Hilda stayed in a little hotel off Pall Mall, and Sir Malcolm was
in his club. But he took his daughters out in the evening, and they liked
going with him.
He was still handsome and robust, though just a little afraid of the
new world that had sprung up around him. He had got a second wife in Scotland,
younger than himself and richer. But he had as many holidays away from her
as possible: just as with his first wife.
Connie sat next to him at the opera. He was moderately stout, and had
stout thighs, but they were still strong and well-knit, the thighs of a
healthy man who had taken his pleasure in life. His good-humoured selfishness,
his dogged sort of independence, his unrepenting sensuality, it seemed to
Connie she could see them all in his well-knit straight thighs. Just a man!
And now becoming an old man, which is sad. Because in his strong, thick
male legs there was none of the alert sensitiveness and power of tenderness
which is the very essence of youth, that which never dies, once it is there.
Connie woke up to the existence of legs. They became more important
to her than faces, which are no longer very real. How few people had live,
alert legs! She looked at the men in the stalls. Great puddingy thighs in
black pudding-cloth, or lean wooden sticks in black funeral stuff, or well-shaped
young legs without any meaning whatever, either sensuality or tenderness
or sensitiveness, just mere leggy ordinariness that pranced around. Not
even any sensuality like her father's. They were all daunted, daunted out
of existence.
But the women were not daunted. The awful mill-posts of most females!
really shocking, really enough to justify murder! Or the poor thin pegs!
or the trim neat things in silk stockings, without the slightest look of
life! Awful, the millions of meaningless legs prancing meaninglessly around!
But she was not happy in London. The people seemed so spectral and blank.
They had no alive happiness, no matter how brisk and good-looking they were.
It was all barren. And Connie had a woman's blind craving for happiness,
to be assured of happiness.
In Paris at any rate she felt a bit of sensuality still. But what a
weary, tired, worn-out sensuality. Worn- out for lack of tenderness. Oh!
Paris was sad. One of the saddest towns: weary of its now-mechanical sensuality,
weary of the tension of money, money, money, weary even of resentment and
conceit, just weary to death, and still not sufficiently Americanized or
Londonized to hide the weariness under a mechanical jig-jig-jig! Ah, these
manly he-men, these flâneurs, the oglers, these eaters of
good dinners! How weary they were! weary, worn-out for lack of a little
tenderness, given and taken. The efficient, sometimes charming women knew
a thing or two about the sensual realities: they had that pull over their
jigging English sisters. But they knew even less of tenderness. Dry, with
the endless dry tension of will, they too were wearing out. The human world
was just getting worn out. Perhaps it would turn fiercely destructive. A
sort of anarchy! Clifford and his conservative anarchy! Perhaps it wouldn't
be conservative much longer. Perhaps it would develop into a very radical
anarchy.
Connie found herself shrinking and afraid of the world. Sometimes she
was happy for a little while in the Boulevards or in the Bois or the Luxembourg
Gardens. But already Paris was full of Americans and English, strange Americans
in the oddest uniforms, and the usual dreary English that are so hopeless
abroad.
She was glad to drive on. It was suddenly hot weather, so Hilda was
going through Switzerland and over the Brenner, then through the Dolomites
down to Venice. Hilda loved all the managing and the driving and being mistress
of the show. Connie was quite content to keep quiet.
And the trip was really quite nice. Only Connie kept saying to herself:
Why don't I really care! Why am I never really thrilled? How awful, that
I don't really care about the landscape any more! But I don't. It's rather
awful. I'm like Saint Bernard, who could sail down the lake of Lucerne without
ever noticing that there were even mountain and green water. I just don't
care for landscape any more. Why should one stare at it? Why should one?
I refuse to.
No, she found nothing vital in France or Switzerland or the Tyrol or
Italy. She just was carted through it all. And it was all less real than
Wragby. Less real than the awful Wragby! She felt she didn't care if she
never saw France or Switzerland or Italy again. They'd keep. Wragby was
more real.
As for people! people were all alike, with very little difference. They
all wanted to get money out of you: or, if they were travellers, they wanted
to get enjoyment, perforce, like squeezing blood out of a stone. Poor mountains!
poor landscape! it all had to be squeezed and squeezed and squeezed again,
to provide a thrill, to provide enjoyment. What did people mean, with their
simply determined enjoying of themselves?
No! said Connie to herself I'd rather be at Wragby, where I can go about
and be still, and not stare at anything or do any performing of any sort.
This tourist performance of enjoying oneself is too hopelessly humiliating:
it's such a failure.
She wanted to go back to Wragby, even to Clifford, even to poor crippled
Clifford. He wasn't such a fool as this swarming holidaying lot, anyhow.
But in her inner consciousness she was keeping touch with the other
man. She mustn't let her connexion with him go: oh, she mustn't let it go,
or she was lost, lost utterly in this world of riff-raffy expensive people
and joy-hogs. Oh, the joy-hogs! Oh `enjoying oneself'! Another modern form
of sickness.
They left the car in Mestre, in a garage, and took the regular steamer
over to Venice. It was a lovely summer afternoon, the shallow lagoon rippled,
the full sunshine made Venice, turning its back to them across the water,
look dim.
At the station quay they changed to a gondola, giving the man the address.
He was a regular gondolier in a white-and-blue blouse, not very good-looking,
not at all impressive.
`Yes! The Villa Esmeralda! Yes! I know it! I have been the gondolier
for a gentleman there. But a fair distance out!'
He seemed a rather childish, impetuous fellow. He rowed with a certain
exaggerated impetuosity, through the dark side-canals with the horrible,
slimy green walls, the canals that go through the poorer quarters, where
the washing hangs high up on ropes, and there is a slight, or strong, odour
of sewage.
But at last he came to one of the open canals with pavement on either
side, and looping bridges, that run straight, at right-angles to the Grand
Canal. The two women sat under the little awning, the man was perched above,
behind them.
`Are the signorine staying long at the Villa Esmeralda?' he asked, rowing
easy, and `wiping his perspiring face with a white-and-blue handkerchief.
`Some twenty days: we are both married ladies,' said Hilda, in her curious
hushed voice, that made her Italian sound so foreign.
`Ah! Twenty days!' said the man. There was a pause. After which he asked:
`Do the signore want a gondolier for the twenty days or so that they will
stay at the Villa Esmeralda? Or by the day, or by the week?'
Connie and Hilda considered. In Venice, it is always preferable to have
one's own gondola, as it is preferable to have one's own car on land.
`What is there at the Villa? what boats?'
`There is a motor-launch, also a gondola. But---' The but meant:
they won't be your property.
`How much do you charge?'
It was about thirty shillings a day, or ten pounds a week.
`Is that the regular price?' asked Hilda.
`Less, Signora, less. The regular price---'
The sisters considered.
`Well,' said Hilda, `come tomorrow morning, and we will arrange it.
What is your name?'
His name was Giovanni, and he wanted to know at what time he should
come, and then for whom should he say he was waiting. Hilda had no card.
Connie gave him one of hers. He glanced at it swiftly, with his hot, southern
blue eyes, then glanced again.
`Ah!' he said, lighting up. `Milady! Milady, isn't it?'
`Milady Costanza!' said Connie.
He nodded, repeating: `Milady Costanza!' and putting the card carefully
away in his blouse.
The Villa Esmeralda was quite a long way out, on the edge of the lagoon
looking towards Chioggia. It was not a very old house, and pleasant, with
the terraces looking seawards, and below, quite a big garden with dark trees,
walled in from the lagoon.
Their host was a heavy, rather coarse Scotchman who had made a good
fortune in Italy before the war, and had been knighted for his ultrapatriotism
during the war. His wife was a thin, pale, sharp kind of person with no
fortune of her own, and the misfortune of having to regulate her husband's
rather sordid amorous exploits. He was terribly tiresome with the servants.
But having had a slight stroke during the winter, he was now more manageable.
The house was pretty full. Besides Sir Malcolm and his two daughters,
there were seven more people, a Scotch couple, again with two daughters;
a young Italian Contessa, a widow; a young Georgian prince, and a youngish
English clergyman who had had pneumonia and was being chaplain to Sir Alexander
for his health's sake. The prince was penniless, good-looking, would make
an excellent chauffeur, with the necessary impudence, and basta! The Contessa
was a quiet little puss with a game on somewhere. The clergyman was a raw
simple fellow from a Bucks vicarage: luckily he had left his wife and two
children at home. And the Guthries, the family of four, were good solid
Edinburgh middle class, enjoying everything in a solid fashion, and daring
everything while risking nothing.
Connie and Hilda ruled out the prince at once. The Guthries were more
or less their own sort, substantial, hut boring: and the girls wanted husbands.
The chaplain was not a had fellow, but too deferential. Sir Alexander, after
his slight stroke, had a terrible heaviness his joviality, but he was still
thrilled at the presence of so many handsome young women. Lady Cooper was
a quiet, catty person who had a thin time of it, poor thing, and who watched
every other woman with a cold watchfulness that had become her second nature,
and who said cold, nasty little things which showed what an utterly low
opinion she had of all human nature. She was also quite venomously overbearing
with the servants, Connie found: but in a quiet way. And she skilfully behaved
so that Sir Alexander should think that he was lord and monarch
of the whole caboosh, with his stout, would-be-genial paunch, and his utterly
boring jokes, his humourosity, as Hilda called it.
Sir Malcolm was painting. Yes, he still would do a Venetian lagoonscape,
now and then, in contrast to his Scottish landscapes. So in the morning
he was rowed off with a huge canvas, to his `site'. A little later, Lady
Cooper would he rowed off into the heart of the city, with sketching-block
and colours. She was an inveterate watercolour painter, and the house was
full of rose-coloured palaces, dark canals, swaying bridges, medieval facades,
and so on. A little later the Guthries, the prince, the countess, Sir Alexander,
and sometimes Mr Lind, the chaplain, would go off to the Lido, where they
would bathe; coming home to a late lunch at half past one.
The house-party, as a house-party, was distinctly boring. But this did
not trouble the sisters. They were out all the time. Their father took them
to the exhibition, miles and miles of weary paintings. He took them to all
the cronies of his in the Villa Lucchese, he sat with them on warm evenings
in the piazza, having got a table at Florian's: he took them to the theatre,
to the Goldoni plays. There were illuminated water- fêtes, there were
dances. This was a holiday-place of all holiday-places. The Lido, with its
acres of sun-pinked or pyjamaed bodies, was like a strand with an endless
heap of seals come up for mating. Too many people in the piazza, too many
limbs and trunks of humanity on the Lido, too many gondolas, too many motor-launches,
too many steamers, too many pigeons, too many ices, too many cocktails,
too many menservants wanting tips, too many languages rattling, too much,
too much sun, too much smell of Venice, too many cargoes of strawberries,
too many silk shawls, too many huge, raw-beef slices of watermelon on stalls:
too much enjoyment, altogether far too much enjoyment!
Connie and Hilda went around in their sunny frocks. There were dozens
of people they knew, dozens of people knew them. Michaelis turned up like
a bad penny. `Hullo! Where you staying? Come and have an ice-cream or something!
Come with me somewhere in my gondola.' Even Michaelis almost sun-burned:
though sun-cooked is more appropriate to the look of the mass of human flesh.
It was pleasant in a way. It was almost enjoyment. But anyhow,
with all the cocktails, all the lying in warmish water and sunbathing on
hot sand in hot sun, jazzing with your stomach up against some fellow in
the warm nights, cooling off with ices, it was a complete narcotic. And
that was what they all wanted, a drug: the slow water, a drug; the sun,
a drug; jazz, a drug; cigarettes, cocktails, ices, vermouth. To be drugged!
Enjoyment! Enjoyment!
Hilda half liked being drugged. She liked looking at all the women,
speculating about them. The women were absorbingly interested in the women.
How does she look! what man has she captured? what fun is she getting out
of it?---The men were like great dogs in white flannel trousers, waiting
to be patted, waiting to wallow, waiting to plaster some woman's stomach
against their own, in jazz.
Hilda liked jazz, because she could plaster her stomach against the
stomach of some so-called man, and let him control her movement from the
visceral centre, here and there across the floor, and then she could break
loose and ignore `the creature'. He had been merely made use of. Poor Connie
was rather unhappy. She wouldn't jazz, because she simply couldn't plaster
her stomach against some `creature's' stomach. She hated the conglomerate
mass of nearly nude flesh on the Lido: there was hardly enough water to
wet them all. She disliked Sir Alexander and Lady Cooper. She did not want
Michaelis or anybody else trailing her.
The happiest times were when she got Hilda to go with her away across
the lagoon, far across to some lonely shingle-bank, where they could bathe
quite alone, the gondola remaining on the inner side of the reef.
Then Giovanni got another gondolier to help him, because it was a long
way and he sweated terrifically in the sun. Giovanni was very nice: affectionate,
as the Italians are, and quite passionless. The Italians are not passionate:
passion has deep reserves. They are easily moved, and often affectionate,
but they rarely have any abiding passion of any sort.
So Giovanni was already devoted to his ladies, as he had been devoted
to cargoes of ladies in the past. He was perfectly ready to prostitute himself
to them, if they wanted hint: he secretly hoped they would want him. They
would give him a handsome present, and it would come in very handy, as he
was just going to be married. He told them about his marriage, and they
were suitably interested.
He thought this trip to some lonely bank across the lagoon probably
meant business: business being l'amore, love. So he got a mate
to help him, for it was a long way; and after all, they were two ladies.
Two ladies, two mackerels! Good arithmetic! Beautiful ladies, too! He was
justly proud of them. And though it was the Signora who paid him and gave
him orders, he rather hoped it would be the young milady who would select
hint for l'amore. She would give more money too.
The mate he brought was called Daniele. He was not a regular gondolier,
so he had none of the cadger and prostitute about him. He was a sandola
man, a sandola being a big boat that brings in fruit and produce from the
islands.
Daniele was beautiful, tall and well-shapen, with a light round head
of little, close, pale-blond curls, and a good-looking man's face, a little
like a lion, and long-distance blue eyes. He was not effusive, loquacious,
and bibulous like Giovanni. He was silent and he rowed with a strength and
ease as if he were alone on the water. The ladies were ladies, remote from
him. He did not even look at them. He looked ahead.
He was a real man, a little angry when Giovanni drank too much wine
and rowed awkwardly, with effusive shoves of the great oar. He was a man
as Mellors was a man, unprostituted. Connie pitied the wife of the easily-overflowing
Giovanni. But Daniele's wife would be one of those sweet Venetian women
of the people whom one still sees, modest and flower-like in the back of
that labyrinth of a town.
Ah, how sad that man first prostitutes woman, then woman prostitutes
man. Giovanni was pining to prostitute himself, dribbling like a dog, wanting
to give himself to a woman. And for money!
Connie looked at Venice far off, low and rose-coloured upon the water.
Built of money, blossomed of money, and dead with money. The money-deadness!
Money, money, money, prostitution and deadness.
Yet Daniele was still a man capable of a man's free allegiance. He did
not wear the gondolier's blouse: only the knitted blue jersey. He was a
little wild, uncouth and proud. So he was hireling to the rather doggy Giovanni
who was hireling again to two women. So it is! When Jesus refused the devil's
money, he left the devil like a Jewish banker, master of the whole situation.
Connie would come home from the blazing light of the lagoon in a kind
of stupor, to lind letters from home. Clifford wrote regularly. He wrote
very good letters: they might all have been printed in a book. And for this
reason Connie found them not very interesting.
She lived in the stupor of the light of the lagoon, the lapping saltiness
of the water, the space, the emptiness, the nothingness: but health, health,
complete stupor of health. It was gratifying, and she was lulled away in
it, not caring for anything. Besides, she was pregnant. She knew now. So
the stupor of sunlight and lagoon salt and sea-bathing and lying on shingle
and finding shells and drifting away, away in a gondola, was completed by
the pregnancy inside her, another fullness of health, satisfying and stupefying.
She had been at Venice a fortnight, and she was to stay another ten
days or a fortnight. The sunshine blazed over any count of time, and the
fullness of physical health made forgetfulness complete. She was in a sort
of stupor of well-being.
From which a letter of Clifford roused her.
We too have had our mild local excitement. It appears the truant wife
of Mellors, the keeper, turned up at the cottage and found herself unwelcome.
He packed her off, and locked the door. Report has it, however, that when
he returned from the wood he found the no longer fair lady firmly established
in his bed, in puris naturalibus; or one should say, in impuris
naturalibus. She had broken a window and got in that way. Unable to
evict the somewhat man-handled Venus from his couch, he beat a retreat and
retired, it is said, to his mother's house in Tevershall. Meanwhile the
Venus of Stacks Gate is established in the cottage, which she claims is
her home, and Apollo, apparently, is domiciled in Tevershall.
I repeat this from hearsay, as Mellors has not come to me personally.
I had this particular bit of local garbage from our garbage bird, our ibis,
our scavenging turkey-buzzard, Mrs Bolton. I would not have repeated it
had she not exclaimed: her Ladyship will go no more to the wood if that
woman's going to be about!
I like your picture of Sir Malcolm striding into the sea with white
hair blowing and pink flesh glowing. I envy you that sun. Here it rains.
But I don't envy Sir Malcolm his inveterate mortal carnality. However, it
suits his age. Apparently one grows more carnal and more mortal as one grows
older. Only youth has a taste of immortality---
This news affected Connie in her state of semi-stupefied ell being with
vexation amounting to exasperation. Now she ad got to be bothered by that
beast of a woman! Now she must start and fret! She had no letter from Mellors.
They had agreed not to write at all, but now she wanted to hear from him
personally. After all, he was the father of the child that was coming. Let
him write!
But how hateful! Now everything was messed up. How foul those low people
were! How nice it was here, in the sunshine and the indolence, compared
to that dismal mess of that English Midlands! After all, a clear sky was
almost the most important thing in life.
She did not mention the fact of her pregnancy, even to Hilda. She wrote
to Mrs Bolton for exact information.
Duncan Forbes, an artist friend of theirs, had arrived at the Villa
Esmeralda, coming north from Rome. Now he made a third in the gondola, and
he bathed with them across the lagoon, and was their escort: a quiet, almost
taciturn young man, very advanced in his art.
She had a letter from Mrs Bolton:
You will be pleased, I am sure, my Lady, when you see Sir Clifford.
He's looking quite blooming and working very hard, and very hopeful. Of
course he is looking forward to seeing you among us again. It is a dull
house without my Lady, and we shall all welcome her presence among us once
more.
About Mr Mellors, I don't know how much Sir Clifford told you. It seems
his wife came back all of a sudden one afternoon, and he found her sitting
on the doorstep when he came in from the wood. She said she was come back
to him and wanted to live with him again, as she was his legal wife, and
he wasn't going to divorce her. But he wouldn't have anything to do with
her, and wouldn't let her in the house, and did not go in himself; he went
back into the wood without ever opening the door.
But when he came back after dark, he found the house broken into, so
he went upstairs to see what she'd done, and he found her in bed without
a rag on her. He offered her money, but she said she was his wife and he
must take her back. I don't know what sort of a scene they had. His mother
told me about it, she's terribly upset. Well, he told her he'd die rather
than ever live with her again, so he took his things and went straight to
his mother's on Tevershall hill. He stopped the night and went to the wood
next day through the park, never going near the cottage. It seems he never
saw his wife that day. But the day after she was at her brother Pan's at
Beggarlee, swearing and carrying on, saying she was his legal wife, and
that he'd beers having women at the cottage, because she'd found a scent-bottle
in his drawer, and gold-tipped cigarette- ends on the ash-heap, and I don't
know what all. Then it seems the postman Fred Kirk says he heard somebody
talking in Mr Mellors' bedroom early one morning, and a motor-car had been
in the lane.
Mr Mellors stayed on with his mother, and went to the wood through the
park, and it seems she stayed on at the cottage. Well, there was no end
of talk. So at last Mr Mellors and Tom Phillips went to the cottage and
fetched away most of the furniture and bedding, and unscrewed the handle
of the pump, so she was forced to go. But instead of going back to Stacks
Gate she went and lodged with that Mrs Swain at Beggarlee, because her brother
Dan's wife wouldn't have her. And she kept going to old Mrs Mellors' house,
to catch him, and she began swearing he'd got in bed with her in the cottage
and she went to a lawyer to make him pay her an allowance. She's grown heavy,
and more common than ever, and as strong as a bull. And she goes about saying
the most awful things about him, how he has women at the cottage, and how
he behaved to her when they were married, the low, beastly things he did
to her, and I don't know what all. I'm sure it's awful, the mischief a woman
can do, once she starts talking. And no matter how low she may be, there'll
be some as will believe her, and some of the dirt will stick. I'm sure the
way she makes out that Mr Mellors was one of those low, beastly men with
women, is simply shocking. And people are only too ready to believe things
against anybody, especially things like that. She declared she'll never
leave him alone while he lives. Though what I say is, if he was so beastly
to her, why is she so anxious to go back to him? But of course she's coming
near her change of life, for she's years older than he is. And these common,
violent women always go partly insane whets the change of life comes upon
them---
This was a nasty blow to Connie. Here she was, sure as life, coming
in for her share of the lowness and dirt. She felt angry with him for not
having got clear of a Bertha Coutts: nay, for ever having married her. Perhaps
he had a certain hankering after lowness. Connie remembered the last night
she had spent with him, and shivered. He had known all that sensuality,
even with a Bertha Coutts! It was really rather disgusting. It would be
well to be rid of him, clear of him altogether. He was perhaps really common,
really low.
She had a revulsion against the whole affair, and almost envied the
Guthrie girls their gawky inexperience and crude maidenliness. And she now
dreaded the thought that anybody would know about herself and the keeper.
How unspeakably humiliating! She was weary, afraid, and felt a craving for
utter respectability, even for the vulgar and deadening respectability of
the Guthrie girls. If Clifford knew about her affair, how unspeakably humiliating!
She was afraid, terrified of society and its unclean bite. She almost wished
she could get rid of the child again, and be quite clear. In short, she
fell into a state of funk.
As for the scent-bottle, that was her own folly. She had not been able
to refrain from perfuming his one or two handkerchiefs and his shirts in
the drawer, just out of childishness, and she had left a little bottle of
Coty's Wood-violet perfume, half empty, among his things. She wanted him
to remember her in the perfume. As for the cigarette-ends, they were Hilda's.
She could not help confiding a little in Duncan Forbes. She didn't say
she had been the keeper's lover, she only said she liked him, and told Forbes
the history of the man.
`Oh,' said Forbes, `you'll see, they'll never rest till they've pulled
the man down and done him its. If he has refused to creep up into the middle
classes, when he had a chance; and if he's a man who stands up for his own
sex, then they'll do him in. It's the one thing they won't let you be, straight
and open in your sex. You can be as dirty as you like. In fact the more
dirt you do on sex the better they like it. But if you believe in your own
sex, and won't have it done dirt to: they'll down you. It's the one insane
taboo left: sex as a natural and vital thing. They won't have it, and they'll
kill you before they'll let you have it. You'll see, they'll hound that
man down. And what's he done, after all? If he's made love to his wife all
ends on, hasn't he a right to? She ought to be proud of it. But you see,
even a low bitch like that turns on him, and uses the hyena instinct of
the mob against sex, to pull him down. You have a snivel and feel sinful
or awful about your sex, before you're allowed to have any. Oh, they'll
hound the poor devil down.'
Connie had a revulsion in the opposite direction now. What had he done,
after all? what had he done to herself, Connie, but give her an exquisite
pleasure and a sense of freedom and life? He had released her warm, natural
sexual flow. And for that they would hound him down.
No no, it should not be. She saw the image of him, naked white with
tanned face and hands, looking down and addressing his erect penis as if
it were another being, the odd grin flickering on his face. And she heard
his voice again: Tha's got the nicest woman's arse of anybody! And she felt
his hand warmly and softly closing over her tail again, over her secret
places, like a benediction. And the warmth ran through her womb, and the
little flames flickered in her knees, and she said: Oh, no! I mustn't go
back on it! I must not go back on him. I must stick to him and to what I
had of him, through everything. I had no warm, flamy life till he gave it
me. And I won't go back on it.
She did a rash thing. She sent a letter to Ivy Bolton, enclosing a note
to the keeper, and asking Mrs Bolton to give it him. And she wrote to him:
I am very much distressed to hear of all the trouble your wife is making
for you, but don't mind it, it is only a sort of hysteria. It will all blow
over as suddenly as it came. But I'm awfully sorry about it, and I do hope
you are not minding very much. After all, it isn't worth it. She is only
a hysterical woman who wants to hurt you. I shall be home in ten days' time,
and I do hope everything will be all right.
A few days later came a letter from Clifford. He was evidently upset.
I am delighted to hear you are prepared to leave Venice on the sixteenth.
But if you are enjoying it, don't hurry home. We miss you, Wragby misses
you. But it is essential that you should get your full amount of sunshine,
sunshine and pyjamas, as the advertisements of the Lido say. So please do
stay on a little longer, if it is cheering you up and preparing you for
our sufficiently awful winter. Even today, it rains.
I am assiduously, admirably looked after by Mrs Bolton. She is a queer
specimen. The more I live, the more I realize what strange creatures human
beings are. Some of them might Just as well have a hundred legs, like a
centipede, or six, like a lobster. The human consistency and dignity one
has been led to expect from one's fellow-men seem actually nonexistent.
One doubts if they exist to any startling degree even is oneself.
The scandal of the keeper continues and gets bigger like a snowball.
Mrs Bolton keeps me informed. She reminds me of a fish which, though dumb,
seems to be breathing silent gossip through its gills, while ever it lives.
All goes through the sieve of her gills, and nothing surprises her. It is
as if the events of other people's lives were the necessary oxygen of her
own.
She is preoccupied with tie Mellors scandal, and if I will let her begin,
she takes me down to the depths. Her great indignation, which even then
is like the indignation of an actress playing a role, is against the wife
of Mellors, whom she persists in calling Bertha Courts. I have been to the
depths of the muddy lies of the Bertha Couttses of this world, and when,
released from the current of gossip, I slowly rise to the surface again,
I look at the daylight its wonder that it ever should be.
It seems to me absolutely true, that our world, which appears to us
the surface of all things, is really the bottom of a deep ocean:
all our trees are submarine growths, and we are weird, scaly-clad submarine
fauna, feeding ourselves on offal like shrimps. Only occasionally the soul
rises gasping through the fathomless fathoms under which we live, far up
to the surface of the ether, where there is true air. I am convinced that
the air we normally breathe is a kind of water, and men and women are a
species of fish.
But sometimes the soul does come up, shoots like a kittiwake into the
light, with ecstasy, after having preyed on the submarine depths. It is
our mortal destiny, I suppose, to prey upon the ghastly subaqueous life
of our fellow-men, in the submarine jungle of mankind. But our immortal
destiny is to escape, once we have swallowed our swimmy catch, up again
into the bright ether, bursting out from the surface of Old Ocean into real
light. Then one realizes one's eternal nature.
When I hear Mrs Bolton talk, I feel myself plunging down, down, to the
depths where the fish of human secrets wriggle and swim. Carnal appetite
makes one seize a beakful of prey: then up, up again, out of the dense into
the ethereal, from the wet into the dry. To you I can tell the whole process.
But with Mrs Bolton I only feel the downward plunge, down, horribly, among
the sea-weeds and the pallid monsters of the very bottom.
I am afraid we are going to lose our game-keeper. The scandal of the
truant wife, instead of dying down, has reverberated to greater and greater
dimensions. He is accused of all unspeakable things and curiously enough,
the woman has managed to get the bulk of the colliers' wives behind her,
gruesome fish, and the village is putrescent with talk.
I hear this Bertha Coutts besieges Mellors in his mother's house, having
ransacked the cottage and the hut. She seized one day upon her own daughter,
as that chip of the female block was returning from school; but the little
one, instead of kissing the loving mother's hand, bit it firmly, and so
received from the other hand a smack in the face which sent her reeling
into the gutter: whence she was rescued by an indignant and harassed grandmother.
The woman has blown off an amazing quantity of poison-gas. She has aired
in detail all those incidents of her conjugal life which are usually buried
down in the deepest grave of matrimonial silence, between married couples.
Having chosen to exhume them, after ten years of burial, she has a weird
array. I hear these details from Linley and the doctor: the latter being
amused. Of course there is really nothing in it. Humanity has always had
a strange avidity for unusual sexual postures, and if a man likes to use
his wife, as Benvenuto Cellini says, `in the Italian way', well that is
a matter of taste. But I had hardly expected our game-keeper to be up to
so many tricks. No doubt Bertha Coutts herself first put him up to them.
In any case, it is a matter of their own personal squalor, and nothing to
do with anybody else.
However, everybody listens: as I do myself. A dozen years ago, common
decency would have hushed the thing. But common decency no longer exists,
and the colliers' wives are all up in arms and unabashed in voice. One would
think every child in Tevershall, for the last fifty years, had been an immaculate
conception, and every one of our nonconformist females was a shining Joan
of Arc. That our estimable game-keeper should have about him a touch of
Rabelais seems to make him more monstrous and shocking than a murderer like
Crippen. Yet these people in Tevershall are a loose lot, if one is to believe
all accounts.
The trouble is, however, the execrable Bertha Coutts has not confined
herself to her own experiences and sufferings. She has discovered, at the
top of her voice, that her husband has been `keeping' women down at the
cottage, and has made a few random shots at naming the women. This has brought
a few decent names trailing through the mud, and the thing has gone quite
considerably too far. An injunction has been taken out against the woman.
I have had to interview Mellors about the business, as it was impossible
to keep the woman away from the wood. He goes about as usual, with his Miller-of-the-Dee
air, I care for nobody, no not I, if nobody care for me! Nevertheless, I
shrewdly suspect he feels like a dog with a tin can tied to its tail: though
he makes a very good show of pretending the tin can isn't there. But I heard
that in the village the women call away their children if he is passing,
as if he were the Marquis de Sade in person. He goes on with a certain impudence,
but I am afraid the tin can is firmly tied to his tail, and that inwardly
he repeats, like Don Rodrigo in the Spanish ballad: `Ah, now it bites me
where I most have sinned!'
I asked him if he thought he would be able to attend to his duty in
the wood, and he said he did not think he had neglected it. I told him it
was a nuisance to have the woman trespassing: to which he replied that he
had no power to arrest her. Then I hinted at the scandal and its unpleasant
course. `Ay,' he said. `folks should do their own fuckin', then they wouldn't
want to listen to a lot of clatfart about another man's.'
He said it with some bitterness, and no doubt it contains the real germ
of truth. The mode of putting it, however, is neither delicate nor respectful.
I hinted as much, and then I heard the tin can rattle again. `It's not for
a man the shape you're in, Sir Clifford, to twit me for havin' a cod atween
my legs.'
These things, said indiscriminately to all and sundry, of course do
not help him at all, and the rector, and Finley, and Burroughs all think
it would be as well if the man left the place.
I asked him fit was true that he entertained ladies down at the cottage,
and all he said was: `Why, what's that to you, Sir Clifford?' I told him
I intended to have decency observed on my estate, to which he replied: `Then
you mun button the mouths o' a' th' women.'---When I pressed him about his
manner of life at the cottage, he said: `Surely you might ma'e a scandal
out o' me an' my bitch Flossie. You've missed summat there.' As a matter
of fact, for an example of impertinence he'd be hard to beat.
I asked him fit would be easy for him to find another job. He said:
`If you're hintin' that you'd like to shunt me out of this job, it'd be
easy as wink.' So he made no trouble at all about leaving at the end of
next week, and apparently is willing to initiate a young fellow, Joe Chambers,
into as many mysteries of the craft as possible. I told him I would give
him a month's wages extra, when he left. He said he'd rather I kept my money,
as I'd no occasion to ease my conscience. I asked him what he meant, and
he said: `You don't owe me nothing extra, Sir Clifford, so don't pay me
nothing extra. If you think you see my shirt hanging out, just tell me.'
Well, there is the end of it for the time being. The woman has gone
away: we don't know where to: but she is liable to arrest if she shows her
face in Tevershall. And I heard she is mortally afraid of gaol, because
she merits it so well. Mellors will depart on Saturday week, and the place
will soon become normal again.
Meanwhile, my dear Connie, if you would enjoy to stay in Venice or in
Switzerland till the beginning of August, I should be glad to think you
were out of all this buzz of nastiness, which will have died quite away
by the end of the month.
So you see, we arc deep-sea monsters, and when the lobster walks on
mud, he stirs it up for everybody. We must perforce take it philosophically.
The irritation, and the lack of any sympathy in any direction, of Clifford's
letter, had a bad effect on Connie. But she understood it better when she
received the following from Mellors:
The cat is out of the bag, along with various other pussies. You have
heard that my wife Bertha came back to my unloving arms, and took up her
abode in the cottage: where, to speak disrespectfully, she smelled a rat,
in the shape of a little bottle of Coty. Other evidence she did not find,
at least for some days, when she began to howl about the burnt photograph.
She noticed the glass and the back-board in the square bedroom. Unfortunately,
on the back-board somebody had scribbled little sketches, and the initials,
several times repeated: C. S. R. This, however, afforded no clue until she
broke into the hut, and found one of your books, an autobiography of the
actress Judith, with your name, Constance Stewart Reid, on the front page.
After this, for some days she went round loudly saying that my paramour
was no less a person than Lady Chatterley herself. The news came at last
to the rector, Mr Burroughs, and to Sir Clifford. They then proceeded to
take legal steps against my liege lady, who for her part disappeared, having
always had a mortal fear of the police.
Sir Clifford asked to see me, so I went to him. He talked around things
and seemed annoyed with me. Then he asked if I knew that even her ladyship's
name had been mentioned. I said I never listened to scandal, and was surprised
to hear this bit from Sir Clifford himself. He said, of course it was a
great insult, and I told him there was Queen Mary on a calendar in the scullery,
no doubt because Her Majesty formed part of my harem. But he didn't appreciate
the sarcasm. He as good as told me I was a disreputable character also walked
about with my breeches' buttons undone, and I as good as told him he'd nothing
to unbutton anyhow, so he gave me the sack, and I leave on Saturday week,
and the place thereof shall know me no more.
I shall go to London, and my old landlady, Mrs Inger, 17 Coburg Square,
will either give me a room or will find one for me.
Be sure your sins will find you out, especially if you're married and
her name's Bertha---
There was not a word about herself, or to her. Connie resented this.
He might have said some few words of consolation or reassurance. But she
knew he was leaving her free, free to go back to Wragby and to Clifford.
She resented that too. He need riot be so falsely chivalrous. She wished
he had said to Clifford: `Yes, she is my lover and my mistress and I am
proud of it!' But his courage wouldn't carry him so far.
So her name was coupled with his in Tevershall! It was a mess. But that
would soon die down.
She was angry, with the complicated and confused anger that made her
inert. She did not know what to do nor what to say, so she said and did
nothing. She went on at Venice just the same, rowing out in the gondola
with Duncan Forbes, bathing, letting the days slip by. Duncan, who had been
rather depressingly in love with her ten years ago, was in love with her
again. But she said to him: `I only want one thing of men, and that is,
that they should leave me alone.'
So Duncan left her alone: really quite pleased to be able to. All the
same, he offered her a soft stream of a queer, inverted sort of love. He
wanted to be with her.
`Have you ever thought,' he said to her one day, `how very little people
are connected with one another. Look at Daniele! He is handsome as a son
of the sun. But see how alone he looks in his handsomeness. Yet I bet he
has a wife and family, and couldn't possibly go away from them.'
`Ask him,' said Connie.
Duncan did so. Daniele said he was married, and had two children, both
male, aged seven and nine. But he betrayed no emotion over the fact.
`Perhaps only people who are capable of real togetherness have that
look of being alone in the universe,' said Connie. `The others have a certain
stickiness, they stick to the mass, like Giovanni.' `And,' she thought to
herself, `like you, Duncan.' Chapter 18
She had to make up her mind what to do. She would leave Venice on the
Saturday that he was leaving Wragby: in six days' time. This would bring
her to London on the Monday following, and she would then see him. She wrote
to him to the London address, asking him to send her a letter to Hartland's
hotel, and to call for her on the Monday evening at seven.
Inside herself she was curiously and complicatedly angry, and all her
responses were numb. She refused to confide even in Hilda, and Hilda, offended
by her steady silence, had become rather intimate with a Dutch woman. Connie
hated these rather stifling intimacies between women, intimacy into which
Hilda always entered ponderously.
Sir Malcolm decided to travel with Connie, and Duncan could come on
with Hilda. The old artist always did himself well: he took berths on the
Orient Express, in spite of Connie's dislike of trains de luxe,
the atmosphere of vulgar depravity there is aboard them nowadays. However,
it would make the journey to Paris shorter.
Sir Malcolm was always uneasy going back to his wife. It was habit carried
over from the first wife. But there would be a house-party for the grouse,
and he wanted to be well ahead. Connie, sunburnt and handsome, sat in silence,
forgetting all about the landscape.
`A little dull for you, going back to Wragby,' said her father, noticing
her glumness.
`I'm not sure I shall go back to Wragby,' she said, with startling abruptness,
looking into his eyes with her big blue eyes. His big blue eyes took on
the frightened look of a man whose social conscience is not quite clear.
`You mean you'll stay on in Paris a while?'
`No! I mean never go back to Wragby.'
He was bothered by his own little problems, and sincerely hoped he was
getting none of hers to shoulder.
`How's that, all at once?' he asked.
`I'm going to have a child.'
It was the first time she had uttered the words to any living soul,
and it seemed to mark a cleavage in her life.
`How do you know?' said her father.
She smiled.
`How should I know?'
`But not Clifford's child, of course?'
`No! Another man's.'
She rather enjoyed tormenting him.
`Do I know the man?' asked Sir Malcolm.
`No! You've never seen him.'
There was a long pause.
`And what are your plans?'
`I don't know. That's the point.'
`No patching it up with Clifford?'
`I suppose Clifford would take it,' said Connie. `He told me, after
last time you talked to him, he wouldn't mind if I had a child, so long
as I went about it discreetly.'
`Only sensible thing he could say, under the circumstances. Then I suppose
it'll be all right.'
`In what way?' said Connie, looking into her father's eyes. They were
big blue eyes rather like her own, but with a certain uneasiness in them,
a look sometimes of an uneasy little boy, sometimes a look of sullen selfishness,
usually good-humoured and wary.
`You can present Clifford with an heir to all the Chatterleys, and put
another baronet in Wragby.'
Sir Malcolm's face smiled with a half-sensual smile.
`But I don't think I want to,' she said.
`Why not? Feeling entangled with the other man? Well! If you want the
truth from me, my child, it's this. The world goes on. Wragby stands and
will go on standing. The world is more or less a fixed thing and, externally,
we have to adapt ourselves to it. Privately, in my private opinion, we can
please ourselves. Emotions change. You may like one man this year and another
next. But Wragby still stands. Stick by Wragby as far as Wragby sticks by
you. Then please yourself. But you'll get very little out of making a break.
You can make a break if you wish. You have an independent income, the only
thing that never lets you down. But you won't get much out of it. Put a
little baronet in Wragby. It's an amusing thing to do.'
And Sir Malcolm sat back and smiled again. Connie did not answer.
`I hope you had a real man at last,' he said to her after a while, sensually
alert.
`I did. That's the trouble. There aren't many of them about,' she said.
`No, by God!' he mused. `There aren't! Well, my dear, to look at you,
he was a lucky man. Surely he wouldn't make trouble for you?'
`Oh no! He leaves me my own mistress entirely.'
`Quite! Quite! A genuine man would.'
Sir Malcolm was pleased. Connie was his favourite daughter, he had always
liked the female in her. Not so much of her mother in her as in Hilda. And
he had always disliked Clifford. So he was pleased, and very tender with
his daughter, as if the unborn child were his child.
He drove with her to Hartland's hotel, and saw her installed: then went
round to his club. She had refused his company for the evening.
She found a letter from Mellors.
I won't come round to your hotel, but I'll wait for you outside the
Golden Cock in Adam Street at seven.
There he stood, tall and slender, and so different, in a formal suit
of thin dark cloth. He had a natural distinction, but he had not the cut-to-pattern
look of her class. Yet, she saw at once, he could go anywhere. He had a
native breeding which was really much nicer than the cut-to-pattern class
thing.
`Ah, there you are! How well you look!'
`Yes! But not you.'
She looked in his face anxiously. It was thin, and the cheekbones showed.
But his eyes smiled at her, and she felt at home with him. There it was:
suddenly, the tension of keeping up her appearances fell from her. Something
flowed out of him physically, that made her feel inwardly at ease and happy,
at home. With a woman's now alert instinct for happiness, she registered
it at once. `I'm happy when he's there!' Not all the sunshine of Venice
had given her this inward expansion and warmth.
`Was it horrid for you?' she asked as she sat opposite him at table.
He was too thin; she saw it now. His hand lay as she knew it, with the curious
loose forgottenness of a sleeping animal. She wanted so much to take it
and kiss it. But she did not quite dare.
`People are always horrid,' he said.
`And did you mind very much?'
`I minded, as I always shall mind. And I knew I was a fool to mind.'
`Did you feel like a dog with a tin can tied to its tail? Clifford said
you felt like that.'
He looked at her. It was cruel of her at that moment: for his pride
had suffered bitterly.
`I suppose I did,' he said.
She never knew the fierce bitterness with which he resented insult.
There was a long pause.
`And did you miss me?' she asked.
`I was glad you were out of it.'
Again there was a pause.
`But did people believe about you and me?' she asked.
`No! I don't think so for a moment.'
`Did Clifford?'
`I should say not. He put it off without thinking about it. But naturally
it made him want to see the last of me.'
`I'm going to have a child.'
The expression died utterly out of his face, out of his whole body.
He looked at her with darkened eyes, whose look she could not understand
at all: like some dark-flamed spirit looking at her.
`Say you're glad!' she pleaded, groping for his hand. And she saw a
certain exultance spring up in him. But it was netted down by things she
could not understand.
`It's the future,' he said.
`But aren't you glad?' she persisted.
`I have such a terrible mistrust of the future.'
`But you needn't be troubled by any responsibility. Clifford would have
it as his own, he'd be glad.'
She saw him go pale, and recoil under this. He did not answer.
`Shall I go back to Clifford and put a little baronet into Wragby?'
she asked.
He looked at her, pale and very remote. The ugly little grin flickered
on his face.
`You wouldn't have to tell him who the father was?'
`Oh!' she said; `he'd take it even then, if I wanted him to.'
He thought for a time.
`Ay!' he said at last, to himself. `I suppose he would.'
There was silence. A big gulf was between them.
`But you don't want me to go back to Clifford, do you?' she asked him.
`What do you want yourself?' he replied.
`I want to live with you,' she said simply.
In spite of himself, little flames ran over his belly as he heard her
say it, and he dropped his head. Then he looked up at her again, with those
haunted eyes.
`If it's worth it to you,' he said. `I've got nothing.'
`You've got more than most men. Come, you know it,' she said.
`In one way, I know it.' He was silent for a time, thinking. Then he
resumed: `They used to say I had too much of the woman in me. But it's not
that. I'm not a woman not because I don't want to shoot birds, neither because
I don't want to make money, or get on. I could have got on in the army,
easily, but I didn't like the army. Though I could manage the men all right:
they liked me and they had a bit of a holy fear of me when I got mad. No,
it was stupid, dead-handed higher authority that made the army dead: absolutely
fool-dead. I like men, and men like me. But I can't stand the twaddling
bossy impudence of the people who run this world. That's why I can't get
on. I hate the impudence of money, and I hate the impudence of class. So
in the world as it is, what have I to offer a woman?'
`But why offer anything? It's not a bargain. It's just that we love
one another,' she said.
`Nay, nay! It's more than that. Living is moving and moving on. My life
won't go down the proper gutters, it just won't. So I'm a bit of a waste
ticket by myself. And I've no business to take a woman into my life, unless
my life does something and gets somewhere, inwardly at least, to keep us
both fresh. A man must offer a woman some meaning in his life, if it's going
to be an isolated life, and if she's a genuine woman. I can't be just your
male concubine.'
`Why not?' she said.
`Why, because I can't. And you would soon hate it.'
`As if you couldn't trust me,' she said.
The grin flickered on his face.
`The money is yours, the position is yours, the decisions will lie with
you. I'm not just my Lady's fucker, after all.'
`What else are you?'
`You may well ask. It no doubt is invisible. Yet I'm something to myself
at least. I can see the point of my own existence, though I can quite understand
nobody else's seeing it.'
`And will your existence have less point, if you live with me?'
He paused a long time before replying:
`It might.'
She too stayed to think about it.
`And what is the point of your existence?'
`I tell you, it's invisible. I don't believe in the world, not in money,
nor in advancement, nor in the future of our civilization. If there's got
to be a future for humanity, there'll have to be a very big change from
what now is.'
`And what will the real future have to be like?'
`God knows! I can feel something inside me, all mixed up with a lot
of rage. But what it really amounts to, I don't know.'
`Shall I tell you?' she said, looking into his face. `Shall I tell you
what you have that other men don't have, and that will make the future?
Shall I tell you?'
`Tell me then,' he replied.
`It's the courage of your own tenderness, that's what it is: like when
you put your hand on my tail and say I've got a pretty tail.'
The grin came flickering on his face.
`That!' he said.
Then he sat thinking.
`Ay!' he said. `You're right. It's that really. It's that all the way
through. I knew it with the men. I had to be in touch with them, physically,
and not go back on it. I had to be bodily aware of them and a bit tender
to them, even if I put em through hell. It's a question of awareness, as
Buddha said. But even he fought shy of the bodily awareness, and that natural
physical tenderness, which is the best, even between men; in a proper manly
way. Makes 'em really manly, not so monkeyish. Ay! it's tenderness, really;
it's cunt-awareness. Sex is really only touch, the closest of all touch.
And it's touch we're afraid of. We're only half-conscious, and half alive.
We've got to come alive and aware. Especially the English have got to get
into touch with one another, a bit delicate and a bit tender. It's our crying
need.'
She looked at him.
`Then why are you afraid of me?' she said.
He looked at her a long time before he answered.
`It's the money, really, and the position. It's the world in you.'
`But isn't there tenderness in me?' she said wistfully.
He looked down at her, with darkened, abstract eyes.
`Ay! It comes an' goes, like in me.'
`But can't you trust it between you and me?' she asked, gazing anxiously
at him.
She saw his face all softening down, losing its armour. `Maybe!' he
said. They were both silent.
`I want you to hold me in your arms,' she said. `I want you to tell
me you are glad we are having a child.'
She looked so lovely and warm and wistful, his bowels stirred towards
her.
`I suppose we can go to my room,' he said. `Though it's scandalous again.'
But she saw the forgetfulness of the world coming over him again, his
face taking the soft, pure look of tender passion.
They walked by the remoter streets to Coburg Square, where he had a
room at the top of the house, an attic room where he cooked for himself
on a gas ring. It was small, but decent and tidy.
She took off her things, and made him do the same. She was lovely in
the soft first flush of her pregnancy.
`I ought to leave you alone,' he said.
`No!' she said. `Love me! Love me, and say you'll keep me. Say you'll
keep me! Say you'll never let me go, to the world nor to anybody.'
She crept close against him, clinging fast to his thin, strong naked
body, the only home she had ever known.
`Then I'll keep thee,' he said. `If tha wants it, then I'll keep thee.'
He held her round and fast.
`And say you're glad about the child,' she repeated.
`Kiss it! Kiss my womb and say you're glad it's there.'
But that was more difficult for him.
`I've a dread of puttin' children i' th' world,' he said. `I've such
a dread o' th' future for 'em.'
`But you've put it into me. Be tender to it, and that will be its future
already. Kiss it!'
He quivered, because it was true. `Be tender to it, and that will be
its future.'---At that moment he felt a sheer love for the woman. He kissed
her belly and her mound of Venus, to kiss close to the womb and the foetus
within the womb.
`Oh, you love me! You love me!' she said, in a little cry like one of
her blind, inarticulate love cries. And he went in to her softly, feeling
the stream of tenderness flowing in release from his bowels to hers, the
bowels of compassion kindled between them.
And he realized as he went into her that this was the thing he had to
do, to e into tender touch, without losing his pride or his dignity or his
integrity as a man. After all, if she had money and means, and he had none,
he should be too proud and honourable to hold back his tenderness from her
on that account. `I stand for the touch of bodily awareness between human
beings,' he said to himself, `and the touch of tenderness. And she is my
mate. And it is a battle against the money, and the machine, and the insentient
ideal monkeyishness of the world. And she will stand behind me there. Thank
God I've got a woman! Thank God I've got a woman who is with me, and tender
and aware of me. Thank God she's not a bully, nor a fool. Thank God she's
a tender, aware woman.' And as his seed sprang in her, his soul sprang towards
her too, in the creative act that is far more than procreative.
She was quite determined now that there should be no parting between
him and her. But the ways and means were still to settle.
`Did you hate Bertha Coutts?' she asked him.
`Don't talk to me about her.'
`Yes! You must let me. Because once you liked her. And once you were
as intimate with her as you are with me. So you have to tell me. Isn't it
rather terrible, when you've been intimate with her, to hate her so? Why
is it?'
`I don't know. She sort of kept her will ready against me, always, always:
her ghastly female will: her freedom! A woman's ghastly freedom that ends
in the most beastly bullying! Oh, she always kept her freedom against me,
like vitriol in my face.'
`But she's not free of you even now. Does she still love you?'
`No, no! If she's not free of me, it's because she's got that mad rage,
she must try to bully me.'
`But she must have loved you.'
`No! Well, in specks she did. She was drawn to me. And I think even
that she hated. She loved me in moments. But she always took it back, and
started bullying. Her deepest desire was to bully me, and there was no altering
her. Her will was wrong, from the first.'
`But perhaps she felt you didn't really love her, and she wanted to
make you.'
`My God, it was bloody making.'
`But you didn't really love her, did you? You did her that wrong.'
`How could I? I began to. I began to love her. But somehow, she always
ripped me up. No, don't let's talk of it. It was a doom, that was. And she
was a doomed woman. This last time, I'd have shot her like I shoot a stoat,
if I'd but been allowed: a raving, doomed thing in the shape of a woman!
If only I could have shot her, and ended the whole misery! It ought to be
allowed. When a woman gets absolutely possessed by her own will, her own
will set against everything, then it's fearful, and she should be shot at
last.'
`And shouldn't men be shot at last, if they get possessed by their own
will?'
`Ay!---the same! But I must get free of her, or she'll be at me again.
I wanted to tell you. I must get a divorce if I possibly can. So we must
be careful. We mustn't really be seen together, you and I. I never, never
could stand it if she came down on me and you.'
Connie pondered this.
`Then we can't be together?' she said.
`Not for six months or so. But I think my divorce will go through in
September; then till March.'
`But the baby will probably be born at the end of February,' she said.
He was silent.
`I could wish the Cliffords and Berthas all dead,' he said.
`It's not being very tender to them,' she said.
`Tender to them? Yea, even then the tenderest thing you could do for
them, perhaps, would be to give them death. They can't live! They only frustrate
life. Their souls are awful inside them. Death ought to be sweet to them.
And I ought to be allowed to shoot them.'
`But you wouldn't do it,' she said.
`I would though! and with less qualms than I shoot a weasel. It anyhow
has a prettiness and a loneliness. But they are legion. Oh, I'd shoot them.'
`Then perhaps it is just as well you daren't.'
`Well.'
Connie had now plenty to think of. It was evident he wanted absolutely
to be free of Bertha Coutts. And she felt he was right. The last attack
had been too grim.---This meant her living alone, till spring. Perhaps she
could get divorced from Clifford. But how? If Mellors were named, then there
was an end to his divorce. How loathsome! Couldn't one go right away, to
the far ends of the earth, and be free from it all?
One could not. The far ends of the world are not five minutes from Charing
Cross, nowadays. While the wireless is active, there are no far ends of
the earth. Kings of Dahomey and Lamas of Tibet listen in to London and New
York.
Patience! Patience! The world is a vast and ghastly intricacy of mechanism,
and one has to be very wary, not to get mangled by it.
Connie confided in her father.
`You see, Father, he was Clifford's game-keeper: but he was an officer
in the army in India. Only he is like Colonel C. E. Florence, who preferred
to become a private soldier again.'
Sir Malcolm, however, had no sympathy with the unsatisfactory mysticism
of the famous C. E. Florence. He saw too much advertisement behind all the
humility. It looked just like the sort of conceit the knight most loathed,
the conceit of self-abasement.
`Where did your game-keeper spring from?' asked Sir Malcolm irritably.
`He was a collier's son in Tevershall. But he's absolutely presentable.'
The knighted artist became more angry.
`Looks to me like a gold-digger,' he said. `And you're a pretty easy
gold-mine, apparently.'
`No, Father, it's not like that. You'd know if you saw him. He's a man.
Clifford always detested him for not being humble.'
`Apparently he had a good instinct, for once.'
What Sir Malcolm could not bear was the scandal of his daughter's having
an intrigue with a game- keeper. He did not mind the intrigue: he minded
the scandal.
`I care nothing about the fellow. He's evidently been able to get round
you all right. But, by God, think of all the talk. Think of your step-mother
how she'll take it!'
`I know,' said Connie. `Talk is beastly: especially if you live in society.
And he wants so much to get his own divorce. I thought we might perhaps
say it was another man's child, and not mention Mellors' name at all.'
`Another man's! What other man's?'
`Perhaps Duncan Forbes. He has been our friend all his life.'
`And he's a fairly well-known artist. And he's fond of me.'
`Well I'm damned! Poor Duncan! And what's he going to get out of it?'
`I don't know. But he might rather like it, even.'
`He might, might he? Well, he's a funny man if he does. Why, you've
never even had an affair with him, have you?'
`No! But he doesn't really want it. He only loves me to be near him,
but not to touch him.'
`My God, what a generation!'
`He would like me most of all to be a model for him to paint from. Only
I never wanted to.'
`God help him! But he looks down-trodden enough for anything.'
`Still, you wouldn't mind so much the talk about him?'
`My God, Connie, all the bloody contriving!'
`I know! It's sickening! But what can I do?'
`Contriving, conniving; conniving, contriving! Makes a man think he's
lived too long.'
`Come, Father, if you haven't done a good deal of contriving and conniving
in your time, you may talk.'
`But it was different, I assure you.'
`It's always different.'
Hilda arrived, also furious when she heard of the new developments.
And she also simply could not stand the thought of a public scandal about
her sister and a game-keeper. Too, too humiliating!
`Why should we not just disappear, separately, to British Columbia,
and have no scandal?' said Connie.
But that was no good. The scandal would come out just the same. And
if Connie was going with the man, she'd better be able to marry him. This
was Hilda's opinion. Sir Malcolm wasn't sure. The affair might still blow
over.
`But will you see him, Father?'
Poor Sir Malcolm! he was by no means keen on it. And poor Mellors, he
was still less keen. Yet the meeting took place: a lunch in a private room
at the club, the two men alone, looking one another up and down.
Sir Malcolm drank a fair amount of whisky, Mellors also drank. And they
talked all the while about India, on which the young man was well informed.
This lasted during the meal. Only when coffee was served, and the waiter
had gone, Sir Malcolm lit a cigar and said, heartily:
`Well, young man, and what about my daughter?'
The grin flickered on Mellors' face.
`Well, Sir, and what about her?'
`You've got a baby in her all right.'
`I have that honour!' grinned Mellors.
`Honour, by God!' Sir Malcolm gave a little squirting laugh, and became
Scotch and lewd. `Honour! How was the going, eh? Good, my boy, what?'
`Good!'
`I'll bet it was! Ha-ha! My daughter, chip of the old block, what! I
never went back on a good bit of fucking, myself. Though her mother, oh,
holy saints!' He rolled his eyes to heaven. `But you warmed her up, oh,
you warmed her up, I can see that. Ha-ha! My blood in her! You set fire
to her haystack all right. Ha-ha- ha! I was jolly glad of it, I can tell
you. She needed it. Oh, she's a nice girl, she's a nice girl, and I knew
she'd be good going, if only some damned man would set her stack on fire!
Ha-ha-ha! A game-keeper, eh, my boy! Bloody good poacher, if you ask me.
Ha-ha! But now, look here, speaking seriously, what are we going to do about
it? Speaking seriously, you know!'
Speaking seriously, they didn't get very far. Mellors, though a little
tipsy, was much the soberer of the two. He kept the conversation as intelligent
as possible: which isn't saying much.
`So you're a game-keeper! Oh, you're quite right! That sort of game
is worth a man's while, eh, what? The test of a woman is when you pinch
her bottom. You can tell just by the feel of her bottom if she's going to
come up all right. Ha-ha! I envy you, my boy. How old are you?'
`Thirty-nine.'
The knight lifted his eyebrows.
`As much as that! Well, you've another good twenty years, by the look
of you. Oh, game-keeper or not, you're a good cock. I can see that with
one eye shut. Not like that blasted Clifford! A lily-livered hound with
never a fuck in him, never had. I like you, my boy, I'll bet you've a good
cod on you; oh, you're a bantam, I can see that. You're a fighter. Game-keeper!
Ha-ha, by crikey, I wouldn't trust my game to you! But look here, seriously,
what are we going to do about it? The world's full of blasted old women.'
Seriously, they didn't do anything about it, except establish the old
free-masonry of male sensuality between them.
`And look here, my boy, if ever I can do anything for you, you can rely
on me. Game-keeper! Christ, but it's rich! I like it! Oh, I like it! Shows
the girl's got spunk. What? After all, you know, she has her own income,
moderate, moderate, but above starvation. And I'll leave her what I've got.
By God, I will. She deserves it for showing spunk, in a world of old women.
I've been struggling to get myself clear of the skirts of old women for
seventy years, and haven't managed it yet. But you're the man, I can see
that.'
`I'm glad you think so. They usually tell me, in a sideways fashion,
that I'm the monkey.'
`Oh, they would! My dear fellow, what could you be but a monkey, to
all the old women?'
They parted most genially, and Mellors laughed inwardly all the time
for the rest of the day.
The following day he had lunch with Connie and Hilda, at some discreet
place.
`It's a very great pity it's such an ugly situation all round,' said
Hilda.
`I had a lot o' fun out of it,' said he.
`I think you might have avoided putting children into the world until
you were both free to marry and have children.'
`The Lord blew a bit too soon on the spark,' said he.
`I think the Lord had nothing to do with it. Of course, Connie has enough
money to keep you both, but the situation is unbearable.'
`But then you don't have to bear more than a small corner of it, do
you?' said he.
`If you'd been in her own class.'
`Or if I'd been in a cage at the Zoo.'
There was silence.
`I think,' said Hilda, `it will be best if she names quite another man
as co-respondent and you stay out of it altogether.'
`But I thought I'd put my foot right in.'
`I mean in the divorce proceedings.'
He gazed at her in wonder. Connie had not dared mention the Duncan scheme
to him.
`I don't follow,' he said.
`We have a friend who would probably agree to be named as co-respondent,
so that your name need not appear,' said Hilda.
`You mean a man?'
`Of course!'
`But she's got no other?'
He looked in wonder at Connie.
`No, no!' she said hastily. `Only that old friendship, quite simple,
no love.'
`Then why should the fellow take the blame? If he's had nothing out
of you?'
`Some men are chivalrous and don't only count what they get out of a
woman,' said Hilda.
`One for me, eh? But who's the johnny?'
`A friend whom we've known since we were children in Scotland, an artist.'
`Duncan Forbes!' he said at once, for Connie had talked to him. `And
how would you shift the blame on to him?'
`They could stay together in some hotel, or she could even stay in his
apartment.'
`Seems to me like a lot of fuss for nothing,' he said.
`What else do you suggest?' said Hilda. `If your name appears, you will
get no divorce from your wife, who is apparently quite an impossible person
to be mixed up with.'
`All that!' he said grimly.
There was a long silence.
`We could go right away,' he said.
`There is no right away for Connie,' said Hilda. `Clifford is too well
known.'
Again the silence of pure frustration.
`The world is what it is. If you want to live together without being
persecuted, you will have to marry. To marry, you both have to be divorced.
So how are you both going about it?'
He was silent for a long time.
`How are you going about it for us?' he said.
`We will see if Duncan will consent to figure as co-respondent: then
we must get Clifford to divorce Connie: and you must go on with your divorce,
and you must both keep apart till you are free.'
`Sounds like a lunatic asylum.'
`Possibly! And the world would look on you as lunatics: or worse.;
`What is worse?'
`Criminals, I suppose.'
`Hope I can plunge in the dagger a few more times yet,' he said, grinning.
Then he was silent, and angry.
`Well!' he said at last. `I agree to anything. The world is a raving
idiot, and no man can kill it: though I'll do my best. But you re right.
We must rescue ourselves as best we can.'
He looked in humiliation, anger, weariness and misery at Connie.
`Ma lass!' he said. `The world's goin' to put salt on thy tail.'
`Not if we don't let it,' she said.
She minded this conniving against the world less than he did.
Duncan, when approached, also insisted on seeing the delinquent game-keeper,
so there was a dinner, this time in his flat: the four of them. Duncan was
a rather short, broad, dark-skinned, taciturn Hamlet of a fellow with straight
black hair and a weird Celtic conceit of himself. His art was all tubes
and valves and spirals and strange colours, ultra-modern, yet with a certain
power, even a certain purity of form and tone: only Mellors thought it cruel
and repellent. He did not venture to say so, for Duncan was almost insane
on the point of his art: it was a personal cult, a personal religion with
him.
They were looking at the pictures in the studio, and Duncan kept his
smallish brown eyes on the other man. He wanted to hear what the game-keeper
would say. He knew already Connie's and Hilda's opinions.
`It is like a pure bit of murder,' said Mellors at last; a speech Duncan
by no means expected from a game-keeper.
`And who is murdered?' asked Hilda, rather coldly and sneeringly.
`Me! It murders all the bowels of compassion in a man.'
A wave of pure hate came out of the artist. He heard the note of dislike
in the other man's voice, and the note of contempt. And he himself loathed
the mention of bowels of compassion. Sickly sentiment!
Mellors stood rather tall and thin, worn-looking, gazing with flickering
detachment that was something like the dancing of a moth on the wing, at
the pictures.
`Perhaps stupidity is murdered; sentimental stupidity,' sneered the
artist.
`Do you think so? I think all these tubes and corrugated vibrations
are stupid enough for anything, and pretty sentimental. They show a lot
of self-pity and an awful lot of nervous self-opinion, seems to me.'
In another wave of hate the artist's face looked yellow. But with a
sort of silent hauteur he turned the pictures to the wall.
`I think we may go to the dining-room,' he said. And they trailed off,
dismally.
After coffee, Duncan said:
`I don't at all mind posing as the father of Connie's child. But only
on the condition that she'll come and pose as a model for me. I've wanted
her for years, and she's always refused.' He uttered it with the dark finality
of an inquisitor announcing an auto da fe.
`Ah!' said Mellors. `You only do it on condition, then?'
`Quite! I only do it on that condition.' The artist tried to put the
utmost contempt of the other person into his speech. He put a little too
much.
`Better have me as a model at the same time,' said Mellors. `Better
do us in a group, Vulcan and Venus under the net of art. I used to be a
blacksmith, before I was a game-keeper.'
`Thank you,' said the artist. `I don't think Vulcan has a figure that
interests me.'
`Not even if it was tubified and titivated up?'
There was no answer. The artist was too haughty for further words.
It was a dismal party, in which the artist henceforth steadily ignored
the presence of the other man, and talked only briefly, as if the words
were wrung out of the depths of his gloomy portentousness, to the women.
`You didn't like him, but he's better than that, really. He's really
kind,' Connie explained as they left.
`He's a little black pup with a corrugated distemper,' said Mellors.
`No, he wasn't nice today.'
`And will you go and be a model to him?'
`Oh, I don't really mind any more. He won't touch me. And I don't mind
anything, if it paves the way to a life together for you and me.'
`But he'll only shit on you on canvas.'
`I don't care. He'll only be painting his own feelings for me, and I
don't mind if he does that. I wouldn't have him touch me, not for anything.
But if he thinks he can do anything with his owlish arty staring, let him
stare. He can make as many empty tubes and corrugations out of me as he
likes. It's his funeral. He hated you for what you said: that his tubified
art is sentimental and self-important. But of course it's true.' Chapter
19
Dear Clifford, I am afraid what you foresaw has happened. I am really
in love with another man, and do hope you will divorce me. I am staying
at present with Duncan its his flat. I told you he was at Venice with us.
I'm awfully unhappy for your sake: but do try to take it quietly. You don't
really need me any more, and I can't bear to come back to Wragby. I'm awfully
sorry. But do try to forgive me, and divorce me and find someone better.
I'm not really the right person for you, I am too impatient and selfish,
I suppose. But I can't ever come back to live with you again. And I feel
so frightfully sorry about it all, for your sake. But if you don't let yourself
get worked up, you'll see you won't mind so frightfully. You didn't really
care about me personally. So do forgive me and get rid of me.
Clifford was not inwardly surprised to get this letter. Inwardly,
he had known for a long time she was leaving him. But he had absolutely
refused any outward admission of it. Therefore, outwardly, it came as the
most terrible blow and shock to him, He had kept the surface of his confidence
in her quite serene.
And that is how we are, By strength of will we cut of four inner intuitive
knowledge from admitted consciousness. This causes a state of dread, or
apprehension, which makes the blow ten times worse when it does fall.
Clifford was like a hysterical child. He gave Mrs Bolton a terrible
shock, sitting up in bed ghastly and blank.
`Why, Sir Clifford, whatever's the matter?'
No answer! She was terrified lest he had had a stroke. She hurried and
felt his face, took his pulse.
`Is there a pain? Do try and tell me where it hurts you. Do tell me!'
No answer!
`Oh dear, oh dear! Then I'll telephone to Sheffield for Dr Carrington,
and Dr Lecky may as well run round straight away.'
She was moving to the door, when he said in a hollow tone:
`No!'
She stopped and gazed at him. His face was yellow, blank, and like the
face of an idiot.
`Do you mean you'd rather I didn't fetch the doctor?'
`Yes! I don't want him,' came the sepulchral voice.
`Oh, but Sir Clifford, you're ill, and I daren't take the responsibility.
I must send for the doctor, or I shall be blamed.'
A pause: then the hollow voice said:
`I'm not ill. My wife isn't coming back.'---It was as if an image spoke.
`Not coming back? you mean her ladyship?' Mrs Bolton moved a little
nearer to the bed. `Oh, don't you believe it. You can trust her ladyship
to come back.'
The image in the bed did not change, but it pushed a letter over the
counterpane.
`Read it!' said the sepulchral voice.
`Why, if it's a letter from her ladyship, I'm sure her ladyship wouldn't
want me to read her letter to you, Sir Clifford. You can tell me what she
says, if you wish.'
`Read it!' repeated the voice.
`Why, if I must, I do it to obey you, Sir Clifford,' she said. And she
read the letter.
`Well, I am surprised at her ladyship,' she said. `She promised
so faithfully she'd come back!'
The face in the bed seemed to deepen its expression of wild, but motionless
distraction. Mrs Bolton looked at it and was worried. She knew what she
was up against: male hysteria. She had not nursed soldiers without learning
something about that very unpleasant disease.
She was a little impatient of Sir Clifford. Any man in his senses must
have known his wife was in love with somebody else, and was going
to leave him. Even, she was sure, Sir Clifford was inwardly absolutely aware
of it, only he wouldn't admit it to himself. If he would have admitted it,
and prepared himself for it: or if he would have admitted it, and actively
struggled with his wife against it: that would have been acting like a man.
But no! he knew it, and all the time tried to kid himself it wasn't so.
He felt the devil twisting his tail, and pretended it was the angels smiling
on him. This state of falsity had now brought on that crisis of falsity
and dislocation, hysteria, which is a form of insanity. `It comes', she
thought to herself, hating him a little, `because he always thinks of himself.
He's so wrapped up in his own immortal self, that when he does get a shock
he's like a mummy tangled in its own bandages. Look at him!'
But hysteria is dangerous: and she was a nurse, it was her duty to pull
him out. Any attempt to rouse his manhood and his pride would only make
him worse: for his manhood was dead, temporarily if not finally. He would
only squirm softer and softer, like a worm, and become more dislocated.
The only thing was to release his self-pity. Like the lady in Tennyson,
he must weep or he must die.
So Mrs Bolton began to weep first. She covered her face with her hand
and burst into little wild sobs. `I would never have believed it of her
ladyship, I wouldn't!' she wept, suddenly summoning up all her old grief
and sense of woe, and weeping the tears of her own bitter chagrin. Once
she started, her weeping was genuine enough, for she had had something to
weep for.
Clifford thought of the way he had been betrayed by the woman Connie,
and in a contagion of grief, tears filled his eyes and began to run down
his cheeks. He was weeping for himself. Mrs Bolton, as soon as she saw the
tears running over his blank face, hastily wiped her own wet cheeks on her
little handkerchief, and leaned towards him.
`Now, don't you fret, Sir Clifford!' she said, in a luxury of emotion.
`Now, don't you fret, don't, you'll only do yourself an injury!'
His body shivered suddenly in an indrawn breath of silent sobbing, and
the tears ran quicker down his face. She laid her hand on his arm, and her
own tears fell again. Again the shiver went through him, like a convulsion,
and she laid her arm round his shoulder. `There, there! There, there! Don't
you fret, then, don't you! Don't you fret!' she moaned to him, while her
own tears fell. And she drew him to her, and held her arms round his great
shoulders, while he laid his face on her bosom and sobbed, shaking and hulking
his huge shoulders, whilst she softly stroked his dusky-blond hair and said:
`There! There! There! There then! There then! Never you mind! Never you
mind, then!'
And he put his arms round her and clung to her like a child, wetting
the bib of her starched white apron, and the bosom of her pale-blue cotton
dress, with his tears. He had let himself go altogether, at last.
So at length she kissed him, and rocked him on her bosom, and in her
heart she said to herself: `Oh, Sir Clifford! Oh, high and mighty Chatterleys!
Is this what you've come down to!' And finally he even went to sleep, like
a child. And she felt worn out, and went to her own room, where she laughed
and cried at once, with a hysteria of her own. It was so ridiculous! It
was so awful! Such a come-down! So shameful! And it was so upsetting
as well.
After this, Clifford became like a child with Mrs Bolton. He would hold
her h, and rest his head on her breast, and when she once lightly kissed
him, he said! `Yes! Do kiss me! Do kiss me!' And when she sponged his great
blond body, he would say the same! `Do kiss me!' and she would lightly kiss
his body, anywhere, half in mockery.
And he lay with a queer, blank face like a child, with a bit of the
wonderment of a child. And he would gaze on her with wide, childish eyes,
in a relaxation of madonna-worship. It was sheer relaxation on his part,
letting go all his manhood, and sinking back to a childish position that
was really perverse. And then he would put his hand into her bosom and feel
her breasts, and kiss them in exultation, the exultation of perversity,
of being a child when he was a man.
Mrs Bolton was both thrilled and ashamed, she both loved and hated it.
Yet she never rebuffed nor rebuked him. And they drew into a closer physical
intimacy, an intimacy of perversity, when he was a child stricken with an
apparent candour and an apparent wonderment, that looked almost like a religious
exaltation: the perverse and literal rendering of: `except ye become again
as a little child'.---While she was the Magna Mater, full of power and potency,
having the great blond child-man under her will and her stroke entirely.
The curious thing was that when this child-man, which Clifford was now
and which he had been becoming for years, emerged into the world, it was
much sharper and keener than the real man he used to be. This perverted
child-man was now a real business-man; when it was a question of
affairs, he was an absolute he-man, sharp as a needle, and impervious as
a bit of steel. When he was out among men, seeking his own ends, and `making
good' his colliery workings, he had an almost uncanny shrewdness, hardness,
and a straight sharp punch. It was as if his very passivity and prostitution
to the Magna Mater gave him insight into material business affairs, and
lent him a certain remarkable inhuman force. The wallowing in private emotion,
the utter abasement of his manly self, seemed to lend him a second nature,
cold, almost visionary, business-clever. In business he was quite inhuman.
And in this Mrs Bolton triumphed. `How he's getting on!' she would say
to herself in pride. `And that's my doing! My word, he'd never have got
on like this with Lady Chatterley. She was not the one to put a man forward.
She wanted too much for herself.'
At the same time, in some corner of her weird female soul, how she despised
him and hated him! He was to her the fallen beast, the squirming monster.
And while she aided and abetted him all she could, away in the remotest
corner of her ancient healthy womanhood she despised him with a savage contempt
that knew no bounds. The merest tramp was better than he.
His behaviour with regard to Connie was curious. He insisted on seeing
her again. He insisted, moreover, on her coming to Wragby. On this point
he was finally and absolutely fixed. Connie had promised to come back to
Wragby, faithfully.
`But is it any use?' said Mrs Bolton. `Can't you let her go, and be
rid of her?'
`No! She said she was coming back, and she's got to come.'
Mrs Bolton opposed him no more. She knew what she was dealing with.
I needn't tell you what effect your letter has had on me [he wrote to
Connie to London]. Perhaps you can imagine it if you try, though no doubt
you won't trouble to use your imagination on my behalf.
I can only say one thing in answer: I must see you personally, here
at Wragby, before I can do anything. You promised faithfully to come back
to Wragby, and I hold you to the promise. I don't believe anything nor understand
anything until I see you personally, here under normal circumstances. I
needn't tell you that nobody here suspects anything, so your return would
be quite normal. Then if you feel, after we have talked things over, that
you still remain in the same mind, no doubt we can come to terms.
Connie showed this letter to Mellors.
`He wants to begin his revenge on you,' he said, handing the letter
back.
Connie was silent. She was somewhat surprised to find that she was afraid
of Clifford. She was afraid to go near him. She was afraid of him as if
he were evil and dangerous.
`What shall I do?' she said.
`Nothing, if you don't want to do anything.'
She replied, trying to put Clifford off. He answered:
If you don't come back to Wragby now, I shall consider that you are
coming back one day, and act accordingly. I shall just go on the same, and
wait for you here, if I wait for fifty years.
She was frightened. This was bullying of an insidious sort. She had
no doubt he meant what he said. He would not divorce her, and the child
would be his, unless she could find some means of establishing its illegitimacy.
After a time of worry and harassment, she decided to go to Wragby. Hilda
would go with her. She wrote this to Clifford. He replied:
I shall not welcome your sister, but I shall not deity her the door.
I have no doubt she has connived at your desertion of your duties and responsibilities,
so do not expect me to show pleasure in seeing her.
They went to Wragby. Clifford was away when they arrived. Mrs Bolton
received them.
`Oh, your Ladyship, it isn't the happy home-coming we hoped for, is
it!' she said.
`Isn't it?' said Connie.
So this woman knew! How much did the rest of the servants know or suspect?
She entered the house, which now she hated with every fibre in her body.
The great, rambling mass of a place seemed evil to her, just a menace over
her. She was no longer its mistress, she was its victim.
`I can't stay long here,' she whispered to Hilda, terrified.
And she suffered going into her own bedroom, re-entering into possession
as if nothing had happened. She hated every minute inside the Wragby walls.
They did not meet Clifford till they went down to dinner. He was dressed,
and with a black tie: rather reserved, and very much the superior gentleman.
He behaved perfectly politely during the meal and kept a polite sort of
conversation going: but it seemed all touched with insanity.
`How much do the servants know?' asked Connie, when the woman was out
of the room.
`Of your intentions? Nothing whatsoever.'
`Mrs Bolton knows.'
He changed colour.
`Mrs Bolton is not exactly one of the servants,' he said.
`Oh, I don't mind.'
There was tension till after coffee, when Hilda said she would go up
to her room.
Clifford and Connie sat in silence when she had gone. Neither would
begin to speak. Connie was so glad that he wasn't taking the pathetic line,
she kept him up to as much haughtiness as possible. She just sat silent
and looked down at her hands.
`I suppose you don't at all mind having gone back on your word?' he
said at last.
`I can't help it,' she murmured.
`But if you can't, who can?'
`I suppose nobody.'
He looked at her with curious cold rage. He was used to her. She was
as it were embedded in his will. How dared she now go back on him, and destroy
the fabric of his daily existence? How dared she try to cause this derangement
of his personality?
`And for what do you want to go back on everything?' he insisted.
`Love!' she said. It was best to be hackneyed.
`Love of Duncan Forbes? But you didn't think that worth having, when
you met me. Do you mean to say you now love him better than anything else
in life?'
`One changes,' she said.
`Possibly! Possibly you may have whims. But you still have to convince
me of the importance of the change. I merely don't believe in your love
of Duncan Forbes.'
`But why should you believe in it? You have only to divorce
me, not to believe in my feelings.'
`And why should I divorce you?'
`Because I don't want to live here any more. And you really don't want
me.'
`Pardon me! I don't change. For my part, since you are my wife, I should
prefer that you should stay under my roof in dignity and quiet. Leaving
aside personal feelings, and I assure you, on my part it is leaving aside
a great deal, it is bitter as death to me to have this order of life broken
up, here in Wragby, and the decent round of daily life smashed, just for
some whim of yours.'
After a time of silence she said:
`I can't help it. I've got to go. I expect I shall have a child.'
He too was silent for a time.
`And is it for the child's sake you must go?' he asked at length.
She nodded.
`And why? Is Duncan Forbes so keen on his spawn?'
`Surely keener than you would be,' she said.
`But really? I want my wife, and I see no reason for letting her go.
If she likes to bear a child under my roof, she is welcome, and the child
is welcome: provided that the decency and order of life is preserved. Do
you mean to tell me that Duncan Forbes has a greater hold over you? I don't
believe it.'
There was a pause.
`But don't you see,' said Connie. `I must go away from you,
and I must live with the man I love.'
`No, I don't see it! I don't give tuppence for your love, nor for the
man you love. I don't believe in that sort of cant.'
`But you see, I do.'
`Do you? My dear Madam, you are too intelligent, I assure you, to believe
in your own love for Duncan Forbes. Believe me, even now you really care
more for me. So why should I give in to such nonsense!'
She felt he was right there. And she felt she could keep silent no longer.
`Because it isn't Duncan that I do love,' she said, looking
up at him.
`We only said it was Duncan, to spare your feelings.'
`To spare my feelings?'
`Yes! Because who I really love, and it'll make you hate me, is Mr Mellors,
who was our game-keeper here.'
If he could have sprung out of his chair, he would have done so. His
face went yellow, and his eyes bulged with disaster as he glared at her.
Then he dropped back in the chair, gasping and looking up at the ceiling.
At length he sat up.
`Do you mean to say you re telling me the truth?' he asked, looking
gruesome.
`Yes! You know I am.'
`And when did you begin with him?'
`In the spring.'
He was silent like some beast in a trap.
`And it was you, then, in the bedroom at the cottage?'
So he had really inwardly known all the time.
`Yes!'
He still leaned forward in his chair, gazing at her like a cornered
beast.
`My God, you ought to be wiped off the face of the earth!'
`Why?' she ejaculated faintly.
But he seemed not to hear.
`That scum! That bumptious lout! That miserable cad! And carrying on
with him all the time, while you were here and he was one of my servants!
My God, my God, is there any end to the beastly lowness of women!'
He was beside himself with rage, as she knew he would be.
`And you mean to say you want to have a child to a cad like that?'
`Yes! I'm going to.'
`You're going to! You mean you're sure! How long have you been sure?'
`Since June.'
He was speechless, and the queer blank look of a child came over him
again.
`You'd wonder,' he said at last, `that such beings were ever allowed
to be born.'
`What beings?' she asked.
He looked at her weirdly, without an answer. It was obvious, he couldn't
even accept the fact of the existence of Mellors, in any connexion with
his own life. It was sheer, unspeakable, impotent hate.
`And do you mean to say you'd marry him?---and bear his foul name?'
he asked at length.
`Yes, that's what I want.'
He was again as if dumbfounded.
`Yes!' he said at last. `That proves that what I've always thought about
you is correct: you're not normal, you're not in your right senses. You're
one of those half-insane, perverted women who must run after depravity,
the nostalgie de la boue.'
Suddenly he had become almost wistfully moral, seeing himself the incarnation
of good, and people like Mellors and Connie the incarnation of mud, of evil.
He seemed to be growing vague, inside a nimbus.
`So don't you think you'd better divorce me and have done with it?'
she said.
`No! You can go where you like, but I shan't divorce you,' he said idiotically.
`Why not?'
He was silent, in the silence of imbecile obstinacy.
`Would you even let the child be legally yours, and your heir?' she
said.
`I care nothing about the child.'
`But if it's a boy it will be legally your son, and it will inherit
your title, and have Wragby.'
`I care nothing about that,' he said.
`But you must! I shall prevent the child from being legally
yours, if I can. I'd so much rather it were illegitimate, and mine: if it
can't be Mellors'.'
`Do as you like about that.'
He was immovable.
`And won't you divorce me?' she said. `You can use Duncan as a pretext!
There'd be no need to bring in the real name. Duncan doesn't mind.'
`I shall never divorce you,' he said, as if a nail had been
driven in.
`But why? Because I want you to?'
`Because I follow my own inclination, and I'm not inclined to.'
It was useless. She went upstairs and told Hilda the upshot.
`Better get away tomorrow,' said Hilda, `and let him come to his senses.'
So Connie spent half the night packing her really private and personal
effects. In the morning she had her trunks sent to the station, without
telling Clifford. She decided to see him only to say good-bye, before lunch.
But she spoke to Mrs Bolton.
`I must say good-bye to you, Mrs Bolton, you know why. But I can trust
you not to talk.'
`Oh, you can trust me, your Ladyship, though it's a sad blow for us
here, indeed. But I hope you'll be happy with the other gentleman.'
`The other gentleman! It's Mr Mellors, and I care for him. Sir Clifford
knobs. But don't say anything to anybody. And if one day you think Sir Clifford
may be willing to divorce me, let me know, will you? I should like to be
properly married to the man I care for.'
`I'm sure you would, my Lady. Oh, you can trust me. I'll be faithful
to Sir Clifford, and I'll be faithful to you, for I can see you're both
right in your own ways.'
`Thank you! And look! I want to give you this---may I?' So Connie left
Wragby once more, and went on with Hilda to Scotland. Mellors went into
the country and got work on a farm. The idea was, he should get his divorce,
if possible, whether Connie got hers or not. And for six months he should
work at farming, so that eventually he and Connie could have some small
farm of their own, into which he could put his energy. For he would have
to have some work, even hard work, to do, and he would have to make his
own living, even if her capital started him.
So they would have to wait till spring was in, till the baby was born,
till the early summer came round again.
The Grange Farm Old Heanor 29 September
I got on here with a bit of contriving, because I knew Richards, the
company engineer, in the army. It is a farm belonging to Butler and Smitham
Colliery Company, they use it for raising hay and oats for the pit- ponies;
not a private concern. But they've got cows and pigs and all the rest of
it, and I get thirty shillings a week as labourer. Rowley, the farmer, puts
me on to as many jobs as he can, so that I can learn as much as possible
between now and next Easter. I've not heard a thing about Bertha. I've no
idea why she didn't show up at the divorce, nor where she is nor what she's
up to. But if I keep quiet till March I suppose I shall be free. And don't
you bother about Sir Clifford. He'll want to get rid of you one of these
days. If he leaves you alone, it's a lot.
I've got lodging in a bit of an old cottage in Engine Row very decent.
The man is engine-driver at High Park, tall, with a beard, and very chapel.
The woman is a birdy bit of a thing who loves anything superior. King's
English and allow-me! all the time. But they lost their only son in the
war, and it's sort of knocked a hole in them. There's a long gawky lass
of a daughter training for a school-teacher, and I help her with her lessons
sometimes, so we're quite the family. But they're very decent people, and
only too kind to me. I expect I'm more coddled than you are.
I like farming all right. It's not inspiring, but then I don't ask to
be inspired. I'm used to horses, and cows, though they are very female,
have a soothing effect on me. When I sit with my head in her side, milking,
I feel very solaced. They have six rather fine Herefords. Oat-harvest is
just over and I enjoyed it, in spite of sore hands and a lot of rain. I
don't take much notice of people, but get on with them all right. Most things
one just ignores.
The pits are working badly; this is a colliery district like Tevershall.
only prettier. I sometimes sit in the Wellington and talk to the men. They
grumble a lot, but they're not going to alter anything. As everybody says,
the Notts-Derby miners have got their hearts in the right place. But the
rest of their anatomy must be in the wrong place, in a world that has no
use for them. I like them, but they don't cheer me much: not enough of the
old fighting-cock in them. They talk a lot about nationalization, nationalization
of royalties, nationalization of the whole industry. But you can't nationalize
coal and leave all the other industries as they are. They talk about putting
coal to new uses, like Sir Clifford is trying to do. It may work here and
there, but not as a general thing. I doubt. Whatever you make you've got
to sell it. The men are very apathetic. They feel the whole damned thing
is doomed, and I believe it is. And they are doomed along with it. Some
of the young ones spout about a Soviet, but there's not much conviction
in them. There's no sort of conviction about anything, except that it's
all a muddle and a hole. Even under a Soviet you've still got to sell coal:
and that's the difficulty.
We've got this great industrial population, and they've got to be fed,
so the damn show has to be kept going somehow. The women talk a lot more
than the men, nowadays, and they are a sight more cock-sure. The men are
limp, they feel a doom somewhere, and they go about as if there was nothing
to be done. Anyhow, nobody knows what should be done in spite of all the
talk, the young ones get mad because they've no money to spend. Their whole
life depends on spending money, and now they've got none to spend. That's
our civilization and our education: bring up the masses to depend entirely
on spending money, and then the money gives out. The pits are working two
days, two and a half days a week, and there's no sign of betterment even
for the winter. It means a man bringing up a family on twenty-five and thirty
shillings. The women are the maddest of all. But then they're the maddest
for spending, nowadays.
If you could only tell them that living and spending isn't the same
thing! But it's no good. If only they were educated to live instead
of earn and spend, they could manage very happily on twenty-five shillings.
If the men wore scarlet trousers as I said, they wouldn't think so much
of money: if they could dance and hop and skip, and sing and swagger and
be handsome, they could do with very little cash. And amuse the women themselves,
and be amused by the women. They ought to learn to be naked and handsome,
and to sing in a mass and dance the old group dances, and carve the stools
they sit on, and embroider their own emblems. Then they wouldn't need money.
And that's the only way to solve the industrial problem: train the people
to be able to live and live in handsomeness, without needing to spend. But
you can't do it. They're all one-track minds nowadays. Whereas the mass
of people oughtn't even to try to think, because they can't. They should
be alive and frisky, and acknowledge the great god Pan. He's the only god
for the masses, forever. The few can go in for higher cults if they like.
But let the mass be forever pagan.
But the colliers aren't pagan, far from it. They're a sad lot, a deadened
lot of men: dead to their women, dead to life. The young ones scoot about
on motor-bikes with girls, and jazz when they get a chance, But they're
very dead. And it needs money. Money poisons you when you've got it, and
starves you when you haven't.
I'm sure you're sick of all this. But I don't want to harp on myself,
and I've nothing happening to me. I don't like to think too much about you,
in my head, that only makes a mess of us both. But, of course, what I live
for now is for you and me to live together. I'm frightened, really. I feel
the devil in the air, and he'll try to get us. Or not the devil, Mammon:
which I think, after all, is only the mass-will of people, wanting money
and hating life. Anyhow, I feel great grasping white hands in the air, wanting
to get hold of the throat of anybody who tries to live, to live beyond money,
and squeeze the life out. There's a bad time coming. There's a bad time
coming, boys, there's a bad time coming! If things go on as they are, there's
nothing lies in the future but death and destruction, for these industrial
masses. I feel my inside turn to water sometimes, and there you are, going
to have a child by me. But never mind. All the bad times that ever have
been, haven't been able to blow the crocus out: not even the love of women.
So they won't be able to blow out my wanting you, nor the little glow there
is between you and me. We'll be together next year. And though I'm frightened,
I believe in your being with me. A man has to fend and fettle for the best,
and then trust in something beyond himself. You can't insure against the
future, except by really believing in the best bit of you, and in the power
beyond it. So I believe in the little flame between us. For me now, it's
the only thing in the world. I've got no friends, not inward friends. Only
you. And now the little flame is all I care about in my life. There's the
baby, but that is a side issue. It's my Pentecost, the forked flame between
me and you. The old Pentecost isn't quite right. Me and God is a bit uppish,
somehow. But the little forked flame between me and you: there you are!
That's what I abide by, and will abide by, Cliffords and Berthas, colliery
companies and governments and the money-mass of people all notwithstanding.
That's why I don't like to start thinking about you actually. It only
tortures me, and does you no good. I don't want you to be away from me.
But if I start fretting it wastes something. Patience, always patience.
This is my fortieth winter. And I can't help all the winters that have been.
But this winter I'll stick to my little Pentecost flame, and have some peace.
And I won't let the breath of people blow it out. I believe in a higher
mystery, that doesn't let even the crocus be blown out. And if you're in
Scotland and I'm in the Midlands, and I can't put my arms round you, and
wrap my legs round you, yet I've got something of you. My soul softly Naps
in the little Pentecost flame with you, like the peace of fucking. We fucked
a flame into being. Even the flowers are fucked into being between the sun
and the earth. But it's a delicate thing, and takes patience and the long
pause.
So I love chastity now, because it is the peace that comes of fucking.
I love being chaste now. I love it as snowdrops love the snow. I love this
chastity, which is the pause of peace of our fucking, between us now like
a snowdrop of forked white fire. And when the real spring comes, when the
drawing together comes, then we can fuck the little flame brilliant and
yellow, brilliant. But not now, not yet! Now is the time to be chaste, it
is so good to be chaste, like a river of cool water in my soul. I love the
chastity now that it flows between us. It is like fresh water and rain.
How can men want wearisomely to philander. What a misery to be like Don
Juan, and impotent ever to fuck oneself into peace, and the little flame
alight, impotent and unable to be chaste in the cool between-whiles, as
by a river.
Well, so many words, because I can't touch you. If I could sleep with
my arms round you, the ink could stay in the bottle. We could be chaste
together just as we can fuck together. But we have to be separate for a
while, and I suppose it is really the wiser way. If only one were sure.
Never mind, never mind, we won't get worked up. We really trust in the
little flame, and in the unnamed god that shields it from being blown out.
There's so much of you here with me, really, that it's a pity you aren't
all here.
Never mind about Sir Clifford. If you don't hear anything from him,
never mind. He can't really do anything to you. Wait, he will want to get
rid of you at last, to cast you out. And if he doesn't, we'll manage to
keep clear of him. But he will. In the end he will want to spew you out
as the abominable thing.
Now I can't even leave off writing to you.
But a great deal of us is together, and we can but abide by it, and
steer our courses to meet soon. John Thomas says good-night to Lady Jane,
a little droopingly, but with a hopeful heart.
|
|